and_o to_o bring_v peace_n to_o they_o that_o be_v far_o of_o 43._o after_o two_o day_n he_o depart_v thence_o and_o go_v away_o into_o galilee_n after_o two_o day_n b._n he_o abide_v two_o day_n only_o with_o the_o samaritan_n because_o as_o yet_o the_o hour_n be_v not_o come_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n more_o magnifycent_o to_o be_v reveal_v unto_o they_o first_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v offer_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o then_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o middle_a gate_n which_o divide_v other_o nation_n from_o the_o jew_n be_v to_o be_v break_v down_o and_o go_v away_o into_o galilee_n m._n the_o course_n or_o journey_n of_o christ_n be_v dyrect_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n from_o jewry_n to_o galilee_n but_o by_o the_o way_n as_o he_o go_v he_o be_v as_o it_o be_v stay_v abide_v two_o day_n in_o samaria_n notwithstanding_o after_o two_o day_n be_v pass_v he_o proceed_v in_o the_o same_o hereby_o let_v we_o learn_v to_o know_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o course_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v begin_v and_o end_v according_a to_o god_n divine_a will_n 44._o for_o jesus_n himself_o testify_v that_o a_o prophet_n have_v no_o honour_n in_o his_o own_o country_n bu_n the_o evangelist_n brief_o and_o therefore_o obscurelye_o tell_v the_o departure_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o samaria_n but_o if_o we_o confer_v with_o the_o other_o evangelist_n it_o shall_v appear_v that_o he_o leave_v the_o city_n of_o nazareth_n go_v another_o way_n into_o galilee_n c._n for_o when_o he_o see_v that_o he_o be_v contemn_v in_o his_o country_n of_o nazareth_n he_o think_v good_a to_o turn_v out_o of_o the_o way_n to_o another_o place_n a._n concern_v this_o contempt_n read_v in_o the_o thirtéene_a chapter_n of_o matthew_n verse_n fiftye_a and_o seven_o mark_v the_o sixth_o verse_n four_o and_o in_o the_o twenty_o and_o four_o verse_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o luke_n 45._o then_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v come_v into_o galilee_n the_o galilean_n receyve_v he_o when_o they_o have_v see_v all_o the_o thing_n that_o he_o do_v at_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o day_n of_o the_o feast_n for_o they_o go_v also_o to_o the_o feast_n day_n then_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v come_v m._n it_o appear_v that_o the_o evangelist_n endevour_v himself_o to_o show_v how_o christ_n find_v more_o favour_n and_o friendship_n among_o these_o abject_a and_o rude_a samaritan_n and_o galilean_n than_o among_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o excel_v other_o in_o the_o outward_a show_n of_o holiness_n even_o so_o the_o ignorant_a and_o rude_a sort_n of_o man_n be_v more_o ready_a to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n than_o they_o which_o boast_v themselves_o to_o know_v religion_n and_o to_o love_v godliness_n so_o that_o have_v make_v mention_v how_o the_o samaritan_n receyve_v christ_n he_o now_o commend_v the_o same_o also_o in_o the_o galeleans_n be_v a_o nation_n so_o much_o contemn_v that_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr boldlye_o say_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o ever_o any_o prophet_n come_v out_o of_o galilee_n 7.52_o john_n 7.52_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o reject_v christ_n as_o a_o galilean_a c._n moreover_o whether_o this_o honour_n continue_a any_o long_a time_n which_o the_o galilean_n give_v unto_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o perfect_o know_v for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o ready_a than_o the_o forget_n of_o god_n gift_n and_o benefit_n when_o they_o have_v see_v all_o the_o thing_n a._n of_o these_o sign_n it_o be_v speak_v before_o in_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o verse_n of_o the_o second_o chapter_n these_o thing_n want_v not_o their_o fruit_n c._n for_o in_o seek_v to_o prepare_v a_o way_n to_o doctrine_n they_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v reverentlye_o think_v of_o for_o they_o go_v also_o to_o the_o feast_n m._n the_o evangelist_n put_v not_o down_o this_o without_o cause_n for_o beside_o that_o it_o apertain_v to_o the_o purpose_n it_o have_v also_o a_o commendation_n of_o the_o godliness_n of_o this_o people_n which_o so_o careful_o obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n that_o dwell_v far_o of_o they_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o feast_n day_n appoint_v a._n hereof_o also_o we_o may_v take_v a_o example_n of_o the_o obedience_n and_o diligence_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 46._o so_o jesus_n come_v again_o into_o cana_n of_o galilee_n where_o he_o turn_v the_o water_n into_o wine_n and_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a ruler_n who_o son_n be_v sycke_n at_o capernaum_n into_o cana_n of_o galilee_n a._n concern_v this_o city_n and_o the_o miracle_n there_o show_v read_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n go_v before_o m._n the_o evangelist_n make_v mention_v of_o this_o in_o this_o place_n both_o to_o call_v to_o memory_n a_o fresh_a the_o miracle_n of_o the_o water_n turn_v into_o wine_n &_o also_o to_o declare_v that_o christ_n come_v for_o this_o cause_n into_o that_o place_n that_o he_o may_v as_o it_o be_v water_n and_o cause_n that_o to_o grow_v by_o show_v his_o power_n and_o light_v again_o which_o of_o late_a in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o miracle_n he_o have_v plant_v forget_v heavenly_a thing_n be_v soon_o forget_v for_o such_o be_v our_o nature_n and_o corruption_n that_o how_o soever_o we_o have_v attain_v and_o get_v heavenlye_a and_o good_a thing_n except_o they_o be_v afterward_o cause_v to_o prosper_v of_o all_o other_o thing_n they_o will_v most_o easylye_o be_v forget_v but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v evil_a and_o which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o our_o corruption_n the_o which_o although_o they_o be_v lightlye_o get_v they_o willing_o increase_v and_o go_v forward_o insomuch_o that_o it_o be_v true_o say_v the_o first_o beginning_n see_v thou_o withstand_v for_o remeedye_a to_o late_o thou_o do_v provide_v when_o evylles_n have_v the_o upper_a hand_n by_o long_a delay_n still_o to_o abide_v the_o which_o verse_n certain_o can_v be_v verify_v of_o good_a thing_n a._n for_o this_o cause_n christ_n himself_o a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n 12.1_o john_n 12.1_o go_v to_o see_v bethany_n where_o he_o have_v raise_v lazarus_n from_o the_o dead_a the_o apostle_n also_o be_v wont_a to_o see_v again_o the_o church_n which_o they_o have_v plant_v by_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n 15.41_o acts._n 15.41_o to_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o faith_n which_o they_o have_v receyve_v m._n wherefore_o by_o these_o example_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o see_v and_o oversée_v again_o and_o by_o diligent_a husbandry_n to_o set_v forward_o either_o in_o ourselves_o or_o in_o other_o the_o beginning_n of_o good_a thing_n and_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a ruler_n bu_n these_o thing_n also_o which_o follow_v pertain_v to_o that_o which_o go_v before_o for_o they_o prove_v that_o jesus_n be_v even_o the_o very_a same_o who_o hitherto_o he_o preach_v himself_o to_o be_v and_o who_o the_o samaritan_n acknowledge_v and_o receyve_v namely_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o messiah_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n &_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n even_o of_o life_n and_o death_n for_o this_o thing_n he_o most_o manifest_o declare_v by_o his_o present_a act_n m._n it_o appear_v that_o this_o ruler_n be_v one_o of_o the_o servant_n and_o lieftenaunt_n of_o herode_fw-la as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o of_o luke_n the_o seven_o verse_n c._n and_o the_o evangelist_n plain_o express_v his_o state_n &_o condition_n because_o in_o such_o a_o personage_n the_o miracle_n be_v more_o notable_a m._n for_o it_o come_v very_o seldom_o to_o pass_v that_o such_o a_o one_o beléeve_v in_o christ_n special_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o such_o a_o king_n as_o herode_fw-la be_v these_o example_n be_v very_o rare_a and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o nothing_o impossible_a wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o despair_v of_o such_o a._n but_o rather_o pray_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v bring_v they_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v 2.1_o i_o tim._n 2.1_o for_o great_a be_v his_o mercy_n 47._o assoon_o as_o the_o same_o hear_v that_o jesus_n be_v come_v out_o of_o jewry_n into_o galilee_n he_o go_v unto_o he_o and_o beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v come_v down_o and_o heal_v his_o son_n for_o he_o be_v even_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n r._n the_o ruler_n be_v here_o describe_v to_o have_v a_o rude_a and_o a_o childyshe_a faith_n for_o he_o reque_v christ_n that_o he_o will_v go_v down_o to_o capernaum_n &_o heal_v his_o son_n in_o that_o he_o pray_v christ_n to_o heal_v his_o son_n it_o belong_v to_o a_o faith_n conceyve_v by_o those_o miracle_n
please_v he_o and_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n not_o because_o either_o caiphas_n or_o pilate_n constrain_v he_o whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n stand_v uppe_o and_o the_o ruler_n come_v together_o against_o the_o lord_n and_o against_o his_o christ_n and_o of_o a_o truth_n against_o thy_o holy_a child_n jesus_n who_o thou_o have_v anoint_v boath_n herode_fw-la and_o also_o pontius_n pilate_n with_o the_o gentile_n 4.27_o acts._n 4.27_o and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n gather_v themselves_o together_o for_o to_o do_v whatsoever_o thy_o hand_n and_o thy_o counsel_n determine_v before_o to_o be_v do_v so_o all_o the_o godly_a be_v afflict_v not_o because_o their_o adversaries_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n by_o their_o own_o power_n against_o godly_a who_o be_v under_o the_o hand_n and_o most_o mighty_a protection_n of_o god_n but_o because_o so_o it_o please_v the_o will_n of_o their_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o which_o will_n be_v execute_v by_o the_o wicked_a to_o their_o extreme_a destruction_n but_o to_o the_o great_a profit_n of_o the_o godly_a this_o commandment_n have_v i_o receyve_v m._n he_o now_o open_v the_o well_o spring_n of_o his_o power_n name_o his_o father_n commandment_n and_o by_o this_o commandment_n he_o understand_v that_o will_n of_o god_n and_o that_o eternal_a counsel_n by_o which_o he_o have_v determine_v to_o send_v his_o son_n into_o this_o world_n and_o to_o geve_v he_o to_o death_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n c._n of_o the_o which_o counsel_n of_o the_o father_n he_o therefore_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o he_o have_v so_o great_a care_n of_o our_o salvation_n that_o he_o have_v give_v to_o we_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n so_o dear_a and_o precious_a unto_o he_o and_o christ_n himself_o which_o come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o show_v himself_o obedient_a to_o his_o father_n confyrm_v this_o that_o he_o have_v no_o other_o respect_n in_o all_o thing_n than_o to_o do_v we_o good_a m._n therefore_o christ_n in_o all_o thing_n show_v himself_o obedient_a to_o his_o father_n hereupon_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o volume_n of_o thy_o book_n concern_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v do_v thy_o will_n 40.8_o psa_fw-la 40.8_o o_o my_o god_n i_o be_o content_a to_o do_v it_o a._n and_o hereafter_o he_o say_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n come_v and_o find_v nothing_o in_o i_o but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o i_o love_v the_o father_n i3_n john_n i4_n i3_n and_o as_o the_o father_n command_v i_o so_o i_o do_v m._n this_o be_v true_a obedience_n which_o depend_v not_o only_o of_o the_o deed_n but_o also_o of_o the_o divine_a will_n 19_o there_o be_v a_o dissension_n therefore_o again_o among_o the_o jew_n for_o these_o say_n b._n the_o more_o that_o christ_n bewray_v his_o divinitye_n the_o more_o evidentlye_o appear_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o elect_v and_o the_o reprobate_n bu_n and_o as_o truth_n and_o piety_n be_v always_o like_o itself_o so_o falsehood_n and_o impiety_n differ_v not_o a_o straw_n breadth_n from_o itself_o c._n this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o sermon_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o always_o win_v some_o disciple_n or_o other_o to_o himself_o but_o because_o his_o doctrine_n have_v many_o adversaries_n thereof_o come_v the_o contention_n that_o they_o which_o at_o the_o first_o be_v as_o it_o be_v one_o body_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v divide_v among_o themselves_o for_o with_o one_o consent_n all_o man_n profess_v that_o they_o worship_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n and_o that_o they_o follow_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n unity_n christ_n the_o hand_n of_o unity_n but_o now_o when_o christ_n come_v among_o they_o they_o begin_v to_o disagree_v for_o his_o sake_n if_o so_o be_v that_o profession_n have_v be_v true_a christ_n which_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a bond_n of_o charitye_n and_o who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o gather_v the_o disperse_v together_o will_v not_o have_v dissolve_v and_o break_v their_o consent_n and_o agreement_n but_o by_o the_o light_n of_o his_o gospel_n he_o bewray_v the_o hypocrisy_n of_o many_o who_o have_v only_o a_o false_a and_o counterfeit_n show_v boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n man_n contention_n come_v by_o wicked_a man_n thus_o also_o the_o wickedness_n of_o many_o man_n in_o these_o day_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o church_n be_v trouble_v with_o dissension_n and_o that_o contention_n be_v so_o fervent_a &_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o which_o trouble_v the_o peace_n lay_v the_o blame_n upon_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n call_v they_o scismatik_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n special_o the_o godly_a be_v offend_v at_o the_o papist_n because_o their_o doctrine_n have_v shake_v the_o quiet_a state_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o so_o be_v they_o will_v peaceablye_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o christ_n and_o will_v subscribe_v utno_fw-la the_o truth_n all_o contention_n &_o trouble_n will_v straight_o way_n be_v appease_v but_o see_v they_o frete_z and_o fume_n against_o christ_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o godly_a witness_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v at_o rest_n except_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n may_v lie_v hide_v and_o christ_n may_v be_v banish_v from_o his_o kingdom_n they_o falselye_o object_v the_o fault_n of_o schism_n which_o all_o man_n see_v ought_v rather_o to_o be_v impute_v unto_o they_o therefore_o we_o must_v always_o consider_v and_o see_v in_o schismatic_n who_o they_o he_o which_o depart_v from_o god_n and_o his_o pure_a doctrine_n m._n and_o the_o evangelist_n in_o say_v that_o there_o arise_v a_o contention_n again_o send_v the_o reader_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o as_o in_o the_o seven_o and_o nine_o chapter_n 9.16_o joh._n 7.43_o john_n 9.16_o bu_n for_o there_o these_o very_o same_o jew_n withstand_v the_o manifest_a truth_n do_v cause_n no_o small_a trouble_n 20._o and_o many_o of_o they_o say_v he_o have_v the_o devil_n and_o be_v mad_a why_o hear_v you_o he_o m._n this_o cavil_v also_o the_o adversaries_n of_o christ_n use_v before_o c._n they_o do_v defame_n christ_n with_o the_o most_o odious_a reproach_n that_o they_o can_v devise_v that_o all_o man_n may_v abhor_v to_o hear_v he_o m._n for_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v that_o people_n shall_v hear_v he_o with_o delyte_n and_o admiration_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n they_o go_v about_o to_o turn_v away_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o simple_a from_o he_o that_o they_o may_v not_o hear_v he_o any_o more_o afterward_o c._n so_o the_o wicked_a lest_o they_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o geve_v place_n unto_o god_n do_v furiouslye_o contemn_v he_o and_o do_v stir_v up_o other_o also_o to_o the_o like_a madness_n lest_o that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n at_o any_o time_n shall_v be_v hear_v with_o silence_n and_o quietness_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v able_a sufficient_o to_o defend_v itself_o against_o all_o caville_n m._n these_o wicked_a one_o be_v very_o like_a unto_o they_o which_o do_v privitye_n slander_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v hear_v 21._o other_o say_v these_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o he_o that_o have_v the_o devil_n can_v the_o devil_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a bu_n they_o which_o love_v the_o truth_n constantlye_o defend_v the_o same_o m._n and_o do_v defend_v christ_n against_o the_o slander_v of_o the_o wicked_a by_o two_o argument_n the_o first_o be_v by_o his_o find_a and_o unblameable_a doctrine_n the_o other_o be_v take_v of_o the_o present_a power_n of_o his_o miracle_n for_o he_o which_o have_v a_o devil_n can_v not_o hide_v his_o madness_n but_o bewray_v the_o same_o both_o by_o word_n and_o deed_n for_o a_o man_n which_o be_v possess_v with_o a_o devil_n can_v neither_o speak_v nor_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o one_o that_o have_v his_o wit_n can_v do_v c._n that_o therefore_o which_o these_o good_a man_n say_v be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v require_v that_o judgement_n may_v be_v give_v according_a to_o the_o matter_n itself_o for_o truth_n as_o we_o say_v before_o do_v always_o sufficient_o defend_v itself_o and_o this_o be_v the_o only_a buckeler_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o wicked_a can_v never_o bring_v to_o pass_v but_o that_o the_o power_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n shall_v shine_v in_o the_o gospel_n r._n also_o this_o variety_n of_o judgement_n concern_v christ_n be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o world_n for_o the_o world_n must_v be_v judge_v of_o christ_n but_o behold_v now_o it_o usurp_v authority_n unto_o itself_o to_o judge_v christ_n how_o great_a therefore_o
the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n for_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o offer_v and_o set_v himself_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n to_o be_v see_v but_o he_o will_v also_o be_v know_v by_o the_o testimony_n and_o doctrine_n of_o john_n yea_o god_n the_o father_n send_v he_o before_o to_o be_v a_o witness_n to_o his_o son_n christ_n to_o the_o end_n all_o man_n may_v the_o more_o easy_o receyve_v the_o salvation_n offer_v of_o he_o r._n even_o as_o therefore_o the_o lord_n god_n when_o he_o go_v about_o to_o make_v the_o world_n he_o reveal_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o profound_a darkness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v out_o of_o nothing_o by_o the_o word_n even_o so_o when_o he_o go_v about_o to_o restore_v the_o faithful_a and_o to_o repair_v his_o church_n he_o send_v his_o son_n appear_v outwardlye_o and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n even_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v god_n in_o no_o point_n until_o at_o the_o length_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o godhead_n more_o and_o more_o appear_v for_o he_o be_v cover_v with_o the_o fragillitye_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o cross_n least_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n he_o shall_v be_v know_v the_o which_o thing_n be_v foreshow_v by_o esay_n say_v 53_o esay_n 53_o he_o be_v despise_v and_o reject_v of_o man_n he_o be_v a_o man_n full_a of_o sorrow_n and_o have_v experience_n of_o infirmity_n we_o hide_v as_o it_o be_v our_o face_n from_o he_o he_o be_v despise_v and_o we_o esteem_v he_o not_o therefore_o when_o christ_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o cover_v with_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o cross_n he_o do_v not_o amiss_o to_o send_v before_o his_o face_n a_o witness_n for_o so_o also_o the_o lord_n foreshow_v by_o malachy_n that_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v say_v 3_o mala._n 3_o behold_v i_o send_v my_o angel_n and_o he_o shall_v prepare_v the_o way_n before_o thy_o face_n this_o be_v john_n the_o baptist_n which_o be_v send_v of_o god_n first_o that_o he_o may_v bear_v witness_n of_o christ_n although_o his_o grace_n need_v no_o testimony_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v a_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o he_o as_o he_o himself_o declare_v in_o the_o five_o chapter_n say_v 5_o john_n 5_o you_o send_v to_o john_n and_o he_o bare_a witness_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o i_o receyve_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n but_o i_o speak_v these_o thing_n that_o you_o may_v be_v safe_a c._n therefore_o this_o our_o witness_n be_v not_o ordain_v because_o of_o christ_n or_o for_o christ_n sake_n aug._n for_o because_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v so_o make_v man_n that_o the_o godhead_n lie_v hide_v in_o he_o there_o be_v send_v before_o a_o great_a and_o excellent_a man_n by_o who_o testimony_n he_o may_v be_v find_v more_o than_o a_o man_n and_o how_o can_v this_o man_n speak_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n he_o answer_v to_o that_o and_o say_v that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o god_n c._n by_o the_o which_o word_n the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o confirm_v the_o call_n of_o john_n but_o do_v only_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o same_o by_o the_o way_n for_o this_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a certainty_n or_o warrant_v when_o man_n that_o run_v of_o themselves_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v send_v of_o god_n but_o the_o evangelist_n speak_v hereafter_o somewhat_o more_o of_o this_o witness_n think_v it_o sufficient_a in_o one_o word_n to_o show_v that_o he_o come_v not_o but_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n after_o that_o we_o shall_v see_v how_o he_o affirm_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o his_o ministry_n 3._o math._n 1._o math._n 3._o luke_n 3._o m._n and_o he_o begin_v this_o part_n very_o well_o of_o the_o forerunner_n john_n as_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o evangeliste_n do_v for_o from_o the_o time_n of_o johns_n baptism_n that_o light_n have_v take_v upon_o it_o flesh_n 2._o luke_n 2._o math._n 2._o begin_v to_o be_v reveal_v and_o although_o at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o nativity_n certain_a beam_n begin_v to_o shine_v of_o that_o light_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o shepeherd_n of_o simeon_n of_o anna_n and_o of_o the_o wiseman_n yet_o notwithstanding_o whatsoever_o light_n have_v shine_v it_o vanish_v away_o by_o and_o by_o again_o and_o be_v almost_o thirty_o year_n even_o to_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o preach_n obscure_v and_o dareken_v again_o for_o this_o testimony_n of_o john_n be_v reserve_v &_o keep_v even_o until_o the_o same_o time_n in_o the_o which_o christ_n will_v reveal_v himself_o to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o the_o work_n of_o miracle_n that_o he_o be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o christ_n may_v prepare_v the_o way_n before_o he_o the_o which_o thing_n john_n the_o baptist_n sufficient_o declare_v by_o these_o word_n say_v there_o stand_v one_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o you_o who_o you_o know_v not_o objection_n c._n but_o if_o any_o man_n object_n that_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n be_v to_o weak_a be_v but_o a_o man_n that_o christ_n thereby_o shall_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o may_v quick_o answer_v answer_n answer_n that_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v not_o cite_v as_o a_o private_a witness_n but_o because_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o authority_n from_o god_n he_o bear_v rather_o the_o person_n of_o a_o angel_n than_o of_o a_o man_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o beautify_v or_o commend_v with_o the_o title_n of_o his_o own_o virtue_n but_o with_o this_o one_o that_o he_o be_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o mighty_a god._n chr._n judge_n therefore_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v by_o he_o to_o be_v of_o man_n for_o he_o speak_v not_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v his_o own_o but_o the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o he_o that_o send_v he_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v call_v by_o the_o prophet_n a_o angel_n for_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o angel_n to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o his_o own_o but_o that_o for_o which_o he_o be_v send_v c._n but_o we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o same_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o john_n be_v require_v to_o be_v in_o all_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n name_o that_o they_o be_v call_v of_o god_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o teach_v may_v be_v found_v on_o no_o other_o than_o on_o god_n himself_o for_o the_o prophet_n speak_v against_o such_o which_o run_v be_v not_o send_v of_o god_n 10._o jere._n 23._o rom._n 10._o they_o run_v say_v he_o and_o i_o send_v they_o not_o again_o it_o be_v say_v how_o shall_v they_o preach_v except_o they_o be_v send_v and_o to_o be_v send_v of_o god_n be_v to_o do_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n who_o name_n be_v john_n c._n the_o name_n be_v here_o express_v not_o only_o to_o describe_v the_o man_n but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v give_v to_o he_o upon_o consideration_n of_o the_o matter_n itself_o m._n for_o the_o very_a name_n do_v contain_v in_o itself_o the_o signification_n of_o grace_n and_o just_o he_o obtain_v this_o name_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o foreronner_fw-fr and_o first_o preacher_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o world_n by_o christ_n and_o therefore_o by_o god_n appointment_n by_o the_o angel_n he_o receyve_v this_o name_n before_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o that_o not_o without_o the_o wonderful_a admiration_n of_o his_o parent_n 1._o luke_n 1._o c._n but_o the_o lord_n have_v respect_n to_o the_o office_n to_o the_o which_o he_o ordain_v john_n when_o he_o command_v he_o to_o be_v so_o call_v by_o the_o angel_n that_o thereby_o all_o man_n may_v know_v he_o to_o be_v a_o proclaimer_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n of_o god_n 7._o the_o same_o come_v for_o a_o witness_n to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o light_n that_o all_o man_n through_o he_o may_v believe_v the_o same_o come_v for_o a_o m._n now_o consequentlye_o he_o teach_v to_o what_o purpose_n john_n be_v send_v of_o god_n he_o come_v say_v he_o to_o testify_v c._n that_o he_o may_v prepare_v a_o church_n unto_o christ_n for_o he_o invite_v and_o call_v all_o man_n unto_o christ_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v that_o he_o come_v not_o for_o his_o own_o cause_n but_o to_o know_v from_o whence_o to_o who_o &_o what_o time_n john_n come_v that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o third_o of_o luke_n may_v serve_v this_o our_o evangelist_n after_o he_o have_v say_v that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o god_n add_v this_o only_a which_o be_v more_o necessary_a name_o to_o what_o purpose_n he_o come_v be_v send_v of_o god_n namely_o to_o bear_v witness_n m._n the_o prophet_n also_o which_o be_v before_o john_n come_v to_o witness_v that_o be_v to_o say_v
because_o he_o be_v send_v of_o god_n before_o the_o face_n of_o his_o son_n as_o a_o crier_n and_o forerunner_n to_o prepare_v the_o way_n before_o he_o and_o to_o move_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n to_o true_a repentance_n 26._o john_n answer_v they_o say_v i_o baptize_v you_o with_o water_n but_o there_o stand_v one_o among_o you_o who_o you_o know_v not_o c._n concern_v the_o baptism_n of_o john_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v sufficient_o speak_v in_o the_o third_o of_o matthew_n a._n now_o john_n the_o baptist_n do_v secret_o reprehend_v the_o blindness_n of_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o christ_n to_o who_o principal_o they_o shall_v have_v direct_v their_o mind_n and_o he_o do_v always_o inculcate_v this_o diligent_o that_o no_o part_n of_o his_o ministry_n can_v be_v know_v until_o they_o be_v come_v to_o the_o author_n himself_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n stand_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v stir_v up_o their_o endeavour_n to_o know_v he_o m._n and_o he_o note_v therewith_o also_o their_o perverse_a and_o worldly_a judgement_n by_o the_o which_o they_o judge_v of_o the_o man_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o outward_a appearance_n and_o vain_a show_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o be_v conversaunt_a among_o they_o but_o they_o know_v he_o not_o and_o wherefore_o because_o he_o be_v base_a in_o his_o outward_a appearance_n and_o as_o a_o common_a man_n by_o the_o way_n let_v we_o here_o note_v that_o it_o be_v the_o lot_n of_o god_n child_n not_o to_o be_v know_v in_o the_o world_n and_o because_o they_o be_v not_o know_v they_o be_v sure_a to_o have_v reproach_n for_o their_o part_n read_v the_o twelve_o verse_n of_o the_o seventéenth_fw-mi chapter_n of_o matthew_n and_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o the_o third_o chapter_n of_o johns_n first_o epistle_n touch_v the_o seventéenth_n verse_n follow_v read_v the_o third_o of_o matthew_n 28._o these_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o bethabara_n beyond_o jordan_n where_o john_n do_v baptize_v b._n these_o word_n be_v add_v to_o the_o end_n the_o testimony_n may_v be_v more_o certain_a and_o worthy_a true_o be_v this_o testimony_n of_o john_n be_v give_v so_o constantlye_o to_o the_o chief_a rule_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o so_o great_a a_o concourse_n of_o people_n as_o be_v there_o assemble_v this_o answer_n of_o john_n take_v from_o they_o all_o excuse_n that_o may_v afterward_o ensue_v c._n therefore_o the_o note_n of_o the_o place_n do_v not_o only_o make_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o history_n but_o also_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o this_o be_v do_v where_o many_o people_n may_v hear_v it_o be_v a_o place_n of_o great_a resort_n for_o many_o come_v to_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n and_o this_o be_v the_o ordinary_a place_n where_o he_o baptize_v 29._o the_o next_o day_n john_n see_v jesus_n come_v unto_o he_o and_o say_v behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n m._n this_o be_v the_o third_o testimony_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n concern_v christ_n hitherto_o john_n have_v show_v what_o the_o baptist_n witness_v first_o of_o all_o to_o the_o people_n concern_v christ_n be_v absent_a seconde_o what_o answer_v he_o give_v to_o the_o pharisee_n that_o be_v send_v from_o the_o elder_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o now_o consequentlye_o he_o show_v what_o he_o witness_v of_o christ_n open_o he_o be_v present_a c._n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o before_o this_o time_n he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o reveal_n of_o the_o messiah_n but_o when_o christ_n be_v come_v forth_o he_o think_v it_o good_a in_o short_a time_n to_o publish_v his_o proclamation_n concern_v christ_n and_o now_o the_o time_n be_v at_o hand_n in_o the_o which_o christ_n end_v the_o office_n of_o john_n even_o as_o when_o the_o son_n be_v rise_v the_o twy_a light_n as_o we_o call_v it_o vanish_v away_o therefore_o when_o he_o have_v show_v to_o the_o priest_n that_o be_v send_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o of_o who_o the_o truth_n and_o force_n of_o baptism_n shall_v be_v learn_v the_o day_n follow_v he_o show_v he_o open_o and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o christ_n offer_v himself_o into_o the_o presence_n of_o john_n therefore_o the_o next_o day_n follow_v john_n see_v jesus_n come_v to_o he_o m._n but_o from_o whence_o and_o to_o what_o end_n this_o be_v sufficient_o declare_v in_o the_o thirteen_o verse_n of_o the_o third_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n where_o it_o be_v say_v then_o come_v jesus_n from_o galilee_n to_o jordane_n to_o john_n to_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god._n c._n he_o now_o briefelye_o and_o plain_o expound_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n name_o that_o he_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n by_o his_o death_n reconcile_v man_n unto_o god_n christ_n truelye_o bestow_v other_o benefit_n upon_o we_o but_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a upon_o which_o the_o rest_n depend_v that_o he_o in_o pacify_v the_o wrath_n of_o his_o father_n make_v we_o to_o be_v count_v just_a and_o righteous_a for_o out_o of_o this_o well_o flow_v all_o river_n of_o good_a thing_n because_o god_n not_o impute_v our_o sin_n receyve_v we_o into_o his_o favour_n but_o by_o this_o word_n lamb_n he_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o old_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n he_o have_v to_o do_v with_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v accustom_v with_o sacrifice_n can_v be_v no_o otherwise_o teach_v concern_v remission_n of_o sin_n than_o by_o set_v before_o they_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o there_o be_v many_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n he_o make_v mention_v only_o of_o one_o by_o a_o figure_n call_v synecdoche_n and_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o john_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o paschall_n lamb_n so_o that_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v a_o very_a gross_a and_o superstitious_a opinion_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v of_o he_o reproove_v for_o the_o same_o show_v to_o what_o end_n all_o those_o belong_v this_o be_v the_o wicked_a abuse_n of_o sacrifice_v that_o they_o have_v their_o trust_n repose_v and_o fire_v in_o the_o outward_a sign_n therefore_o john_n set_v christ_n before_o they_o affirm_v he_o to_o be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n by_o the_o which_o he_o mean_v that_o whatsoever_o sacrifice_n the_o jew_n be_v wont_a to_o offer_v under_o the_o law_n they_o be_v of_o no_o force_n to_o put_v away_o sin_n but_o be_v only_a figure_n the_o truth_n of_o which_o be_v fulfil_v in_o christ_n himself_o 40_o heb._n 9.10_o psal_n 40_o as_o saint_n paul_n at_o large_a show_v in_o diverse_a place_n saint_n john_n use_v this_o word_n sin_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n for_o all_o kind_n of_o iniquity_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v what_o unrighteousness_n soever_o there_o be_v which_o allienate_v god_n from_o man_n it_o be_v take_v away_o by_o christ_n b._n for_o christ_n be_v he_o alone_o which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n for_o he_o which_o beléeve_v this_o testimony_n will_v crave_v all_o pardon_n for_o his_o offence_n of_o this_o our_o only_a high_a priest_n all_o other_o creature_n set_v apart_o good_a man_n may_v exhort_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o hope_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n at_o his_o hand_n and_o may_v also_o testify_v that_o all_o sin_n be_v true_o remit_v to_o the_o faithful_a but_o they_o can_v not_o remit_v or_o pourge_v sin_n by_o their_o own_o power_n or_o geve_v and_o increase_v faith_n in_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v the_o only_a mean_a to_o take_v away_o sin_n we_o must_v also_o note_v by_o these_o word_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n that_o christ_n be_v manifest_v to_o be_v a_o redemption_n not_o only_o to_o the_o jew_n but_o also_o to_o be_v make_v a_o mediator_n and_o saviour_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o our_o evangelist_n say_v also_o in_o another_o place_n 2_o 1._o epist_n 2_o he_o die_v not_o for_o our_o sin_n only_o but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o which_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o that_o slay_v lamb_n take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o they_o only_o which_o in_o this_o world_n live_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n wheresoever_o no_o it_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v for_o he_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o those_o also_o which_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god._n neither_o do_v any_o other_o thing_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n than_o the_o same_o that_o be_v in_o the_o new_a a_o healer_n of_o our_o soore_n that_o be_v
that_o which_o the_o other_o three_o evangelist_n have_v yet_o notwithstanding_o in_o this_o it_o differ_v from_o that_o which_o they_o declare_v namely_o that_o it_o tend_v to_o a_o other_o end_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v but_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o we_o understande_v the_o history_n of_o this_o present_a chapter_n to_o be_v do_v straight_o after_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o and_o which_o be_v do_v at_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o feast_n of_o penticost_n see_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o follow_v in_o this_o chapter_n be_v do_v when_o passover_n be_v now_o at_o hand_n insomuche_o that_o there_o be_v a_o whole_a year_n lack_v seven_o week_n or_o there_o abouts_o between_o at_o which_o time_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o other_o euaungeliste_n he_o go_v round_o about_o galilee_n after_o he_o have_v leave_v jerusalem_n from_o thence_o he_o come_v to_o genazer_v and_o after_o that_o to_o the_o part_n of_o tyre_n and_o sidon_n and_o return_v again_o into_o galilee_n he_o send_v forth_o his_o apostle_n by_o two_o and_o two_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o then_o last_o of_o all_o after_o their_o return_n and_o the_o behe_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n he_o go_v over_o this_o sea_n of_o tiberias_n c._n for_o the_o other_o evangelist_n say_v that_o this_o be_v do_v after_o the_o death_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n by_o which_o circumstance_n of_o time_n they_o note_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o departure_n of_o christ_n for_o tyrant_n when_o they_o have_v imbrue_v themselves_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o godly_a they_o be_v inflame_v to_o great_a cruelty_n no_o less_o than_o immoderate_a drink_n make_v the_o drunken_a man_n more_o thirsty_a therefore_o christ_n by_o his_o absence_n mean_v to_o pacefye_v the_o fury_n of_o herode_fw-la over_o the_o sea_n of_o galilee_n b._n this_o be_v a_o lake_n which_o be_v call_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o sea_n or_o lake_n of_o cinnereth_n which_o some_o interpret_v the_o sweet_a sea_n and_o be_v call_v of_o the_o greek_n genezar_n or_o genazareth_n m._n of_o this_o josephus_n make_v mention_v in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o war_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o xviii_o chapter_n b._n saint_n john_n call_v it_o the_o sea_n of_o tiberias_n because_o the_o city_n of_o tiberias_n so_o call_v of_o herod_n the_o tetrache_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o tiberias_n caesar_n bound_v upon_o the_o east_n part_n of_o the_o same_o c._n wherefore_o by_o this_o portion_n the_o euangeliste_n do_v more_o plain_o describe_v the_o place_n whether_o christ_n go_v for_o the_o whole_a lake_n be_v not_o call_v the_o sea_n of_o tiberias_n but_o only_o that_o part_n which_o lie_v never_o to_o the_o shore_n upon_o which_o tiberias_n be_v cituate_a b._n the_o evangelist_n mark_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v before_o concern_v the_o cruelty_n of_o herod_n make_v mention_v of_o another_o cause_n of_o this_o cut_n over_o the_o sea_n namely_o that_o christ_n may_v take_v rest_n and_o be_v at_o quiet_a for_o he_o be_v much_o oppress_v of_o the_o people_n howbeit_o they_o do_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o rest_v any_o long_a time_n for_o straight_a way_n they_o follow_v he_o and_o that_o not_o so_o much_o for_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o to_o see_v the_o sign_n which_o he_o wrought_v as_o saint_n john_n testify_v here_o say_v 2._o and_o a_o great_a multitude_n follow_v he_o because_o they_o see_v his_o miracle_n which_o he_o do_v on_o they_o that_o be_v disease_v m._n the_o eunagelist_n make_v mention_v of_o this_o because_o of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o history_n which_o follow_v in_o which_o he_o will_v declare_v what_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o people_n be_v satisfy_v &_o most_o miraculous_o feed_v lest_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o mention_v of_o this_o before_o a_o man_n may_v doubt_v how_o so_o great_a number_n of_o people_n can_v be_v assemble_v together_o in_o a_o wilderness_n &_o desert_n place_n he_o add_v also_o the_o cause_n which_o move_v this_o great_a multitude_n to_o forsake_v the_o city_n and_o to_o come_v into_o this_o desert_n place_n from_o far_a and_o to_o follow_v the_o lord_n c._n for_o they_o be_v thus_o desirouse_v to_o follow_v christ_n because_o they_o behold_v his_o power_n in_o the_o miracle_n be_v persuade_v that_o he_o be_v some_o great_a prophet_n send_v of_o god_n whereupon_o they_o have_v so_o earnest_a a_o desire_n to_o hear_v christ_n that_o forget_v themselves_o abode_n till_o night_n in_o a_o desert_a place_n void_a of_o all_o care_n care_n care_v for_o eavenly_a thing_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v beforâ_n a_o worldly_a care_n how_o can_v we_o now_o excuse_v our_o sloth_n and_o negligence_n in_o that_o we_o do_v not_o prefer_v the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n before_o the_o care_n for_o the_o satisfy_n of_o hunger_n but_o be_v draw_v away_o from_o the_o meditation_n of_o everlasting_a life_n by_o every_o small_a entisement_n yea_o very_o seldom_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o christ_n find_v we_o free_a and_o untie_v from_o obstacle_n and_o let_v of_o this_o world_n all_o man_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v so_o far_o from_o follow_v christ_n to_o the_o desert_a mountain_n that_o scarce_o the_o ten_o man_n can_v receyve_v he_o when_o he_o offer_v himself_o to_o come_v home_o to_o his_o house_n in_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o commodity_n m._n but_o in_o that_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n follow_v christ_n because_o of_o the_o miracle_n which_o he_o wrought_v it_o may_v be_v so_o for_o diverse_a cause_n for_o part_v as_o it_o be_v likely_a because_o they_o gather_v by_o these_o sign_n that_o this_o man_n be_v send_v of_o god_n follow_v he_o that_o they_o may_v hear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n at_o his_o mouth_n part_n be_v curiouse_a desire_v to_o see_v and_o hear_v new_a and_o strange_a thing_n part_n seek_v either_o for_o their_o friend_n or_o for_o themselves_o corporal_a health_n and_o thus_o this_o multitude_n be_v diverse_o affection_a although_o this_o which_o the_o evangelist_n hear_v speak_v concern_v the_o see_v of_o the_o lord_n miracle_n belong_v to_o all_o this_o concourse_n and_o flock_v of_o the_o come_v people_n to_o christ_n be_v like_a unto_o the_o come_n of_o those_o which_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o gospel_n gréedelye_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o same_o who_o sundry_a affection_n be_v hard_a to_o be_v discern_v c._n moreover_o here_o the_o evangelist_n omit_v that_o which_o the_o other_o three_o evangelist_n have_v namely_o that_o christ_n spend_v part_n of_o the_o day_n in_o teach_v and_o in_o heal_v the_o sick_a and_o now_o that_o the_o sun_n be_v ready_a to_o set_v his_o disciple_n pray_v he_o to_o send_v away_o the_o people_n for_o he_o think_v it_o sufficient_a brieflye_n to_o handle_v the_o same_o that_o by_o this_o occasion_n he_o may_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o text_n which_o follow_v hereafter_o 3._o and_o jesus_n go_v up_o into_o a_o mountain_n and_o there_o he_o sit_v with_o his_o disciple_n m._n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o go_v a_o part_n into_o a_o desert_n place_n to_o recreate_v also_o and_o to_o refresh_v his_o disciple_n for_o the_o which_o purpose_n this_o mountain_n seem_v a_o very_a fit_n place_n both_o for_o the_o shadow_n which_o be_v in_o the_o same_o against_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o also_o for_o the_o convenient_a place_n of_o rest_n read_v the_o sixth_o of_o mark_n in_o our_o exposition_n upon_o the_o one_o and_o thirty_o verse_n 4._o and_o the_o passeover_n a_o feast_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v nigh_o bu_n at_o this_o feast_n the_o jew_n do_v celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o those_o benefit_n which_o their_o forefather_n have_v receive_v in_o old_a time_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n question_n m._n therefore_o it_o may_v here_o be_v demand_v if_o the_o passeover_n be_v at_o hand_n why_o the_o lord_n go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n according_a to_o moses_n law_n rather_o than_o to_o this_o desert_a mountain_n 16.16_o deu._n 16.16_o or_o if_o he_o will_v not_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n because_o of_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr wherefore_o he_o exhort_v not_o the_o people_n which_o follow_v he_o to_o ascend_v thither_o for_o the_o obedience_n sake_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o the_o law_n as_o touch_v that_o which_o concern_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n answer_v answer_v we_o may_v easylye_o answer_v he_o have_v oftentimes_o ascend_v thither_o lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o contemn_v and_o break_v the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o when_o the_o jew_n hegan_v to_o abuse_v the_o feast_n day_n as_o a_o occasion_n of_o cruelty_n he_o do_v very_o well_o to_o absent_v himself_o from_o they_o lest_o he_o shall_v by_o
of_o the_o priesthood_n and_o temple_n seem_v to_o require_v 66.2_o esay_n 66.2_o that_o christ_n shall_v rather_o have_v go_v about_o in_o the_o same_o rather_o than_o in_o galilee_n which_o be_v a_o obscure_a and_o infamous_a land_n furthermore_o he_o may_v run_v into_o suspicion_n because_o he_o shon_v the_o light_n forsake_v jurye_n because_o of_o the_o scribe_n and_o phariseis_n man_n learn_v in_o the_o law_n and_o rather_o desire_v to_o go_v about_o in_o galilee_n among_o ignorant_a man_n and_o unskilful_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o to_o preach_v his_o doctrine_n there_o than_o among_o the_o learned_a in_o jury_n necessarilye_o therefore_o the_o euaunuangelist_n have_v show_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o matter_n declare_v that_o the_o malice_n and_o cruelty_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o the_o lord_n leave_v jury_n go_v into_o galliee_n c._n for_o he_o have_v no_o safe_a abide_v among_o the_o jew_n if_o any_o man_n think_v it_o absurd_a that_o christ_n seek_v to_o hide_v himself_o which_o with_o a_o beck_n can_v break_v and_o disappoint_v the_o devise_n of_o his_o enemy_n let_v he_o consider_v what_o person_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v bear_v at_o his_o father_n appointment_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n he_o think_v it_o good_a to_o keep_v himself_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o a_o man_n for_o because_o he_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n he_o flee_v and_o shon_v peril_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n until_o such_o time_n as_o his_o father_n exalt_v he_o and_o although_o he_o know_v the_o prefix_a time_n of_o his_o death_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o behave_v himself_o as_o a_o man_n subject_n to_o danger_n wherefore_o it_o become_v he_o not_o rashlye_a to_o cast_v himself_o into_o the_o midst_n of_o danger_n but_o he_o so_o shon_v periles_fw-la that_o nevertheless_o he_o swerve_v not_o from_o the_o course_n of_o his_o office_n no_o not_o the_o breadth_n of_o a_o nail_n for_o wherefore_o have_v we_o health_n god_n health_n âo_o give_v ãâã_d to_o ãâã_d god_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o our_o life_n but_o only_o to_o serve_v the_o lord_n let_v we_o therefore_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o lose_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o lyve_a for_o life_n b._n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o also_o to_o flee_v from_o perryll_n so_o that_o we_o do_v not_o hynder_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n by_o our_o flight_n the_o evangelist_n say_v not_o that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v forsake_v jurye_n because_o the_o jew_n be_v sinner_n for_o the_o galilean_v also_o be_v sinner_n who_o notwithstanding_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o do_v not_o disdain_v moreover_o he_o be_v oftentimes_o read_v to_o have_v eat_v and_o keep_v company_n with_o publican_n and_o sinner_n god_n cruelty_n against_o christ_n exclude_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o forsake_v the_o jew_n because_o they_o be_v sinner_n not_o everye_o sin_n exclude_v this_o grace_n of_o god_n kingdom_n but_o this_o bloodthyrstinesse_n and_o cruelty_n of_o the_o jew_n exclude_v it_o 2._o the_o jew_n feast_n of_o tabernacle_n be_v at_o hand_n c._n it_o be_v probable_a and_o lykelye_a that_o this_o happen_v the_o second_o year_n of_o baptism_n b._n this_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n or_o tent_n be_v so_o call_v because_o of_o israel_n abode_n in_o their_o tent_n seven_o day_n tent_n feast_n of_o tent_n for_o a_o remembrance_n that_o god_n make_v their_o father_n to_o dwell_v in_o tent_n when_o he_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n m._n this_o feast_n be_v celebrate_v from_o the_o fiftéenth_fw-mi day_n of_o the_o seven_o month_n which_o we_o call_v october_n unto_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o day_n of_o the_o same_o as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o levitticus_n c._n we_o have_v show_v before_o in_o the_o thirteen_o verse_n of_o the_o second_o chapter_n that_o there_o be_v two_o cause_n which_o move_v our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o feast_n day_n 23.34_o levi._n 23.34_o but_o now_o the_o evangelist_n show_v that_o christ_n so_o rest_v in_o galilee_n as_o though_o he_o will_v not_o come_v at_o all_o to_o jerusalem_n a._n although_o he_o be_v appoint_v to_o ascend_v thither_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o 3._o his_o brethren_n therefore_o say_v unto_o he_o get_v thou_o hence_o and_o go_v into_o jury_n that_o thy_o disciple_n also_o may_v see_v the_o work_n that_o thou_o do_v b._n the_o evangelist_n call_v the_o cousin_n and_o kinsman_n of_o our_o saviour_n his_o brethren_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o scripture_n c._n for_o by_o this_o name_n the_o jew_n comprend_v all_o kinsman_n in_o what_o degree_n of_o blood_n soever_o they_o be_v 46_o mat_n i2_n 46_o as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o another_o place_n b._n they_o therefore_o which_o do_v not_o béeléeve_v that_o he_o be_v the_o same_o who_o he_o preach_v himself_o to_o be_v admonish_v he_o strong_o to_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o feast_n day_n and_o there_o where_o all_o israel_n come_v together_o to_o make_v himself_o open_o know_v what_o he_o be_v for_o they_o know_v that_o his_o abide_v in_o galilee_n be_v to_o shoe_n the_o madness_n and_o wrath_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o he_o have_v provoke_v against_o he_o by_o heal_v the_o man_n which_o be_v disease_v eyghte_a and_o thirty_o year_n c._n for_o christ_n be_v deryde_v of_o those_o his_o kinsman_n because_o he_o flee_v as_o it_o be_v from_o the_o light_n lie_v hide_v in_o a_o obscure_a and_o base_a corner_n of_o judea_n by_o the_o name_n of_o disciple_n they_o understande_v not_o enelye_o such_o as_o be_v domestical_a and_o his_o familyare_a disciple_n but_o also_o such_o as_o he_o mean_v to_o get_v unto_o he_o from_o diverse_a place_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n 4._o for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o secret_a and_o he_o himself_o seek_v to_o be_v know_v open_o if_o thou_o do_v such_o thing_n show_v thyself_o open_o to_o the_o world_n r._n these_o word_n of_o christ_n kinsman_n may_v be_v understande_v to_o be_v speak_v either_o contemptuouslye_o or_o else_o wise_o but_o howsoever_o yet_o carnallye_o if_o they_o be_v word_n of_o contempt_n than_o they_o have_v this_o meaning_n why_o do_v thou_o glory_n and_o boast_v so_o much_o before_o we_o of_o thyself_o if_o thou_o be_v such_o a_o manner_n of_o man_n as_o thou_o brag_v thyself_o to_o be_v why_o do_v thou_o not_o go_v into_o jury_n where_o there_o be_v man_n boath_n mighty_a noble_a and_o holy_a and_o also_o learned_a and_o wise_a if_o thou_o be_v descend_v from_o heaven_n what_o need_v thou_o fear_v the_o threaten_n of_o man_n if_o thou_o desire_v glory_n and_o praise_n as_o we_o perceyve_v great_o thou_o do_v why_o do_v thou_o lurk_v in_o a_o obscure_a corner_n of_o galilee_n go_v thy_o way_n up_o to_o jerusalem_n and_o there_o thou_o shall_v have_v just_a occasion_n offer_v thou_o to_o seek_v thy_o praise_n and_o glory_n but_o if_o thou_o will_v have_v these_o word_n speak_v wiselye_o for_o good_a advice_n than_o this_o be_v the_o scence_n because_o now_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n be_v at_o hand_n at_o which_o time_n a_o great_a multitude_n come_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n according_a to_o the_o law_n the_o kinsman_n of_o christ_n take_v counsel_n together_o among_o themselves_o that_o when_o christ_n shall_v seem_v to_o handle_v his_o matter_n fearful_o and_o without_o discretion_n they_o will_v exhort_v he_o for_o kindred_n sake_n not_o to_o neglect_v his_o fame_n but_o to_o go_v up_o with_o they_o at_o the_o feast_n day_n whereby_o he_o shall_v confirm_v his_o authority_n before_o the_o jew_n which_o he_o have_v partelye_o get_v already_o by_o his_o miracle_n neither_o do_v they_o only_o seek_v his_o praise_n but_o their_o own_o fame_n also_o which_o shall_v come_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o kiseman_n they_o say_v therefore_o why_o do_v thou_o lurk_v here_o so_o obscurelye_o who_o do_v thou_o fear_v why_o do_v thou_o so_o undiscréetelye_o handle_v thy_o business_n we_o for_o the_o natural_a love_n which_o we_o owe_v unto_o thou_o earnest_o exhort_v thou_o that_o thou_o go_v up_o with_o we_o to_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o feast_n day_n to_o confirm_v and_o approve_v thy_o authority_n there_o that_o thy_o glory_n may_v be_v more_o famous_a and_o that_o thou_o may_v win_v a_o great_a number_n of_o disciple_n boath_n by_o thy_o doctrine_n and_o also_o by_o thy_o miracle_n for_o we_o see_v that_o thou_o do_v many_o great_a and_o wonderful_a thing_n but_o yet_o not_o so_o wiselye_o as_o thou_o shall_v because_o thou_o withdrawe_v thyself_o from_o the_o multitude_n and_o great_a company_n of_o man_n and_o lie_v hide_v in_o a_o corner_n of_o galilee_n where_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o glory_n or_o praise_n
people_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o they_o will_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o by_o the_o which_o word_n they_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o both_o piety_n and_o also_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o rare_a and_o unwonted_a thing_n that_o hypocrite_n be_v far_o from_o all_o true_a sincere_a piety_n and_o from_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n shall_v challenge_v unto_o themselves_o both_o of_o they_o these_o man_n be_v so_o blind_a that_o they_o have_v no_o consideration_n of_o their_o parent_n which_o come_v between_o abraham_n and_o they_o be_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n idolater_n but_o consider_v only_o the_o first_o original_n of_o their_o nation_n and_o boast_v of_o the_o covenaunt_n which_o god_n once_o make_v with_o they_o so_o bold_o also_o be_v the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n who_o although_o they_o be_v the_o posterity_n of_o idolater_n and_o idolater_n themselves_o yet_o nevertheless_o because_o of_o the_o pure_a beginning_n of_o christiamisme_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o god_n covenaunt_n do_v say_v even_o as_o these_o jew_n do_v we_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o fornication_n 42._o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o if_o god_n be_v your_o father_n truelye_o you_o will_v love_v i_o for_o i_o procee_v forth_o and_o come_v from_o god_n neither_o come_v i_o of_o myself_o but_o he_o send_v i_o bu_n christ_n refall_v this_o wicked_a bold_a and_o impudent_a boast_v of_o the_o jew_n and_o for_o certain_a cause_n convince_v they_o of_o a_o lie_n m._n and_o he_o reason_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o true_a son_n after_o this_o manner_n c._n whosoever_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n know_v and_o love_v his_o first_o beget_v son_n but_o you_o hate_v i_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v boast_n your_o self_n to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n this_o place_n be_v diligent_o to_o be_v noated_a that_o there_o be_v no_o piety_n no_o fear_n of_o god_n where_o christ_n be_v reject_v false_a and_o counterfayte_v religion_n boldelye_o boast_v of_o god_n but_o what_o agreement_n can_v they_o have_v with_o the_o father_n which_o disagree_v with_o the_o only_a son_n what_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v this_o where_o his_o lively_a image_n be_v reject_v in_o vain_a therefore_o do_v the_o jew_n in_o vain_a do_v the_o turk_n boast_n of_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n when_o as_o with_o obstinate_a mind_n they_o reject_v all_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n c._n when_o christ_n say_v that_o he_o come_v from_o god_n he_o give_v the_o jew_n to_o understande_v that_o they_o can_v object_v any_o thing_n unto_o he_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n and_o that_o no_o terrestrial_a or_o human_a thing_n can_v be_v find_v in_o his_o doctrine_n and_o office_n for_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v here_o of_o divine_a essence_n as_o some_o think_v but_o of_o his_o office_n 43._o why_o do_v you_o not_o know_v my_o speech_n even_o because_o you_o can_v know_v my_o word_n he_o add_v another_o argument_n whereby_o he_o evident_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o god_n c._n and_o withal_o cast_v in_o their_o tooth_n their_o obstinacye_n which_o be_v such_o that_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o hear_v he_o speak_v hereupon_o he_o gather_v that_o they_o be_v carry_v headelonge_v with_o divelishe_a malice_n and_o outrage_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v m._n they_o which_o be_v the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o voice_n of_o their_o father_n house_n bu_n if_o therefore_o you_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o you_o know_v not_o my_o voice_n he_o speak_v unto_o you_o by_o i_o child_n common_o know_v their_o parent_n voice_n even_o as_o sheep_n know_v the_o voice_n of_o their_o shéepehearde_n but_o see_v you_o know_v not_o my_o doctrine_n which_o appertain_v to_o my_o father_n it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o controversy_n that_o you_o be_v none_o of_o my_o father_n child_n 44._o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o your_o father_n will_v you_o do_v he_o be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o truth_n because_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o in_o he_o when_o he_o speak_v a_o lie_n he_o speak_v of_o his_o own_o for_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n you_o be_v of_o the_o father_n m._n thus_o far_o forth_o he_o have_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o the_o son_n of_o abraham_n nor_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o which_o they_o false_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o and_o now_o consequentlye_o he_o show_v who_o be_v their_o true_a father_n c._n and_o that_o which_o before_o he_o have_v speak_v obscurelye_o he_o now_o open_o discover_v namely_o that_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devyll_n murderer_n the_o devil_n a_o murderer_n but_o we_o must_v understand_v here_o the_o antithesis_fw-la or_o comparison_n that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v such_o mortal_a enemy_n to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n except_o they_o have_v a_o father_n which_o be_v a_o perpetual_a enemy_n to_o god_n m._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v now_o you_o pretend_v god_n to_o be_v your_o father_n when_o as_o indeed_o you_o be_v neither_o the_o true_a son_n of_o abraham_n nor_o of_o god_n in_o one_o word_n i_o will_v show_v you_o who_o be_v your_o father_n who_o you_o express_v even_o as_o his_o very_a son_n boath_n in_o disposition_n and_o in_o manner_n yea_o who_o be_v such_o as_o i_o find_v you_o to_o be_v who_o soever_o you_o fain_v yourselves_o to_o be_v and_o whatsoever_o you_o will_v be_v account_v of_o in_o this_o world_n you_o have_v the_o devil_n to_o your_o father_n c._n and_o he_o call_v they_o the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n not_o because_o they_o do_v imitate_v he_o but_o also_o because_o by_o his_o impulsion_n they_o be_v carry_v to_o war_n against_o christ_n for_o as_o we_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o only_o because_o we_o be_v like_a unto_o he_o but_o also_o because_o he_o do_v govern_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o because_o christ_n do_v live_v and_o grow_v in_o we_o that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o like_a unto_o the_o image_n of_o his_o father_n so_o again_o the_o devil_n be_v say_v to_o be_v their_o father_n who_o mind_n he_o blind_v and_o who_o heart_n he_o instigate_v and_o prick_v forward_o to_o all_o unrighteousness_n in_o who_o also_o he_o rule_v mighty_o excercise_v his_o tirannye_n m._n the_o manichee_n have_v abuse_v this_o place_n and_o such_o like_a insomuch_o that_o they_o have_v make_v two_o beginning_n one_o of_o evil_a thing_n and_o the_o other_o of_o good_a thing_n c._n but_o in_o vain_a for_o as_o when_o the_o scripture_n call_v we_o the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o same_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o original_n of_o substance_n but_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spyrite_n which_o do_v regenerate_v we_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n even_o so_o this_o say_n of_o christ_n do_v nothing_o appertain_v to_o the_o original_n of_o substance_n but_o to_o the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n the_o cause_n and_o original_n whereof_o be_v the_o fall_n of_o man_n in_o that_o therefore_o man_n be_v bear_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devyll_n we_o must_v not_o impute_v the_o same_o to_o the_o creation_n but_o to_o the_o wickedness_n of_o sin_n christ_n prove_v this_o of_o the_o effect_n because_o they_o be_v prove_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n and_o mind_n to_o follow_v the_o devyll_n m._n after_o this_o manner_n he_o call_v judas_n the_o devyll_n as_o we_o hear_v before_o in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n verse_n three_o score_n and_o ten_o not_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n but_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o traitor_n a._n and_o saint_n john_n say_v in_o his_o epistle_n that_o cain_n be_v of_o that_o wicked_a because_o he_o slay_v his_o brother_n 3.12_o 1._o iho._n 3.12_o and_o he_o affirm_v he_o which_o sin_v to_o be_v of_o the_o devyll_n all_o which_o thing_n be_v speak_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o creation_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o imitation_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v refer_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o natural_a and_o substantial_a original_n he_o be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n c._n christ_n express_v what_o those_o desire_n be_v which_o the_o ungodly_a of_o their_o own_o accord_n and_o mind_n follow_v and_o he_o repeat_v two_o kind_n namely_o cruelty_n and_o li_v in_o the_o which_o thing_n the_o jew_n wear_v too_o like_a to_o the_o devil_n in_o that_o he_o say_v he_o be_v a_o murderer_n he_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o he_o seek_v man_n destruction_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o man_n be_v create_v
themselves_o and_o think_v that_o they_o shall_v escape_v unpunished_a for_o abuse_v christ_n he_o add_v hear_v a_o horrible_a threaten_n that_o although_o he_o rest_v and_o suffer_v yet_o his_o only_a doctrine_n shall_v suffice_v to_o condemn_v they_o even_o as_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v that_o there_o shall_v need_v no_o other_o judge_n but_o moses_n in_o who_o they_o do_v glory_n therefore_o the_o sense_n be_v this_o 5.45_o john_n 5.45_o i_o earnest_o desire_v your_o salvation_n do_v not_o use_v my_o authority_n in_o condemninge_v you_o but_o do_v whole_o seek_v to_o save_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v yet_o think_v not_o you_o that_o you_o be_v therefore_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n bu_n for_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v unpunished_a and_o go_v away_o without_o judgement_n which_o contemn_v and_o reject_v the_o son_n of_o god_n c._n for_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o least_o the_o only_a word_n which_o you_o have_v despise_v shall_v be_v a_o sufficient_a and_o meet_a judge_n and_o receyve_v not_o my_o word_n c._n this_o latter_a part_n be_v a_o exposition_n of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o m._n for_o in_o these_o word_n it_o be_v declare_v âhat_n it_o be_v to_o object_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o what_o they_o be_v which_o reject_v he_o c._n for_o because_o man_n have_v hypocrisy_n ingraff_v in_o they_o by_o nature_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o easy_a for_o they_o than_o in_o word_n to_o boast_v that_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o receive_v christ_n and_o we_o see_v how_o common_a this_o vain_a boast_n be_v even_o among_o the_o most_o wicked_a wherefore_o we_o must_v remember_v this_o definition_n name_o that_o christ_n be_v reject_v when_o we_o embrace_v not_o the_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospoll_n m._n even_o as_o to_o receive_v christ_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o receyve_v his_o word_n by_o a_o lively_a faith_n c._n the_o papist_n brag_v with_o openne_n mouth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o same_o be_v preach_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o hatfull_a unto_o they_o these_o kiss_n christ_n as_o judas_n do_v therefore_o let_v we_o learn_v to_o include_v he_o in_o his_o word_n and_o geve_v unto_o he_o that_o worshipe_n of_o obedience_n only_o which_o he_o require_v the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v c._n he_o can_v not_o by_o a_o more_o gloriousse_n title_n extol_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n than_o when_o he_o geve_v the_o power_n of_o judge_v unto_o the_o same_o for_o accord_v to_o these_o word_n the_o last_o judgement_n shall_v be_v nothing_o else_o than_o a_o approvinge_a of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o christ_n shall_v site_n upon_o his_o tribunal_n seat_n but_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o will_v pronounce_v that_o sentence_n out_o of_o his_o word_n which_o he_o now_o preach_v this_o threaten_a aught_o to_o make_v the_o wicked_a much_o afeard_a when_o they_o can_v escape_v the_o judgement_n of_o his_o doctrine_n which_o they_o now_o so_o proud_o contemn_v again_o hereby_o come_v a_o wonderful_a consolation_n to_o the_o godly_a that_o howsoever_o they_o be_v now_o condemn_v of_o the_o world_n they_o be_v notwithstanding_o already_o justefied_a in_o heaven_n because_o whersoever_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v this_o feat_n the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n be_v errect_v to_o save_v we_o bear_v ourselves_o bold_a upon_o this_o authority_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v care_v for_o the_o papist_n with_o their_o preposterous_a judgemente_n because_o our_o faith_n reach_v above_o the_o angel_n bu_n therefore_o let_v we_o well_o remember_v this_o and_o let_v we_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o despise_v not_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o we_o in_o his_o gospel_n 49_o for_o i_o have_v not_o speak_v of_o myself_o but_o the_o father_n which_o send_v i_o he_o give_v i_o commandment_n what_o i_o shall_v say_v and_o what_o i_o shall_v speak_v c._n least_o the_o external_a show_n of_o man_n shall_v diminish_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n christ_n call_v we_o from_o the_o fame_n unto_o his_o father_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o make_v mention_n so_o often_o time_n of_o his_o father_n and_o very_o see_v it_o be_v great_a wickedness_n to_o transfer_v unto_o any_o other_o any_o part_n of_o the_o divine_a glory_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o same_o word_n come_v from_o god_n to_o which_o judgement_n be_v give_v bu_n christ_n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n do_v very_o strong_o maintain_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o prove_v the_o same_o not_o to_o be_v humane_a but_o divine_a undoubted_a and_o authentical_a c._n also_o here_o he_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o his_o father_n not_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a person_n simp_o but_o rather_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n lest_o the_o doctrine_n be_v judge_v to_o be_v of_o man_n shall_v have_v the_o less_o weight_n and_o auctoritye_n moreover_o if_o so_o be_v the_o conscience_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o human_a law_n this_o reason_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o serve_v that_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v a_o judge_n because_o the_o same_o have_v not_o come_v from_o man_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o saint_n james_n there_o be_v one_o law_n gever_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o to_o destroy_v moreover_o hereby_o we_o may_v gather_v what_o wicked_a and_o cruel_a sacrilege_n that_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n dare_v presume_v to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n unto_o his_o imagination_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o arrogate_v more_o unto_o himself_o then_o do_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o deny_v that_o he_o speak_v any_o thing_n but_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n and_o prescript_n of_o his_o father_n a._n the_o which_o he_o do_v not_o only_o here_o affirm_v but_o very_o often_o also_o for_o the_o commendation_n of_o his_o doctrine_n as_o in_o the_o seven_o and_o eyghte_a chapter_n goinge_v before_o 50_o and_o i_o know_v that_o his_o commandment_n be_v life_n everlasting_a whatsoever_o i_o speak_v therefore_o even_o as_o the_o father_n bid_v i_o so_o i_o speak_v c._n again_o he_o commend_v the_o fruit_n of_o his_o doctrine_n to_o the_o end_n all_o man_n may_v the_o more_o willing_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o the_o same_o m._n for_o he_o say_v not_o simple_o and_o his_o commandment_n be_v everlasting_a life_n but_o he_o say_v i_o know_v that_o his_o commandment_n be_v everlasting_a life_n this_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n towards_o mankind_n he_o know_v what_o to_o teach_v and_o wherefore_o he_o be_v send_v namely_o to_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v he_o send_v of_o the_o father_n that_o he_o may_v be_v to_o the_o faithful_a the_o author_n of_o everlasting_a life_n this_o certain_o also_o become_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n who_o ought_v to_o teach_v no_o other_o thing_n then_o that_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v in_o commandment_n the_o which_o if_o they_o do_v they_o also_o may_v say_v we_o speak_v not_o of_o ourselves_o but_o he_o which_o have_v send_v we_o have_v give_v we_o a_o commandment_n what_o we_o shall_v teach_v and_o we_o know_v that_o his_o commandment_n be_v eternal_a life_n a_o excellent_a title_n verylye_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o everlasting_a life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n or_o preach_v of_o grace_n commit_v by_o the_o father_n to_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o eternal_a life_n which_o he_o promise_v to_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o r._n for_o this_o commandment_n the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o the_o son_n that_o he_o shall_v descend_v into_o this_o world_n and_o save_v all_o those_o that_o beeléeve_v for_o so_o god_n love_v the_o whrlde_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o every_o one_o which_o beléeve_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v life_n everlasting_a m._n the_o law_n also_o be_v command_v to_o moses_n but_o it_o be_v give_v upon_o mount_n sina_n with_o fear_n tremble_a and_o lead_v to_o death_n but_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n give_v to_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n preach_v in_o zion_n and_o spread_v from_o thence_o throughout_o the_o whoale_n world_n be_v peaceable_a and_o sweet_a and_o wrighten_a by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o table_n of_o their_o heart_n which_o believe_v offer_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o everlasting_a life_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v c._n it_o be_v meet_v therefore_o that_o they_o feel_v the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n which_o be_v so_o wicked_o bend_v that_o they_o now_o refuse_v he_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o life_n
even_o as_o the_o father_n bid_v i_o so_o i_o speak_v r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v when_o i_o call_v myself_o the_o well_o of_o life_n the_o quicken_a bread_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n i_o speak_v these_o thing_n because_o my_o father_n so_o command_v i_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o which_o will_v drink_v which_o will_v be_v fill_v which_o will_v see_v rise_v again_o and_o live_v everlastinglye_o may_v come_v unto_o i_o and_o believe_v in_o i_o a._n for_o these_o thing_n i_o speak_v that_o you_o may_v attain_v to_o everlasting_a salvation_n through_o i_o â§_o the_o xiij_o chapter_n 1_o before_o the_o feast_n of_o passover_n when_o jesus_n know_v that_o his_o hour_n be_v come_v that_o he_o shall_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o father_n when_o he_o love_v he_o which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n unto_o the_o end_n he_o love_v they_o before_o the_o feast_n of_o passover_n b._n the_o other_o euangelyste_n in_o this_o place_n bring_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o the_o whole_a mystery_n hereof_o be_v ordain_v to_o this_o end_n that_o by_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v and_o by_o the_o cup_n which_o we_o bless_v we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o whereby_o also_o the_o lord_n do_v more_o and_o more_o live_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o therefore_o see_v saint_n john_n have_v already_o speak_v of_o the_o lord_n word_n concern_v the_o true_a perticipation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o his_o sixth_o chapter_n he_o omit_v here_o the_o narration_n of_o the_o supper_n for_o the_o right_n of_o the_o eucharist_n begin_v long_o before_o to_o be_v familiar_a and_o well_o know_v to_o all_o christian_n pretermit_v therefore_o those_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o eucharist_n c._n and_o many_o other_o thing_n also_o which_o he_o know_v be_v put_v down_o by_o matthew_n and_o the_o rest_n he_o take_v in_o hand_n to_o entreat_v of_o that_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v omit_v as_o of_o this_o stoarie_a concern_v the_o wash_n of_o the_o disciple_n when_o jesus_n know_v that_o his_o hour_n be_v come_v m._n the_o evangelist_n write_v this_o to_o forewarn_v the_o reader_n that_o he_o think_v not_o that_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o shall_v read_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v happen_v without_o the_o foresight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o suffer_v a._n judas_n very_o the_o disciple_n not_o know_v of_o the_o same_o conspire_v with_o the_o ruler_n and_o high_a priest_n to_o betray_v jesus_n but_o the_o same_o be_v not_o unknowen_a unto_o christ_n whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v hereafter_o and_o jesus_n know_v all_o thing_n that_o shall_v come_v on_o he_o go_v forth_o therefore_o so_o often_o as_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n shall_v practice_v any_o thing_n against_o we_o let_v we_o commit_v all_o thing_n unto_o he_o who_o can_v provide_v for_o we_o and_o our_o matter_n well_o enough_o that_o i_o shall_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n c._n this_o be_v a_o speech_n worthy_a to_o be_v noated_a for_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o know_v his_o death_n to_o be_v a_o passage_n unto_o the_o heavenlye_a kingdom_n of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o he_o make_v haste_n thither_o do_v not_o let_v to_o love_v his_o disciple_n as_o he_o be_v wont_a there_o be_v no_o cause_n now_o why_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o his_o affection_n be_v alter_v and_o now_o see_v he_o be_v the_o first_o béegotten_v among_o the_o dead_a this_o definition_n of_o death_n pertain_v to_o the_o whoale_n body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v a_o passage_n unto_o god_n from_o the_o which_o the_o faithful_a be_v as_o yet_o pilgrim_n m._n therefore_o let_v we_o so_o think_v and_o speak_v of_o our_o death_n 5.4_o 2._o cor._n 5.4_o that_o we_o may_v also_o call_v the_o same_o a_o passage_n out_o of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o father_n let_v we_o consider_v who_o and_o what_o this_o world_n be_v and_o we_o shall_v desyer_n the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n because_o by_o the_o same_o we_o go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n into_o a_o most_o happy_a estate_n void_a of_o all_o trouble_n sorrow_n affliction_n and_o pain_n it_o make_v very_o much_o to_o the_o purpose_n that_o he_o use_v this_o word_n father_n to_o go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n which_o be_v a_o vale_n of_o misery_n and_o full_a of_o wickedness_n and_o so_o pass_v not_o to_o the_o worse_o but_o unto_o the_o better_o and_o not_o simple_o to_o the_o better_o but_o to_o the_o father_n also_o be_v such_o a_o notable_a benefit_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v afflict_v and_o oppress_v in_o this_o world_n can_v wish_v for_o nothing_o better_a unto_o the_o end_n he_o love_v they_o c._n although_o the_o euaungeliste_n do_v hereafter_o more_o plain_o declare_v to_o what_o end_n christ_n wash_v his_o disciple_n foot_n yet_o notwithstanding_o hear_v he_o beegin_v to_o show_v afore_o hand_n in_o one_o word_n that_o by_o this_o sign_n he_o will_v have_v his_o constant_a and_o everlasting_a love_n declare_v with_o the_o which_o he_o once_o love_v they_o that_o when_o they_o have_v lose_v his_o presence_n and_o company_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v sertain_o sure_a that_o he_o be_v not_o overwhelm_v in_o death_n the_o which_o persuasion_n also_o ought_v now_o to_o clean_o in_o our_o heart_n the_o word_n be_v that_o christ_n have_v love_v his_o disciple_n which_o wear_v in_o the_o world_n wherefore_o although_o we_o seem_v to_o be_v far_o of_o from_o christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o let_v we_o know_v that_o he_o behould_v we_o because_o he_o love_v his_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o now_o bear_v the_o same_o affection_n towards_o we_o which_o he_o retain_v even_o at_o this_o very_a point_n of_o death_n m._n but_o the_o original_a root_n and_o cause_n be_v in_o christ_n himself_o and_o not_o in_o his_o disciple_n if_o so_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o love_n have_v be_v in_o the_o disciple_n it_o have_v not_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o that_o the_o same_o rest_n in_o christ_n who_o love_v those_o that_o be_v he_o with_o unspeable_a love_n unto_o the_o end_n cyr._n and_o verilye_o when_o he_o may_v have_v escape_v the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o pain_n of_o the_o cross_n he_o so_o love_v he_o that_o he_o refuse_v not_o to_o dye_v for_o the_o life_n of_o all_o man_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o most_o perfect_v love_v our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o testify_v this_o be_v my_o commandment_n that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o 15.13_o joh._n 15.13_o even_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o great_a love_n can_v no_o man_n have_v than_o this_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v geve_v his_o life_n for_o his_o friend_n 2._o and_o when_o supper_n be_v do_v and_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v now_o put_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o judas_n iscariot_n simons_n son_n to_o betray_v he_o m._n there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v thus_o red_a and_o supper_n be_v prepare_v for_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v after_o supper_n or_o in_o supper_n time_n aug._n it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o supper_n be_v not_o full_o end_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o table_n be_v not_o yet_o take_v away_o see_v it_o follow_v by_o and_o by_o that_o the_o lord_n take_v a_o morsel_n of_o bread_n and_o offer_v the_o same_o to_o judas_n and_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v now_o put_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o judas_n c._n this_o the_o evangelist_n have_v add_v not_o only_o to_o show_v the_o wonderful_a patience_n of_o christ_n who_o voutsafe_v to_o wash_v such_o a_o wicked_a and_o false_a traitor_n foot_n but_o also_o that_o he_o seek_v occasion_n to_o use_v that_o time_n in_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v finish_v the_o last_o act_n of_o his_o life_n béeinge_v never_o unto_o death_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o judas_n go_v about_o to_o betray_v christ_n by_o the_o impulsion_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o do_v it_o to_o express_v the_o cruelty_n and_o hainousenes_n of_o the_o fault_n for_o this_o be_v more_o than_o a_o horrible_a and_o tragical_a fact_n in_o the_o which_o the_o efficacy_n of_o satan_n declare_v itself_o b._n insomuch_o that_o it_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o come_v from_o man_n mind_n c._n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o man_n commit_v no_o manner_n of_o evell_a whereunto_o the_o devil_n do_v not_o stir_v he_o but_o as_o the_o offence_n be_v more_o detestable_a and_o haynouse_a so_o the_o fury_n of_o
will_v return_v to_o you_o again_o r._n for_o i_o will_v not_o so_o go_v away_o that_o i_o will_v be_v quite_o separate_v from_o you_o i_o will_v not_o so_o go_v away_o that_o i_o will_v not_o return_v again_o i_o will_v not_o so_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o my_o father_n that_o i_o will_v retain_v the_o same_o to_o myself_o alone_a but_o for_o your_o cause_n i_o go_v and_o i_o so_o go_v that_o i_o will_v come_v again_o &_o receive_v you_o unto_o i_o c._n moreover_o this_o come_n again_o here_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o though_o christ_n will_v geve_v unto_o his_o disciple_n a_o new_a presence_n of_o himself_o in_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o in_o we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n but_o he_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n in_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v come_v at_o the_o length_n to_o gather_v those_o that_o be_v his_o together_o and_o very_o he_o do_v daily_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o we_o if_o so_o be_v we_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o whoale_n body_n of_o the_o church_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o full_a time_n of_o our_o entrance_n into_o heaven_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v this_o the_o apostle_n do_v notable_o express_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonians_n m._n let_v we_o remember_v therefore_o that_o christ_n be_v come_v again_o into_o this_o world_n the_o world_n believe_v not_o this_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o first_o come_n be_v that_o all_o they_o which_o be_v elect_v unto_o life_n from_o the_o beginning_n may_v be_v call_v unto_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n the_o second_o cause_n of_o his_o come_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o foresay_a elect_a may_v be_v take_v up_o into_o everlasting_a mansion_n this_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n 13_o math._n 13_o and_o this_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n be_v desire_v so_o long_o untyll_o a_o place_n be_v provide_v in_o heaven_n for_o every_o one_o and_o this_o cal_n of_o the_o elect_v shall_v be_v fulfil_v here_o in_o earth_n the_o which_o be_v once_o end_v and_o fulfil_v this_o most_o corrupt_a and_o wicked_a world_n shall_v have_v a_o end_n full_a this_o wicked_a world_n shall_v have_v a_o end_n when_o the_o number_n of_o god_n elect_v be_v full_a a._n read_v the_o twentyth_n six_o verse_n of_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n go_v before_o 4._o and_o whether_o i_o go_v you_o know_v and_o the_o way_n you_o know_v b._n because_o he_o will_v comfort_v his_o disciple_n concern_v his_o departure_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o understand_v this_o of_o that_o way_n by_o which_o his_o disciple_n shall_v follow_v he_o unto_o the_o father_n c._o howbeit_o withal_o christ_n teach_v that_o his_o death_n be_v not_o destruction_n but_o a_o passag_n to_o the_o father_n therefore_o we_o have_v here_o to_o note_n two_o thing_n the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o behold_v christ_n in_o his_o heavenlye_a glory_n and_o bless_a immortality_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n secondlye_o that_o we_o know_v he_o to_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o our_o life_n and_o the_o way_n which_o be_v shut_v up_o against_o we_o be_v now_o open_v unto_o we_o by_o he_o this_o he_o utter_v more_o plain_o in_o another_o place_n say_v 24_o mat._n i6_n 24_o m._n he_o which_o will_v follow_v i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n that_o by_o he_o and_o after_o he_o we_o may_v come_v to_o heavenly_a thing_n 5._o thomas_n say_v unto_o he_o lord_n we_o know_v not_o whether_o thou_o go_v and_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o we_o to_o know_v the_o way_n bu_n the_o disciple_n be_v much_o gréeve_v mark_v not_o what_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o they_o and_o judge_v to_o groslye_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n understande_v not_o his_o mind_n and_o purpose_n c._n and_o although_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n the_o answer_n of_o thomas_n seem_v to_o disagree_v with_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o his_o purpose_n be_v not_o to_o discréedite_v his_o master_n notwithstanding_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v how_o he_o deny_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v affirm_v we_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v oftentimes_o in_o the_o saint_n confuse_a understandinge_n because_o they_o do_v not_o way_n and_o consider_v the_o manner_n and_o reason_n of_o that_o which_o be_v plain_o set_v before_o they_o so_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v prophesy_v by_o the_o prophet_n to_o come_v of_o the_o true_a scence_n of_o faith_n 9_z ephe._n 3_o 9_z the_o which_o notwithstanding_o the_o apostle_n paul_n affirm_v to_o be_v a_o mystery_n hide_v from_o they_o therefore_o when_o the_o apostle_n shall_v believe_v that_o christ_n go_v unto_o the_o father_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o know_v not_o how_o he_o shall_v get_v that_o kingdom_n thomas_n just_o affirm_v that_o they_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o go_v thereupon_o he_o gather_v the_o way_n be_v more_o obscure_a for_o before_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o race_n we_o must_v know_v whether_o it_o tend_v m._n by_o this_o place_n we_o gather_v that_o no_o man_n know_v the_o way_n to_o heavenlye_a thing_n except_o he_o first_o know_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o mediator_n be_v go_v thither_o 6._o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n no_o man_n come_v unto_o the_o father_n but_o by_o i_o r._n this_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n and_o sum_n of_o the_o whole_a gospel_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n c._n christ_n do_v not_o direct_o answer_v unto_o the_o question_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o omit_v nothing_o which_o be_v necearye_a to_o be_v knewne_v the_o curiosity_n of_o thomas_n be_v to_o be_v bridle_v therefore_o christ_n do_v not_o show_v what_o his_o condition_n shall_v be_v with_o the_o father_n but_o stand_v upon_o a_o more_o necessery_n point_n thomas_n will_v wyllinglye_o have_v hear_v what_o christ_n shall_v do_v in_o heaven_n even_o as_o we_o oftentimes_o do_v to_o much_o weary_a ourselves_o with_o such_o subtle_a and_o curious_a point_n but_o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o apply_v our_o mind_n how_o we_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n to_o come_v wherefore_o the_o sum_n of_o this_o sentence_n be_v that_o whosoever_o get_v christ_n she_o will_v want_v nothing_o and_o that_o therefore_o he_o go_v beyond_o all_o perfection_n which_o be_v not_o content_v with_o he_o alone_o and_o he_o speak_v of_o their_o degree_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o beginning_n the_o midst_n and_o the_o end_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o must_v begin_v with_o he_o go_v forewarde_n in_o he_o and_o end_n at_o he_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v for_o high_a wisdom_n than_o that_o which_o lead_v we_o to_o everlasting_a life_n this_o he_o affirm_v shall_v be_v find_v in_o he_o and_o he_o also_o pronounce_v that_o the_o same_o must_v be_v seek_v for_o in_o no_o other_o he_o teach_v moreover_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n by_o which_o only_o we_o must_v come_v thither_o therefore_o lest_o he_o shall_v fail_v we_o in_o any_o part_n he_o reach_v out_o his_o hand_n to_o those_o that_o go_v astray_o and_o do_v humble_a himself_o so_o far_o that_o he_o direct_v suck_v child_n he_o have_v profess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o captain_n forsake_v not_o his_o servant_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o race_n but_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o the_o truth_n at_o the_o last_o he_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o that_o truth_n than_o the_o which_o nothing_o more_o excellent_a can_v be_v devise_v bu_n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n all_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v comprehend_v and_o from_o hence_o the_o river_n of_o life_n do_v spring_n c._o see_v therefore_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o way_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o weak_a and_o ignorant_a shall_v complain_v that_o they_o be_v forsake_v of_o he_o see_v he_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n he_o contain_v in_o himself_o wherewithal_o to_o satisfy_v even_o the_o most_o perfect_a truth_n in_o this_o place_n be_v take_v of_o some_o to_o be_v the_o wholesome_a light_n of_o heavenly_a wisdom_n and_o of_o othersome_a to_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o life_n and_o of_o all_o spiritual_a grace_n which_o be_v compare_v with_o figure_n and_o shadow_n even_o as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v grace_n and_o truth_n come_v by_o christ_n jesus_n but_o more_o right_o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o perfection_n of_o faith_n 1.7_o john_n 1.7_o even_o as_o the_o way_n be_v
always_o then_o have_v a_o consideration_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o there_o be_v no_o true_a consolation_n any_o where_o else_o in_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n bu_n for_o it_o be_v a_o glorious_a thing_n for_o christ_n sake_n and_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o be_v in_o peril_n to_o be_v hate_v of_o man_n and_o to_o suffer_v persecution_n again_o it_o be_v a_o foul_a thing_n to_o be_v afflict_v for_o evyll_n do_v for_o therefore_o say_v the_o apostle_n peter_n see_v that_o none_o of_o you_o be_v punish_v as_o a_o murderer_n or_o as_o a_o thief_n or_o a_o evyll_n doer_n or_o as_o a_o busy_a body_n in_o other_o man_n matter_n if_o any_o man_n suffer_v as_o a_o christian_a man_n let_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a but_o let_v he_o glorifye_v god_n on_o this_o behalf_n for_o hereuppon_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v move_v to_o geve_v god_n thanks_n because_o when_o the_o world_n perrish_v in_o his_o own_o blindness_n god_n geve_v his_o light_n unto_o the_o faithful_a even_o as_o the_o palpable_a darkness_n compass_v the_o egyptian_n round_n about_o when_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v in_o the_o manifest_a light_n also_o we_o must_v note_n that_o the_o hatred_n of_o christ_n come_v for_o want_v of_o understanding_n when_o god_n be_v not_o know_v for_o unbeléefe_n be_v always_o blind_a not_o that_o the_o wicked_a understande_v nor_o know_v nothing_o but_o because_o all_o their_o knowledge_n be_v confound_v and_o sodainlye_o vanish_v away_o for_o my_o name_n sake_n m._n here_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o god_n and_o the_o world_n before_o god_n those_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n ask_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n they_o receive_v before_o the_o world_n the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o apostle_n be_v hate_v both_o these_o the_o apostle_n feel_v and_o after_o they_o the_o true_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n because_o they_o have_v not_o know_v he_o that_o send_v i_o cyr._n by_o this_o word_n send_v be_v ment_fw-la the_o whoar_n mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n bu_n and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o boath_n the_o father_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n be_v unknowen_a when_o his_o name_n be_v odiouse_a by_o who_o the_o father_n be_v know_v and_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o sendinge_a understand_v m._n but_o who_o send_v christ_n god_n the_o father_n therefore_o the_o high_a preiste_n scribe_n and_o phariseis_n know_v not_o god_n they_o can_v not_o know_v the_o father_n because_o they_o know_v not_o the_o son_n who_o he_o have_v send_v r._n they_o brag_v of_o god_n and_o boast_v that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n but_o they_o know_v not_o god_n for_o he_o which_o will_v know_v god_n must_v know_v he_o by_o his_o word_n and_o not_o by_o his_o own_o imagination_n and_o dream_n 3.1_o i._o john_n 3.1_o m._n even_o so_o before_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o neither_o know_v i_o nor_o my_o father_n if_o you_o have_v know_v i_o you_o will_v have_v know_v my_o father_n also_o see_v therefore_o the_o world_n be_v ignorant_a of_o god_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o seem_v strange_a if_o so_o be_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v odiouse_a unto_o the_o childeren_n of_o this_o world_n and_o if_o for_o his_o sake_n the_o faithful_a be_v make_v a_o mock_a stock_n but_o let_v this_o say_n of_o saint_n john_n comfort_v they_o behold_v what_o love_n the_o father_n have_v bestow_v on_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o world_n know_v we_o not_o because_o it_o know_v not_o he_o what_o be_v christ_n i_o pray_v you_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o father_n but_o mere_a blasphemy_n and_o what_o be_v the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o superstitiouse_a people_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n the_o unbelever_n and_o wise_a man_n of_o this_o world_n have_v make_v they_o always_o a_o jest_a stock_n but_o concern_v the_o ignorance_n of_o god_n in_o the_o jew_n read_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n go_v before_o and_o the_o twenty_o eight_o verse_n 22._o if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o they_o shall_v have_v have_v no_o sin_n but_o now_o have_v they_o nothing_o to_o cloak_n their_o sin_n withal_o m._n he_o seem_v to_o excuse_v the_o unbeléefe_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o also_o their_o hatred_n which_o they_o bear_v against_o he_o and_o his_o disciple_n by_o this_o that_o he_o say_v but_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v they_o do_v unto_o you_o for_o my_o name_n sake_n because_o they_o have_v not_o know_v he_o who_o have_v send_v i_o as_o though_o they_o have_v not_o do_v all_o thing_n of_o malice_n but_o of_o ignorance_n for_o this_o cause_n he_o add_v these_o word_n c._n least_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o this_o serve_v to_o excuse_v their_o salt_n and_o he_o show_v that_o they_o be_v maliciouslye_o blind_a evena_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v shut_v his_o eye_n that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v constrain_v to_o see_v the_o light_n for_o otherwise_o it_o may_v have_v be_v object_v unto_o christ_n if_o so_o be_v they_o know_v not_o thy_o father_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v thât_o thou_o do_v not_o remedy_n their_o erroure_n why_o dyddest_n thou_o not_o prove_v whether_o they_o wear_v unapte_v to_o be_v teach_v you_o or_o no_o he_o answer_v that_o he_o have_v do_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a and_o faithful_a teacher_n but_o without_o profit_n because_o malice_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o come_v unto_o a_o sound_n mind_n bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o have_v so_o expresselye_o and_o plain_o open_v unto_o they_o the_o misterye_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o counsel_n and_o love_n of_o my_o father_n they_o shall_v have_v have_v no_o sin_n but_o now_o see_v i_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o have_v expound_v all_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n kingdom_n and_o they_o themselves_o have_v hear_v and_o understand_v all_o thing_n and_o yet_o will_v neither_o know_v nor_o understande_v they_o it_o can_v seem_v ignorance_n which_o be_v malicious_a obstinacy_n and_o most_o wicked_a contempt_n of_o the_o know_a truth_n c._n in_o these_o word_n also_o chrr_v seem_v to_o affirm_v that_o only_a unbelief_n be_v sin_n and_o there_o be_v some_o which_o so_o think_v for_o because_o faith_n remit_v and_o wipe_v away_o all_o sin_n they_o say_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o sin_n of_o unbeléefe_n which_o damn_v this_o be_v true_o speak_v because_o unbeléefe_n do_v not_o only_o keep_v man_n from_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o desert_n of_o condemnation_n but_o also_o be_v the_o well_o spring_n and_o cause_n of_o all_o evels_n but_o all_o that_o disputation_n appertain_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o this_o present_a place_n for_o the_o name_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o take_v general_o but_o for_o the_o circomstaunce_n of_o the_o cause_n in_o hand_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v that_o their_o ignorance_n be_v inexcusable_a because_o they_o have_v malicious_o reject_v god_n in_o his_o person_n evena_n if_o we_o shall_v call_v he_o guiltless_a just_a and_o pure_a who_o we_o will_v absolve_v from_o one_o only_a fault_n of_o the_o which_o he_o be_v guilty_a therefore_o this_o absolution_n of_o christ_n be_v restrain_v to_o one_o kind_n of_o sin_n because_o he_o take_v from_o the_o jew_n the_o pretence_n of_o ignorance_n in_o the_o contempt_n and_o hatred_n of_o the_o gospel_n notwithstanding_o there_o arise_v yet_o a_o new_a question_n as_o thus_o be_v not_o the_o unbeléefe_n which_o be_v before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n sufficient_a to_o condemn_v man_n and_o they_o be_v mad_a man_n which_o gather_v amiss_o of_o this_o place_n that_o whosoever_o die_v before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n without_o faith_n be_v in_o a_o doubtful_a case_n until_o such_o time_n as_o christ_n manifest_v himself_o unto_o they_o as_o though_o there_o be_v not_o many_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o testify_v that_o the_o only_a testimony_n of_o conscience_n be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o to_o condemnation_n 14_z rom._n 5_o 14_z death_n say_v saint_n paul_n rain_v in_o the_o world_n until_o moses_n 12_z rom._n 2_o 12_z and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v perish_v without_o law_n which_o have_v sin_v without_o the_o law_n what_o then_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v in_o these_o word_n a_o concession_n or_o grant_v because_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v now_o nothing_o any_o more_o to_o excuse_v their_o fault_n withal_o see_v that_o witting_o &_o willing_o they_o have_v reject_v the_o life_n offer_v unto_o they_o and_o
day_n and_o show_v himself_o alive_a again_o to_o his_o disciple_n after_o that_o ascend_n into_o the_o heaven_n that_o so_o faith_n increase_v by_o little_a and_o little_a there_o may_v be_v a_o way_n make_v to_o receyve_v the_o more_o high_a document_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n but_o there_o be_v many_o that_o think_v that_o john_n be_v special_o lead_v to_o wirte_n to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n namely_o that_o he_o may_v defend_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n against_o the_o wicked_a blasphemye_n of_o ebion_n cerinthus_n and_o carpocrates_n but_o what_o soever_o occasion_n he_o have_v then_o to_o write_v there_o be_v notwithstanding_o no_o doubt_n but_o that_o god_n have_v a_o far_a regard_n to_o his_o church_n he_o do_v therefore_o so_o guide_v the_o pen_n of_o the_o evangelist_n to_o write_v that_o the_o part_n be_v divide_v among_o they_o he_o may_v bring_v the_o whole_a body_n to_o a_o perfect_a work_n and_o whereas_o they_o have_v place_v john_n in_o the_o four_o seat_n it_o be_v do_v upon_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o time_n in_o the_o which_o he_o write_v namely_o when_o he_o be_v in_o exile_n or_o when_o he_o be_v call_v back_o again_o as_o some_o affirm_v from_o the_o death_n of_o domitian_n â§_o a_o catholic_a exposition_n upon_o the_o gospel_n of_o saint_n john_n the_o first_o chapter_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o worde_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o god_n be_v the_o worde_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n chr._n all_o the_o other_o evangelist_n begin_v at_o the_o incarnation_n john_n pretermit_v the_o conception_n nativity_n education_n and_o grow_v of_o christ_n set_v before_o we_o even_o at_o the_o first_o his_o eternal_a generation_n say_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n b._n for_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v express_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o call_v he_o in_o his_o epistle_n also_o the_o word_n of_o life_n which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n 1_o 1._o ihon._n 1_o c._n and_o by_o this_o exordium_n or_o preface_n he_o do_v declare_v the_o eternal_a divinity_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o god_n be_v eternal_a which_o be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n 3_o 1._o timo._n 3_o but_o this_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o evangelist_n to_o show_v that_o the_o restore_n of_o mankind_n to_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o to_o everlasting_a righteousness_n must_v needs_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n see_v by_o his_o power_n all_o thing_n be_v create_v as_o well_o in_o heaven_n as_o in_o earth_n both_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whether_o they_o be_v majesty_n or_o lordship_n either_o rule_n or_o power_n see_v he_o alone_o breathe_v life_n and_o strength_n into_o all_o creature_n and_o continue_v they_o in_o their_o estate_n 1_o collos_n 1_o and_o special_o in_o man_n himself_o he_o have_v make_v a_o singular_a show_n and_o proof_n both_o of_o his_o power_n and_o also_o of_o his_o grace_n insomuch_o that_o although_o adam_n fall_v and_o transgress_v yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o cease_v not_o to_o be_v love_v liberal_a and_o merciful_a unto_o his_o posterity_n r._n and_o this_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o evangelist_n until_o he_o come_v to_o these_o word_n contain_v in_o the_o sixth_o verse_n there_o be_v a_o man_n send_v of_o god._n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o which_o he_o do_v first_o of_o all_o teach_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v and_o then_o he_o set_v before_o we_o his_o humanity_n the_o which_o to_o the_o faithful_a be_v the_o way_n of_o recreation_n or_o create_v again_o for_o it_o do_v very_o well_o agree_v that_o they_o which_o be_v create_v by_o christ_n shall_v also_o by_o he_o be_v create_v again_o c._n but_o whereas_o he_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o word_n this_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o true_a and_o simple_a cause_n namely_o for_o that_o first_o of_o all_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a wisdom_n and_o will_n of_o god_n second_o the_o very_a express_a image_n of_o his_o purpose_n and_o counsel_n for_o as_o the_o word_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o character_n or_o declaration_n of_o the_o mind_n in_o man_n even_o so_o this_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n also_o attribute_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o express_v himself_o by_o his_o word_n a._n therefore_o whether_o you_o call_v the_o word_n logon_fw-la in_o greek_a or_o as_o erasmus_n have_v sermonem_fw-la beware_v lest_o you_o think_v that_o his_o proper_a essence_n be_v true_o as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o express_v by_o this_o appellation_n m._n for_o it_o be_v a_o metaphorical_a speech_n which_o be_v apply_v to_o our_o capacity_n and_o understanding_n may_v describe_v unto_o we_o some_o shadow_n of_o that_o thing_n of_o the_o which_o he_o mind_v here_o to_o speak_v for_o it_o be_v take_v of_o the_o similitude_n of_o our_o mind_n the_o which_o although_o it_o rule_v the_o whole_a man_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v invisible_a and_o unknowen_a except_o the_o purpose_n and_o counsel_n which_o it_o have_v conceyve_v be_v bewray_v and_o make_v manifest_a unto_o other_o by_o word_n by_o which_o in_o deed_n a_o certain_a image_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v set_v before_o other_o to_o behold_v even_o so_o god_n also_o which_o be_v that_o omnipotent_a power_n the_o creator_n and_o preserver_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o for_o that_o he_o pierce_v all_o thing_n be_v call_v of_o the_o greek_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d theon_n be_v compare_v so_o far_o as_o that_o incomprehensible_a nature_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n may_v be_v shadow_v to_o the_o mind_n by_o which_o all_o this_o world_n be_v govern_v and_o the_o lord_n christ_n his_o only_o beget_v son_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o word_n because_o by_o he_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v reveal_v to_o mortal_a man_n 1._o colos_n 1._o so_o paul_n call_v christ_n the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n so_o christ_n himself_o say_v 14._o john_n 14._o philip_n he_o which_o see_v i_o see_v my_o father_n also_o and_o again_o no_o man_n come_v to_o my_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o knowledge_n and_o fellowship_n of_o the_o father_n but_o by_o i_o 11._o john_n 11._o also_o it_o be_v say_v no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n have_v show_v he_o unto_o us._n c._n therefore_o as_o god_n do_v manifest_v himself_o in_o save_v the_o world_n by_o this_o word_n even_o so_o he_o have_v the_o same_o in_o his_o will_n and_o purpose_n at_o the_o first_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o double_a relation_n the_o first_o to_o god_n the_o second_o to_o man_n a._n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v with_o seruetus_fw-la imagine_v that_o this_o eternal_a word_n have_v his_o beginning_n when_o it_o be_v pronounce_v and_o put_v forth_o in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n as_o though_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v not_o before_o that_o time_n that_o his_o power_n be_v know_v by_o the_o eternal_a work_n but_o our_o evangelist_n teach_v here_o another_o manner_n of_o matter_n not_o assign_v to_o the_o word_n any_o beginning_n of_o time_n but_o say_v that_o it_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n he_o go_v beyond_o all_o age_n and_o time_n for_o he_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n r._n in_o what_o beginning_n either_o we_o must_v simp_o understande_v in_o principio_fw-la or_o in_o the_o beginning_n to_o be_v that_o beginning_n which_o the_o latin_n call_v inprimis_fw-la or_o at_o the_o first_o either_o without_o the_o preposition_n in_o as_o principio_fw-la or_o primum_fw-la and_o so_o to_o have_v it_o limit_v and_o comprehend_v in_o time_n or_o else_o to_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o word_n be_v without_o the_o compass_n of_o time_n incomprehensible_a and_o unspeakable_a and_o so_o the_o word_n be_v with_o that_o begin_n in_o the_o which_o god_n say_v fiat_n lux_fw-la let_v there_o be_v light_n &_o howbeit_o he_o be_v never_o without_o be_v 1_o gene._n 1_o there_o be_v never_o any_o time_n in_o the_o which_o he_o be_v not_o for_o he_o be_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n 1._o hebr._n 1._o and_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o substance_n he_o be_v never_o absent_a from_o the_o father_n nor_o never_o out_o of_o his_o sight_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v in_o solomon_n 8._o prou._n 8._o the_o lord_n have_v possess_v i_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o way_n i_o be_v before_o his_o work_n of_o old_a i_o be_v set_v up_o from_o everlasting_a from_o the_o beginning_n and_o before_o the_o earth_n b._n in_o the_o which_o place_n solomon_n by_o the_o name_n of_o wisdom_n mean_v the_o power_n
to_o say_v that_o only_o sacrifice_n christ_n jesus_n so_o we_o read_v that_o this_o lamb_n be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n 13_o revela_fw-la 13_o c._n saint_n john_n therefore_o go_v about_o to_o show_v that_o there_o remain_v nothing_o now_o for_o sinner_n but_o that_o they_o flee_v unto_o christ_n their_o refuge_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v overthrow_v all_o satisfaction_n offering_n and_o redemption_n of_o man_n be_v nothing_o but_o false_a and_o forge_a collusion_n of_o satan_n our_o enemy_n this_o word_n take_v away_o may_v be_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n expound_v 53._o 1._o peter_n 2_o esay_n 53._o either_o that_o christ_n have_v take_v upon_o himself_o the_o burden_n wherewith_o we_o be_v oppress_v or_o else_o that_o he_o quite_o abolish_v sin_n chr._n furthermore_o in_o that_o he_o say_v take_v in_o the_o present_a tense_n the_o continual_a action_n of_o take_v away_o be_v mean_v for_o the_o offering_n which_o he_o once_o make_v always_o stand_v of_o force_n let_v we_o know_v therefore_o that_o we_o now_o at_o the_o last_o for_o christ_n his_o sake_n be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n the_o father_n if_o we_o take_v the_o right_a way_n unto_o his_o death_n and_o if_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a sacrifice_n nail_v to_o the_o cross_n which_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n r._n furthermore_o christ_n do_v not_o so_o take_v away_o sin_n that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o everye_o man_n licentiouslye_o to_o live_v as_o he_o ly_v as_o the_o carnal_a false_o gather_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v live_v unto_o god_n 6_o rom._n 6_o and_o to_o righteousness_n for_o wheresoever_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o by_o faith_n there_o in_o steed_n thereof_o succede_v the_o spirit_n mortify_v from_o thencefoorth_o the_o dreag_n of_o sin_n touch_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o next_o verse_n read_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o fifteen_o verse_n go_v before_o 31._o and_o i_o know_v he_o not_o but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v declare_v to_o israel_n therefore_o be_o i_o come_v baptise_v with_o water_n and_o i_o know_v he_o not_o c._n lest_o man_n shall_v think_v this_o testimony_n to_o be_v give_v either_o for_o favour_n or_o friendship_n he_o prevent_v that_o doubt_n affirm_v that_o he_o have_v no_o other_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n than_o that_o which_o come_v from_o heaven_n to_o he_o m._n although_o therefore_o he_o know_v he_o to_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o israel_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o know_v he_o not_o by_o face_n for_o there_o be_v no_o familiarity_n between_o they_o christ_n have_v lead_v his_o life_n in_o nazareth_n of_o galilee_n be_v there_o with_o the_o carpenter_n joseph_n and_o now_o at_o the_o first_o he_o come_v from_o nazareth_n to_o jordan_n but_o john_n live_v in_o the_o wilderness_n among_o the_o beast_n and_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o wilderness_n lest_o therefore_o by_o a_o wrong_a suspicion_n and_o doubt_n the_o testimony_n shall_v be_v discredit_v which_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n he_o add_v say_v and_o i_o know_v he_o not_o but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v declare_v to_o israel_n he_o come_v to_o baptise_v for_o this_o principal_a cause_n though_o this_o be_v not_o the_o only_a cause_n he_o come_v truelye_o to_o jordan_n preach_v the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n that_o by_o this_o occasion_n he_o may_v know_v he_o who_o before_o he_o know_v not_o that_o be_v know_v of_o he_o he_o may_v reveal_v he_o to_o israel_n he_o baptise_a also_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o israelite_n to_o repentance_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n may_v prepare_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v at_o hand_n notwithstanding_o he_o say_v well_o that_o he_o come_v to_o this_o end_n that_o christ_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a unto_o israel_n for_o unless_o this_o be_v do_v all_o the_o rest_n profit_v nothing_o this_o thing_n ought_v all_o the_o ministry_n of_o john_n &_o the_o apostle_n to_o do_v moreover_o except_o repentance_n be_v join_v unto_o it_o christ_n be_v declare_v in_o vain_a c._n and_o see_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o john_n shall_v be_v send_v of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v lawfullye_o baptise_v we_o may_v gather_v hereuppon_o that_o no_o man_n have_v liberty_n of_o himself_o to_o institute_v sacrament_n for_o this_o right_n only_o pertain_v to_o god_n even_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o another_o place_n to_o prove_v the_o baptism_n of_o john_n demand_v whether_o it_o be_v from_o heaven_n or_o of_o man_n 21_o math._n 21_o for_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o two_o verse_n follow_v read_v the_o three_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n 34._o and_o i_o see_v and_o bare_a record_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n m._n although_o john_n know_v christ_n who_o he_o have_v show_v to_o be_v present_a and_o of_o who_o he_o have_v preach_v before_o this_o time_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o the_o foresay_a heavenlye_a inauguration_n contain_v in_o thirtye_n and_o two_o and_o thirtye_n and_o three_o verse_n he_o know_v this_o jesus_n who_o before_o he_o know_v not_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o he_o know_v this_o not_o by_o the_o vision_n only_o but_o by_o the_o voice_n also_o of_o the_o father_n which_o come_v from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n 3._o math._n 3._o c._n so_o that_o this_o sign_n be_v add_v because_o of_o confirmation_n and_o that_o not_o so_o much_o in_o respect_n of_o john_n as_o for_o all_o our_o sake_n m._n but_o see_v christ_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o son_n of_o david_n question_v why_o do_v not_o john_n say_v and_o i_o see_v and_o testify_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o david_n answer_n answer_n because_o that_o although_o he_o have_v make_v no_o lie_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o shall_v not_o sufficient_o have_v set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v noot_v that_o he_o witness_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o christ_n shall_v be_v the_o gyver_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o because_o the_o honour_n &_o office_n of_o reconcil_v man_n unto_o god_n belong_v to_o no_o other_o beside_o he_o m._n and_o this_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o it_o spring_v of_o the_o divine_a revelation_n so_o it_o make_v a_o man_n bless_a as_o christ_n plainelye_o declare_v to_o peter_n in_o the_o sixtéenth_fw-mi chapter_n of_o matthew_n 16_o math._n 16_o 35._o the_o next_o day_n after_o john_n stand_v again_o and_o two_o of_o his_o disciple_n b._n by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o evangelist_n pass_v by_o narration_n from_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n to_o the_o testimony_n which_o his_o own_o deed_n and_o say_n give_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o see_v it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o john_n to_o reveal_v christ_n unto_o israel_n have_v he_o thus_o far_o forth_o make_v mention_n of_o that_o story_n pass_v over_o without_o doubt_n many_o thing_n which_o john_n preach_v concern_v the_o lord_n the_o other_o three_o evangelist_n have_v more_o large_o write_v of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v omit_v with_o the_o which_o the_o godly_a be_v satisfy_v m._n but_o this_o be_v the_o last_o testimony_n of_o john_n concern_v christ_n among_o those_o which_o the_o evangelist_n mean_v to_o repeat_v who_o in_o affirm_v john_n to_o stand_v commend_v his_o diligence_n in_o reveal_v christ_n as_o one_o that_o seek_v all_o occasion_n to_o fulfil_v his_o office_n c._n here_o furthermore_o we_o see_v how_o base_a and_o simple_a the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n be_v john_n truelye_o prepare_v disciple_n for_o christ_n but_o christ_n now_o begin_v himself_o to_o prepare_v his_o church_n 36._o and_o behold_v jesus_n as_o he_o walk_v by_o and_o say_v behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n m._n from_o whence_o and_o whither_o he_o walk_v the_o evangelist_n show_v not_o but_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o great_a humility_n of_o his_o mind_n as_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o receyve_v johns_n baptism_n so_o also_o he_o be_v content_v to_o hear_v his_o sermon_n which_o he_o communicate_v to_o the_o people_n and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o the_o sermon_n be_v end_v because_o it_o be_v now_o almost_o eventide_v that_o he_o go_v to_o that_o place_n where_o he_o mean_v to_o rest_v all_o night_n but_o it_o appear_v by_o this_o appellation_n of_o christ_n that_o john_n oftentimes_o call_v christ_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o notwithout_v cause_n for_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o good_a teacher_n not_o once_o only_o but_o oftentimes_o to_o inculcate_v those_o thing_n into_o the_o ear_n of_o his_o auditor_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o
son_n of_o god_n and_o truelye_o faith_n ought_v not_o to_o rest_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n only_o but_o to_o have_v also_o a_o respect_n to_o his_o power_n and_o office_n for_o it_o shall_v profit_v little_a to_o know_v who_o christ_n be_v except_o we_o know_v also_o how_o he_o will_v behave_v himself_o toward_o we_o and_o to_o what_o end_n he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n but_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v most_o large_a question_v 17_o psal_n 2_o revela_fw-la 17_o in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o be_v call_v the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n why_o do_v nathanael_n call_v he_o only_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n surelye_o he_o do_v it_o answer_n answer_n because_o his_o confession_n be_v limit_v to_o the_o measure_n of_o faith_n for_o he_o have_v not_o profit_v so_o far_o as_o yet_o that_o he_o know_v he_o to_o be_v a_o king_n set_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o rather_o that_o the_o child_n of_o abraham_n shall_v be_v gather_v from_o all_o place_n that_o the_o whole_a world_n may_v be_v the_o israel_n of_o the_o lord_n let_v we_o now_o by_o the_o example_n of_o nathanael_n exercise_v our_o faith_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n and_o let_v we_o confirm_v the_o same_o by_o all_o mean_v possible_a and_o let_v it_o not_o lie_v hide_v but_o let_v it_o burst_v forth_o into_o the_o confession_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 50._o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o because_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o i_o see_v thou_o under_o the_o fig_n tree_n thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v see_v great_a thing_n than_o these_o b._n the_o lord_n jesus_n go_v about_o to_o confirm_v the_o faith_n of_o nathanael_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n add_v these_o word_n c._n he_o do_v not_o reprehend_v nathanael_n as_o one_o to_o light_v of_o credit_n but_o rather_o allow_v his_o faith_n promise_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o the_o rest_n great_a argument_n of_o confirmation_n by_o the_o which_o word_n he_o lift_v up_o their_o hope_n for_o the_o behold_v and_o know_v of_o far_a matter_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o of_o so_o small_a beginning_n thou_o have_v receyve_v faith_n i_o bid_v thou_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n and_o hope_v to_o see_v great_a matter_n in_o time_n to_o come_v it_o be_v but_o a_o mean_a token_n true_o of_o the_o divine_a power_n in_o that_o christ_n say_v here_o to_o nathanael_n i_o see_v thou_o under_o the_o fig_n tree_n for_o we_o read_v of_o many_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v by_o heliseus_fw-la as_o in_o the_o story_n of_o gihesi_n and_o naaman_n the_o sirian_a 4_o 4._o king_n 5_o and._n 6_o john_n 4_o such_o a_o miracle_n be_v that_o which_o we_o read_v of_o concern_v the_o unlawful_a husband_n of_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n these_o and_o such_o like_a be_v but_o mean_a and_o indifferent_a thing_n if_o they_o be_v compare_v to_o those_o miracle_n which_o follow_v but_o such_o notwithstanding_o as_o have_v bring_v great_a increase_n of_o faith_n by_o little_a and_o little_a by_o these_o word_n also_o of_o christ_n because_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o i_o see_v thou_o under_o the_o fig_n tree_n thou_o believe_v we_o learn_v that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v 10_o rom._n 10_o and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n 51._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o very_o verylye_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o hereafter_o shall_v you_o see_v heaven_n open_a and_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n ascend_v and_o descend_v upon_o the_o son_n of_o man_n a._n touch_v the_o open_n of_o the_o heaven_n it_o be_v already_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o saint_n matthew_n in_o that_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o open_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o ascend_a and_o descend_v of_o the_o angel_n upon_o the_o son_n of_o man_n many_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o ascension_n and_o to_o the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n c._n but_o it_o rather_o signify_v a_o certain_a continuance_n which_o shall_v always_o be_v extant_a in_o his_o kingdom_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o angel_n appear_v sometime_o unto_o the_o disciple_n which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v not_o see_v it_o be_v certain_a also_o that_o there_o be_v another_o manner_n of_o revelation_n of_o the_o heavenlye_a glory_n when_o christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n than_o we_o now_o see_v but_o if_o we_o well_o way_n and_o consider_v of_o the_o matter_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o same_o which_o be_v do_v then_o be_v abide_v for_o ever_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v shut_v up_o against_o we_o at_o the_o first_o 24._o act_n 7_o math._n 17_o luke_n 24._o be_v trulye_o open_v again_o in_o christ_n of_o this_o matter_n as_o well_o stephen_n and_o three_o other_o disciple_n in_o the_o mount_n have_v a_o visible_a sight_n as_o also_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n but_o all_o the_o sign_n by_o the_o which_o the_o lord_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v present_a with_o we_o do_v pertain_v to_o the_o open_n of_o heaven_n special_o where_o he_o do_v communicate_v himself_o unto_o we_o to_o life_n the_o angel_n be_v say_v to_o ascend_v and_o descend_v as_o they_o be_v minister_n unto_o we_o of_o god_n will_n therefore_o by_o these_o word_n the_o mutual_a communication_n between_o god_n and_o man_n be_v note_v and_o we_o must_v be_v thankful_a unto_o christ_n for_o this_o benefit_n because_o without_o he_o there_o be_v rather_o mortal_a enmity_n between_o the_o angel_n and_o we_o than_o a_o familiar_a care_n to_o help_v therefore_o they_o be_v say_v to_o ascend_v and_o descend_v upon_o he_o not_o that_o they_o do_v only_o minister_v unto_o he_o but_o because_o in_o respect_n of_o he_o and_o for_o his_o honour_n they_o hold_v up_o by_o their_o care_n the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n 28_o gene._n 28_o and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o have_v some_o respect_n unto_o the_o ladder_n which_o be_v show_v to_o the_o patriarch_n jacob_n by_o a_o vision_n for_o the_o same_o which_o that_o vision_n shadow_v be_v truelye_o declare_v and_o show_v in_o christ_n to_o be_v short_a the_o sum_n of_o this_o place_n be_v that_o where_o as_o all_o mankind_n be_v banish_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n now_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v open_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v citizen_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o fellow_n with_o the_o angel_n and_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v keeper_n of_o our_o save_a health_n may_v come_v down_o from_o their_o bless_a rest_n to_o help_v our_o misery_n b._n for_o the_o service_n of_o angel_n pertain_v to_o all_o those_o that_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n as_o well_o as_o unto_o christ_n according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o psalm_n 34_o psal_n 91._o and_o 34_o he_o have_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v over_o thou_o etc._n etc._n for_o they_o be_v all_o minister_a spirit_n send_v to_o serve_v they_o which_o have_v their_o inheritance_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 1_o heb._n 1_o m._n so_o that_o now_o man_n with_o god_n and_o the_o earth_n with_o heaven_n be_v set_v at_o peace_n for_o so_o say_v the_o apostle_n it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o all_o fullness_n shall_v dwell_v and_o by_o he_o to_o reconcile_v all_o thing_n to_o himself_o 1_o collos_n 1_o and_o to_o set_v at_o peace_n through_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o cross_n by_o he_o both_o the_o thing_n in_o earth_n and_o thing_n in_o heaven_n â§_o the_o second_o chapter_n 1._o and_o the_o third_o day_n there_o be_v a_o marriage_n in_o cana_n of_o galilee_n and_o the_o mother_n of_o jesus_n be_v there_o hitherto_o the_o evangelist_n have_v show_v how_o and_o in_o what_o order_n the_o revelation_n of_o christ_n begin_v to_o be_v manifest_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n and_o who_o they_o be_v which_o cleave_v unto_o he_o now_o consequentlye_o he_o add_v how_o by_o the_o light_n of_o miracle_n he_o begin_v part_o to_o confirm_v his_o disciple_n which_o as_o yet_o be_v but_o weak_a and_o part_o to_o reveal_v his_o glory_n to_o israel_n c._n for_o this_o story_n do_v contain_v a_o declaration_n of_o the_o first_o miracle_n that_o christ_n wrought_v and_o for_o that_o cause_n it_o become_v we_o to_o be_v the_o more_o diligent_a to_o consider_v of_o the_o same_o howbeit_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o there_o be_v other_o cause_n which_o do_v commend_v the_o same_o unto_o us._n m._n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n go_v about_o to_o describe_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v bring_v credit_n unto_o the_o history_n put_v down_o unto_o we_o both_o the_o time_n the_o place_n and_o
thing_n of_o nothing_o m._n yea_o truelye_o he_o can_v have_v do_v it_o what_o need_n be_v there_o then_o of_o the_o element_n of_o water_n sure_o this_o water_n which_o he_o use_v make_v the_o miracle_n more_o evident_a than_o if_o he_o have_v make_v wine_n of_o nothing_o for_o else_o it_o may_v have_v be_v think_v that_o he_o have_v do_v it_o by_o conjuration_n and_o so_o there_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v so_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n if_o he_o have_v fill_v the_o empty_a vessel_n with_o wine_n and_o they_o fill_v they_o up_o to_o the_o brim_n c._n this_o commandment_n may_v have_v seem_v foolish_a and_o vain_a to_o the_o wait_a servant_n for_o there_o be_v water_n sufficient_a before_o but_o after_o this_o manner_n god_n common_o deal_v with_o we_o that_o his_o power_n may_v have_v the_o great_a success_n unlooked_v for_o 8._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o draw_v out_o now_o and_o bear_v unto_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n and_o they_o bear_v it_o bu_n we_o read_v not_o that_o christ_n speak_v any_o thing_n at_o the_o turn_n of_o the_o water_n or_o use_v any_o monstrous_a word_n as_o the_o conjurer_n do_v for_o with_o he_o to_o will_n be_v to_o speak_v and_o to_o speak_v be_v to_o will_n even_o as_o therefore_o before_o time_n he_o speak_v the_o word_n and_o they_o be_v make_v he_o command_v and_o all_o thing_n have_v their_o be_v 148._o psal_n 148._o even_o so_o now_o also_o because_o he_o will_v and_o command_v by_o his_o secret_a power_n the_o water_n be_v turn_v into_o wine_n his_o power_n work_v the_o very_a same_o that_o it_o wrought_v in_o the_o beginning_n 14â_n psal_n 14â_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n m._n but_o why_o do_v he_o rather_o send_v it_o to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n than_o to_o the_o bridegroom_n or_o to_o his_o guest_n a_o order_n in_o this_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v by_o which_o the_o miracle_n may_v be_v make_v more_o manifest_a if_o the_o wine_n have_v be_v bring_v first_o to_o the_o bridegroom_n or_o to_o his_o guest_n they_o will_v have_v think_v that_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n have_v bring_v the_o same_o by_o his_o provision_n &_o that_o it_o have_v be_v keep_v hitherto_o by_o his_o care_n the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n know_v that_o there_o be_v no_o wine_n and_o therefore_o the_o wine_n be_v bring_v first_o of_o all_o unto_o he_o by_o good_a order_n for_o the_o more_o certainty_n of_o the_o matter_n c._n the_o evangelist_n call_v he_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n which_o be_v make_v chief_a overséer_o of_o the_o table_n who_o we_o common_o call_v the_o sewer_n not_o that_o it_o be_v so_o great_a a_o banquet_n that_o such_o officer_n be_v require_v but_o because_o the_o honourable_a name_n be_v also_o transfer_v to_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o poor_a out_o of_o the_o order_n of_o banquet_v of_o the_o rich_a and_o they_o bear_v it_o c._n in_o that_o the_o minister_n so_o willing_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n we_o may_v thereby_o gather_v that_o there_o be_v much_o dignity_n and_o reverence_n in_o he_o a._n so_o in_o another_o place_n when_o he_o command_v the_o multitude_n to_o sit_v down_o â_o john_n â_o they_o obey_v he_o although_o they_o see_v no_o preparation_n before_o they_o 9_o when_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o feast_n have_v taste_v of_o the_o water_n that_o be_v make_v wine_n and_o know_v not_o whence_o it_o be_v but_o the_o minister_n which_o draw_v the_o water_n know_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n call_v the_o bridegroom_n when_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o feast_n have_v taste_v bu_n now_o the_o excellent_a and_o famous_a miracle_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v reveal_v his_o clemencye_n commend_v and_o his_o power_n and_o glory_n praise_v but_o the_o minister_n which_o draw_v the_o water_n know_v m._n he_o can_v without_o the_o help_n of_o the_o minister_n have_v fill_v the_o water_n pot_n with_o water_n &_o of_o the_o water_n make_v wine_n but_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o miracle_n shall_v be_v so_o dispose_v that_o they_o may_v be_v his_o witness_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o be_v command_v to_o fill_v the_o water_n pot_n a_o fresh_a that_o afterward_o the_o wine_n be_v draw_v out_o of_o they_o they_o may_v undoubtedlye_o know_v whereof_o it_o be_v make_v so_o he_o command_v his_o disciple_n to_o see_v how_o many_o loaf_n they_o have_v then_o when_o he_o have_v bless_v he_o give_v to_o they_o to_o set_v before_o the_o people_n and_o last_o of_o all_o he_o command_v to_o take_v up_o the_o fragment_n all_o the_o which_o miracle_n be_v do_v that_o they_o may_v have_v certain_a experience_n of_o the_o miracle_n do_v and_o god_n use_v this_o manner_n of_o work_a miracle_n in_o the_o world_n very_o much_o insomuch_o that_o he_o will_v not_o do_v many_o thing_n without_o the_o help_n of_o man_n which_o he_o can_v otherwise_o do_v he_o can_v bring_v all_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n which_o we_o use_v without_o the_o work_n of_o plough_v plant_v and_o water_v but_o he_o have_v so_o appoint_v that_o we_o must_v plant_v and_o water_n and_o he_o will_v geve_v the_o increase_n not_o that_o it_o be_v so_o necessary_a to_o be_v do_v but_o that_o we_o may_v seek_v for_o the_o wonderful_a &_o certain_a knowledge_n &_o may_v so_o be_v nourish_v &_o grow_v in_o the_o faith_n 10._o and_o say_v unto_o he_o every_o man_n at_o the_o beginning_n do_v set_v forth_o good_a wine_n and_o when_o the_o guest_n have_v well_o drink_v then_o that_o which_o be_v worse_o but_o thou_o have_v keep_v the_o good_a wine_n until_o now_o m._n the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n think_v that_o this_o wine_n have_v be_v keep_v hitherto_o by_o want_n of_o discretion_n in_o the_o bridegroom_n concern_v the_o goodness_n whereof_o he_o witness_v say_v thou_o have_v keep_v the_o good_a wine_n until_o this_o time_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o evangelist_n think_v good_a to_o set_v before_o we_o these_o word_n of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n although_o he_o err_v think_v that_o the_o bridegroom_n have_v keep_v the_o wine_n until_o this_o time_n that_o there_o may_v be_v sound_a and_o perfect_a testimony_n concern_v the_o wine_n first_o from_o whence_o it_o come_v concern_v which_o the_o minister_n testify_v secondelye_o what_o wine_n it_o be_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o best_a concern_v which_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n bear_v witness_v bu_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_o declare_v that_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n taste_v no_o other_o wine_n than_o that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v for_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o know_v not_o whence_o it_o be_v to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v understande_v that_o he_o speak_v nothing_o because_o of_o christ_n but_o that_o he_o utter_v his_o mind_n simple_o and_o true_o concern_v the_o wine_n as_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n m._n but_o by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n the_o manner_n and_o disposition_n of_o this_o world_n be_v lively_o depaint_v in_o that_o first_o of_o all_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o set_v before_o man_n the_o best_a and_o chief_a thing_n to_o eat_v &_o drink_v and_o after_o that_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v worse_o even_o so_o they_o which_o sell_v do_v first_o of_o all_o show_n unto_o the_o byars_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v chief_a and_o best_a but_o in_o process_n of_o time_n they_o will_v serve_v they_o with_o worse_o and_o worse_o they_z also_o which_o become_v servant_n do_v at_o the_o first_o show_v themselves_o very_o diligent_a that_o afterwards_o when_o they_o have_v get_v credit_n they_o may_v more_o easy_o beguile_v their_o master_n r._n for_o the_o world_n as_o a_o man_n will_v think_v promise_v all_o good_a thing_n with_o great_a prosperity_n but_o as_o we_o common_o see_v in_o the_o wind_a up_o it_o leave_v unto_o we_o nothing_o but_o disease_n affliction_n calamity_n and_o death_n on_o the_o contrary_a part_n christ_n even_o at_o the_o first_o lay_v on_o the_o shoulder_n of_o his_o servant_n the_o cross_n imprisonment_n persecution_n and_o death_n but_o at_o the_o last_o he_o give_v unto_o they_o joy_n and_o peace_n of_o conscience_n with_o everlasting_a life_n 11._o this_o beginning_n of_o miracle_n do_v jesus_n in_o cana_n of_o galilee_n and_o show_v forth_o his_o glory_n and_o his_o disciple_n believe_v on_o he_o this_o beginning_n of_o miracle_n do_v jesus_n c._n the_o meaning_n be_v that_o this_o be_v the_o first_o miracle_n that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n wrought_v for_o whereas_o the_o angel_n tell_v the_o shepherd_n that_o he_o be_v bear_v in_o bethlehem_n 3_o luke_n 2_o math._n 2_o mark_n 3_o whereas_o the_o star_n appear_v to_o the_o wise_a man_n whereas_o the_o
doctrine_n which_o be_v bring_v by_o he_o but_o have_v some_o desire_n of_o the_o same_o the_o which_o desire_n spring_v no_o doubt_n of_o the_o fear_n and_o reverence_n of_o god._n a_o frivolous_a and_o vain_a curiosity_n prick_v some_o forward_o gréedelye_o to_o enquyre_v after_o new_a thing_n but_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o religion_n and_o the_o prick_n of_o conscience_n lead_v nicodemus_n to_o desire_v familiarlye_o to_o know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o although_o this_o spark_n of_o godliness_n lie_v hide_v as_o it_o be_v a_o long_a time_n yet_o notwithstanding_o so_o soon_o as_o christ_n be_v dead_a it_o bring_v forth_o such_o burn_a love_n towards_o our_o saviour_n christ_n which_o no_o man_n ever_o look_v for_o that_o he_o show_v himself_o in_o deed_n to_o be_v a_o faithful_a and_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ_n 19_o john_n 19_o rabbi_n we_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o teacher_n r._n the_o disputation_n of_o nicodemus_n with_o christ_n be_v very_o modest_a and_o wise_a for_o the_o disputation_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v either_o captious_a as_o be_v that_o for_o the_o payment_n of_o tribute_n and_o concern_v the_o bill_n of_o divorcement_n either_o envious_a 2._o math._n 22._o math._n 19_o math._n 22._o john_n 2._o as_o about_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o great_a commandment_n in_o the_o law_n or_o else_o unfaithful_a and_o importunate_a as_o when_o they_o desire_v a_o sign_n to_o be_v give_v they_o but_o the_o disputation_n of_o nicodemus_n be_v civil_a and_o simple_a for_o he_o come_v not_o unto_o christ_n to_o contend_v or_o malicious_o to_o try_v he_o or_o to_o catch_v he_o in_o his_o word_n but_o to_o learn_v which_o be_v the_o true_a way_n to_o justification_n his_o word_n therefore_o be_v thus_o much_o in_o effect_n master_n we_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v come_v to_o be_v a_o master_n for_o see_v at_o that_o time_n learned_a man_n be_v common_o call_v master_n nicodemus_n salute_v christ_n by_o this_o name_n according_a to_o the_o accustom_a manner_n and_o afterward_o affirm_v he_o to_o be_v send_v of_o god_n to_o teach_v and_o of_o this_o beginning_n the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o doctor_n and_o teacher_n in_o the_o church_n depend_v for_o see_v we_o must_v take_v our_o knowledge_n from_o god_n word_n only_o none_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v but_o they_o out_o of_o who_o mouth_n god_n speak_v m._n true_o it_o be_v a_o forceable_a way_n to_o promote_v and_o further_o the_o truth_n if_o so_o be_v he_o which_o teach_v the_o same_o be_v know_v to_o be_v send_v of_o god_n but_o this_o prevail_v only_o with_o the_o godly_a as_o for_o the_o wicked_a they_o have_v no_o regard_n whether_o their_o teacher_n be_v send_v from_o god_n or_o no._n with_o the_o godly_a it_o prevail_v thus_o much_o that_o at_o the_o first_o they_o resist_v not_o the_o doctrine_n nor_o the_o teacher_n thereof_o although_o through_o infirmitye_n they_o dare_v not_o as_o yet_o open_o seem_v to_o favour_v the_o same_o whereas_o contrary_a wise_a the_o wicked_a which_o be_v blind_v with_o rancour_n and_o envy_n have_v so_o little_a discretion_n and_o regard_n to_o discern_v the_o spirit_n that_o they_o can_v not_o bridle_v their_o malicious_a mind_n he_o say_v not_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o teacher_n come_v from_o god_n but_o say_v he_o we_o know_v which_o we_o surelye_o we_o pharisées_fw-fr and_o senior_n of_o the_o people_n even_o we_o be_v constrain_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o those_o sign_n and_o miracle_n which_o we_o have_v see_v to_o know_v and_o understande_v that_o thou_o be_v send_v from_o god_n howsoever_o we_o resist_v thou_o conscience_n hypocrite_n withstand_v the_o truth_n against_o their_o conscience_n and_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n and_o disposition_n of_o hypocrite_n of_o justiciaries_n and_o of_o simoniake_n which_o make_v merchandise_n of_o religion_n to_o withstand_v the_o know_a and_o manifest_a truth_n against_o their_o conscience_n for_o no_o man_n can_v do_v these_o miracle_n bu_n nicodemus_n gather_v by_o the_o miracle_n that_o jesus_n be_v send_v from_o heaven_n to_o be_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o according_a to_o his_o ignorance_n and_o want_n of_o knowledge_n he_o déeme_v he_o to_o be_v no_o better_o than_o a_o prophet_n which_o show_v sign_n &_o wonder_n by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n and_o not_o by_o his_o own_o proper_a power_n for_o say_v he_o no_o man_n can_v do_v these_o miracle_n which_o thou_o do_v except_o god_n be_v with_o he_o therefore_o because_o none_o do_v more_o proud_o glory_n &_o boast_v of_o the_o title_n &_o name_n of_o god_n than_o false_a prophet_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o have_v that_o discretion_n whereby_o the_o spirit_n be_v prove_v &_o discern_v therefore_o nicodemus_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v manifest_a that_o christ_n be_v send_v from_o heaven_n because_o god_n do_v so_o manifest_o reveal_v &_o show_v forth_o his_o power_n in_o he_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n be_v with_o he_o and_o he_o presume_v that_o no_o man_n will_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n do_v common_o work_v by_o his_o minister_n and_o servant_n &_o by_o no_o other_o insomuch_o that_o he_o confirm_v and_o approve_v the_o office_n &_o charge_n commit_v unto_o he_o and_o he_o do_v not_o so_o presume_v without_o cause_n see_v it_o be_v the_o lord_n will_v that_o miracle_n shall_v be_v always_o as_o seal_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o he_o do_v most_o apt_o and_o true_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o miracle_n when_o he_o say_v that_o no_o man_n can_v do_v these_o sign_n except_o god_n be_v with_o he_o for_o in_o effect_n he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v the_o deed_n and_o work_n of_o god_n &_o not_o of_o man_n a._n for_o otherwise_o speak_v those_o pharisées_fw-fr which_o speak_v thus_o of_o christ_n after_o he_o have_v open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a 7._o john_n 9_o john_n 7._o this_o man_n be_v not_o of_o god_n for_o he_o keep_v not_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o seduce_v the_o people_n notwithstanding_o the_o argument_n of_o nicodemus_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v very_o strong_a for_o see_v false_a prophet_n have_v deceyve_v the_o blind_a and_o ignorant_a with_o their_o false_a &_o forge_a sign_n no_o less_o than_o if_o they_o have_v prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n by_o true_a sign_n in_o deed_n what_o difference_n shall_v there_o be_v between_o truth_n &_o a_o lie_n if_o so_o be_v faith_n shall_v be_v build_v upon_o miracle_n 13_o deut._n 13_o and_o moses_n plain_o affirm_v that_o we_o be_v try_v by_o this_o mean_n whether_o we_o love_v god_n or_o no._n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a also_o of_o the_o admonition_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n where_o the_o faithful_a be_v put_v in_o mind_n to_o beware_v of_o false_a sign_n with_o the_o which_o antichrist_n delude_v 2_o math._n 24._o 2._o thes_n 2_o and_o deceyve_v many_o answer_n be_v to_o be_v make_v that_o they_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n be_v deceyve_v by_o the_o fallacy_n and_o subtle_a deceit_n of_o satan_n which_o have_v deserve_v so_o to_o be_v always_o miracle_n be_v no_o certain_a proof_n of_o the_o truth_n always_o notwithstanding_o the_o same_o do_v not_o let_v but_o that_o the_o elect_a and_o choose_v may_v behold_v and_o see_v the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o miracle_n which_o be_v to_o they_o a_o confirmation_n of_o true_a and_o wholesome_a doctrine_n 15_o 2._o cor._n 12_o rom._n 15_o thus_o paul_n reioyse_v that_o his_o apostleship_n be_v approve_v with_o sign_n and_o wonder_n therefore_o howsoever_o satan_n will_v seem_v in_o his_o darkness_n to_o imitate_v and_o follow_v god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o so_o soon_o as_o man_n eye_n be_v open_v and_o that_o the_o spiritual_a light_n of_o wisdom_n do_v appear_v miracle_n do_v set_v forth_o the_o same_o presence_n of_o god_n whereof_o nicodemê°_n here_o speak_v a._n for_o this_o cause_n our_o saviour_n christ_n 10_o math._n 10_o mar._n 10_o when_o he_o send_v forth_o his_o apostle_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n will_v have_v they_o to_o seal_v and_o confirm_v the_o same_o with_o miracle_n 3._o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o he_o can_v not_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n jesus_n answer_v bu_n the_o manner_n and_o way_n by_o the_o which_o the_o lord_n instruct_v nicodemus_n be_v in_o manner_n of_o a_o dialogue_n for_o the_o same_o be_v very_o plain_a simple_a manifest_a and_o evident_a teach_n dialogue_n a_o aunsient_a kind_n of_o teach_n and_o the_o lord_n in_o all_o thing_n have_v frame_v himself_o to_o our_o imbecility_n and_o weakness_n and_o have_v seek_v by_o all_o
one_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n the_o wind_n blow_v b_z this_o be_v a_o explanation_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o go_v before_o but_o there_o be_v some_o which_o understande_v these_o thing_n not_o of_o the_o wind_n but_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o the_o hebrew_n word_n ruah_n signify_v either_o of_o they_o chr._n other_o some_o a_o great_a deal_n better_o understand_v the_o same_o which_o say_v that_o the_o similitude_n be_v take_v of_o the_o wind_n &_o do_v thus_o apply_v it_o to_o this_o present_a place_n the_o force_n of_o this_o wind_n be_v feel_v but_o the_o original_n and_o cause_n thereof_o be_v not_o know_v c._n but_o howsoever_o we_o wrest_v the_o scence_n of_o christ_n let_v we_o hold_v fast_o this_o that_o christ_n borrow_v this_o similitude_n of_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n nicodemus_n think_v that_o incredible_a which_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o regeneration_n and_o of_o a_o new_a life_n because_o his_o capacity_n can_v not_o reach_v unto_o the_o same_o christ_n to_o take_v from_o he_o this_o scruple_n or_o doubt_n teach_v that_o the_o wonderful_a power_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o corporal_a life_n the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v hide_v for_o all_o man_n draw_v the_o vital_a spirit_n out_o of_o the_o air_n even_o so_o the_o agitation_n or_o move_v of_o the_o air_n be_v feel_v notwithstanding_o from_o whence_o it_o come_v or_o whither_o it_o go_v we_o know_v not_o if_o in_o this_o frail_a and_o momentanye_a life_n god_n deal_v so_o mighty_o that_o we_o be_v constrain_v to_o wonder_v at_o his_o power_n what_o a_o absurd_a thing_n be_v it_o in_o the_o celestial_a and_o supernatural_a life_n to_o measure_v his_o secret_a work_n by_o the_o apprehension_n and_o capacity_n of_o our_o mind_n insomuch_o that_o we_o will_v believe_v no_o more_o than_o appear_v even_o so_o paul_n when_o he_o invey_v against_o those_o which_o therefore_o reject_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n because_o it_o seem_v impossible_a that_o the_o body_n which_o be_v now_o subject_a to_o putrefaction_n shall_v be_v bless_v with_o immortality_n when_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o nothing_o and_o consume_v to_o dust_n reprove_v their_o dulness_n because_o they_o consider_v not_o the_o like_a power_n of_o god_n in_o the_o seed_n wheat_n 104_o âor_a 15_o psal_n 104_o for_o the_o seed_n do_v not_o grow_v until_o it_o have_v suffer_v putrefaction_n this_o be_v even_o the_o same_o wonderful_a wisdom_n of_o god_n of_o the_o which_o the_o prophet_n david_n cry_v out_o in_o his_o psalm_n therefore_o they_o be_v to_o gross_a and_o dull_a which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o common_a order_n of_o nature_n have_v no_o far_o respect_n to_o know_v that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v far_o more_o mighty_a and_o wonder_a he_o say_v it_o blow_v whither_o it_o list_v not_o because_o the_o wind_n have_v proper_o a_o will_n but_o because_o the_o agitation_n and_o whirl_v thereof_o be_v free_a and_o diverse_a for_o the_o air_n be_v one_o while_o carry_v this_o way_n another_o while_n that_o way_n m._n and_o this_o be_v no_o unwoonted_a phrase_n of_o speech_n by_o which_o human_a scence_n seem_v to_o be_v give_v to_o thing_n without_o life_n so_o be_v every_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n c._n hereby_o our_o saviour_n christ_n declare_v that_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o same_o may_v be_v as_o well_o discern_v in_o the_o renovation_n and_o regeneration_n of_o man_n as_o we_o may_v perceyve_v and_o feel_v the_o motion_n of_o the_o air_n and_o wind_n in_o this_o terrestrial_a and_o external_a life_n but_o yet_o that_o the_o manner_n how_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o and_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v ingrateful_a and_o too_o to_o wicked_a if_o we_o do_v not_o adore_v and_o magnify_v the_o incomprehensible_a power_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heavenly_a life_n of_o the_o which_o he_o have_v in_o this_o world_n set_v before_o we_o so_o lively_a a_o view_n and_o also_o if_o we_o attribute_v less_o unto_o he_o in_o restore_v to_o we_o our_o soul_n health_n than_o in_o defend_v the_o state_n of_o our_o corporal_a life_n the_o application_n shall_v be_v more_o plain_a and_o manifest_a if_o we_o thus_o resolve_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n such_o be_v the_o power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o a_o man_n regenerate_v par._n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n transform_v and_o change_v man_n mind_n by_o secret_a inspiration_n the_o power_n and_o effect_v thereof_o be_v feel_v wonder_a and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o action_n of_o the_o same_o be_v not_o discern_v with_o the_o eye_n and_o they_o which_o be_v thus_o regenerate_v be_v not_o now_o lead_v with_o the_o human_a or_o fleshly_a spirit_n but_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o quicken_v and_o order_v all_o thing_n bu_n insomuch_o that_o the_o apostle_n feel_v the_o force_n thereof_o say_v 2.20_o galat._n 2.20_o i_o live_v yet_o now_o not_o i_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o i_o and_o although_o the_o inward_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n have_v the_o pre-eminence_n in_o regeneration_n yet_o notwithstanding_o let_v no_o good_a man_n reject_v the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n by_o which_o faith_n be_v plant_v for_o it_o be_v that_o immortal_a &_o incorruptible_a seed_n by_o which_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o to_o life_n nor_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o which_o the_o saint_n desire_v to_o have_v faith_n give_v and_o increase_v nor_o baptism_n by_o which_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v purge_v and_o wash_v from_o our_o sin_n 9_o nicodemus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o how_o can_v these_o thing_n be_v b._n the_o hour_n be_v not_o yet_o full_o come_v in_o the_o which_o nicodemus_n shall_v be_v full_o teach_v all_o thing_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o the_o first_o when_o he_o think_v that_o christ_n speak_v of_o a_o carnal_a regeneration_n he_o object_v the_o impossibility_n of_o the_o same_o after_o that_o when_o he_o understand_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o another_o manner_n of_o nativity_n than_o of_o that_o which_o be_v carnal_a as_o of_o the_o nativity_n by_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n the_o which_o be_v declare_v unto_o he_o by_o a_o similitude_n he_o woonder_v &_o as_o one_o amaze_v demand_v how_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v c._o we_o see_v therefore_o what_o special_o let_v &_o hinder_v nicodemus_n whatsoever_o he_o hear_v he_o count_v wonder_a because_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o comprehend_v it_o even_o so_o there_o be_v no_o great_a hindrance_n unto_o we_o than_o our_o own_o arrogancy_n because_o in_o deed_n we_o always_o seek_v to_o be_v more_o wise_a than_o need_v and_o thereupon_o through_o a_o devilish_a disdain_n we_o reject_v all_o that_o our_o reason_n can_v comprehend_v as_o though_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o unspeakable_a and_o incomprehensible_a power_n of_o god_n aught_o to_o be_v restrain_v to_o so_o straight_o a_o measure_n we_o may_v after_o a_o sort_n inquire_v of_o the_o order_n and_o manner_n of_o god_n work_n so_o that_o it_o be_v do_v soberlye_o and_o reverentlye_o but_o nicodemus_n by_o this_o demand_n reject_v that_o which_o he_o béeléeve_v to_o be_v impossible_a as_o a_o fable_n m._n and_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o the_o evangelist_n so_o dilligentlye_o put_v down_o unto_o we_o the_o dulness_n and_o scencelesnesse_n of_o nicodemus_n in_o matter_n divine_a and_o appertain_v to_o salvation_n for_o we_o have_v in_o this_o man_n some_o proof_n of_o that_o which_o christ_n speak_v before_o set_v before_o we_o name_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o man_n to_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n except_o he_o be_v bear_v again_o bu_n for_o nicodemus_n be_v so_o notable_a a_o clerk_n be_v blind_a and_o ignorant_a after_o so_o great_a light_n because_o he_o be_v not_o bear_v again_o say_v how_o can_v these_o thing_n be_v whereby_o it_o appéer_v that_o he_o be_v so_o amaze_v at_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o ignorant_a of_o the_o matter_n itself_o but_o also_o be_v not_o able_a to_o comprehend_v the_o declaration_n of_o the_o same_o as_o it_o be_v propound_v by_o christ_n in_o plain_a word_n even_o so_o at_o this_o day_n we_o see_v learn_v and_o wise_a man_n to_o be_v quite_o senseless_a and_o foolish_a when_o they_o come_v to_o comprehend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o they_o which_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o truth_n do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o persuade_v everye_o one_o to_o who_o they_o preach_v when_o as_o christ_n with_o his_o word_n can_v not_o at_o the_o first_o persuade_v nicodemus_n but_o the_o fault_n be_v not_o in_o christ_n the_o teacher_n but_o
wise_a with_o god._n but_o we_o be_v to_o nothing_o more_o unwilling_a therefore_o we_o must_v embrace_v the_o sentence_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n here_o name_o that_o all_o our_o scence_z do_v vanish_v away_o and_o fail_v we_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o deep_a consideration_n of_o god._n but_o after_o our_o saviour_n have_v exclude_v we_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o straightway_o offer_v to_o we_o a_o remedy_n when_o he_o add_v say_v that_o it_o be_v give_v to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v deny_v to_o all_o other_o thither_o christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n to_o lead_v we_o thither_o for_o whereas_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n he_o do_v not_o thither_o ascend_v for_o his_o own_o private_a sake_n alone_o but_o that_o he_o may_v be_v unto_o we_o a_o guide_n and_o a_o director_n or_o preparer_n of_o the_o way_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o have_v call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o man_n b._n that_o be_v to_o say_v perfect_a man_n lest_o we_o shall_v doubt_v to_o have_v entrance_n with_o he_o thither_o who_o therefore_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o partaker_n with_o he_o of_o all_o good_a thing_n see_v therefore_o he_o be_v the_o only_a counsellor_n of_o his_o father_n 9.6_o esay_n 9.6_o he_o admit_v we_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o secret_a mystery_n which_o otherwise_o shall_v lie_v hide_v and_o to_o this_o effect_n pertain_v the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n before_o where_o he_o say_v no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n 1.18_o john_n 1.18_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n 14.6_o john_n 14.6_o he_o have_v declare_v he_o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n no_o man_n come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o i_o r._n for_o he_o be_v the_o treasury_n of_o god_n wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n nay_o he_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n itself_o which_o reveal_v himself_o to_o babe_n objection_n m._n but_o how_o do_v christ_n affirm_v that_o no_o man_n have_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 2._o 2._o king_n 2._o see_v it_o be_v write_v of_o elias_n that_o he_o ascend_v by_o a_o whirl_n wind_n into_o heaven_n i_o answer_v answer_v answer_v that_o christ_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o a_o corporal_a ascension_n but_o of_o that_o ascension_n by_o which_o man_n come_v to_o the_o light_n of_o the_o divinity_n that_o can_v be_v attain_v unto_o and_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o heavenlye_a mystery_n of_o god_n will_n elias_n at_o the_o first_o although_o he_o be_v in_o body_n catch_v up_o into_o heaven_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o know_v not_o the_o secret_n of_o the_o heaven_n only_o know_v to_o god_n 3.10_o ephe._n 3.10_o and_o hide_a from_o the_o very_a angel_n but_o he_o that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n now_o our_o saviour_n begin_v to_o direct_v his_o speech_n to_o make_v declaration_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o dispensation_n and_o incarnation_n which_o he_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n this_o dissension_n or_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n be_v the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o word_n by_o which_o the_o only_a beget_v son_n of_o god_n be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o man_n even_o the_o same_o which_o be_v in_o heaven_n c._n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o this_o say_n shall_v seem_v hard_a and_o absurd_a unto_o we_o in_o that_o he_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n when_o as_o he_o dwell_v on_o earth_n because_o in_o christ_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o person_n that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o one_o be_v transfer_v &_o give_v to_o another_o the_o which_o be_v very_o often_o use_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n have_v purchase_v himself_o a_o church_n by_o his_o blood_n christ_n therefore_o which_o be_v in_o heaven_n take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n 20.28_o act_n 20.28_o that_o by_o reach_v to_o we_o his_o brotherlye_o hand_n he_o may_v lift_v we_o up_o with_o he_o into_o heaven_n 14._o and_o as_o moses_n lyft_v up_o the_o serpent_n in_o the_o wilderness_n so_o must_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v lift_v up_o m._n these_o word_n and_o those_o which_o follow_v contain_v a_o exposition_n of_o the_o dispensation_n which_o he_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o whereby_o he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o his_o father_n descend_v from_o heaven_n into_o this_o world_n to_o redeem_v mankind_n c._n therefore_o christ_n here_o more_o plain_o declare_v heaven_n christ_n our_o entrance_n into_o heaven_n wherefore_o he_o say_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v open_a to_o he_o alone_o namely_o that_o he_o may_v bring_v all_o those_o thither_o which_o will_v follow_v he_o their_o leader_n and_o guide_n for_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o must_v plain_o and_o open_o be_v offer_v to_o all_o man_n that_o he_o may_v pour_v out_o his_o virtue_n and_o power_n upon_o all_o 21.8_o num._n 21.8_o the_o story_n which_o here_o be_v rather_o touch_v than_o expound_v be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n bu_n where_o we_o read_v that_o moses_n pray_v for_o the_o people_n which_o be_v afflict_v with_o strange_a serpent_n for_o their_o murmur_a and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n but_o the_o lord_n command_v moses_n to_o erect_v and_o set_v up_o a_o brazen_a serpent_n for_o a_o sign_n by_o the_o sight_n whereof_o those_o that_o be_v sting_v with_o the_o serpent_n be_v heal_v c._n to_o be_v exalt_v here_o signify_v to_o be_v set_v and_o place_v in_o a_o plain_a and_o high_a place_n that_o all_o man_n may_v see_v this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o where_o as_o some_o understande_v these_o word_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o exalt_v and_o lift_v up_o of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n it_o agréee_v not_o with_o the_o text_n and_o be_v very_o far_o from_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n therefore_o the_o simple_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n be_v that_o christ_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o and_o display_v like_o a_o ensign_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o all_o man_n shall_v behold_v with_o their_o eye_n as_o esayas_n before_o have_v prophesy_v say_v 2.2_o esay_n 2.2_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o last_o day_n that_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v prepare_v in_o the_o top_n of_o the_o mountain_n and_o shall_v be_v exalt_v above_o the_o hill_n and_o all_o nation_n shall_v flow_v unto_o it_o of_o this_o exaltation_n the_o lift_v up_o of_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n by_o moses_n be_v a_o type_n or_o figure_n the_o sight_n whereof_o be_v a_o present_a remedy_n to_o all_o those_o which_o be_v mortallye_o sting_v with_o serpent_n wherefore_o christ_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o same_o in_o this_o place_n to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n namely_o to_o teach_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v set_v before_o all_o man_n to_o behold_v and_o consider_v the_o same_o that_o so_o many_o as_o behold_v he_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n may_v attain_v to_o eternal_a salvation_n whereby_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o christ_n be_v plain_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n in_o the_o gospel_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v complain_v or_o find_v fault_n with_o obscurity_n and_o that_o this_o manifestation_n or_o revelation_n of_o christ_n be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n 3.1_o fayth_n most_o effectual_o beehold_v christ_n galath_n 3.1_o who_o by_o faith_n may_v see_v he_o as_o effectual_o as_o if_o he_o be_v present_a before_o their_o eye_n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o he_o be_v describe_v before_o our_o eye_n when_o he_o be_v true_o preach_v and_o this_o similitude_n be_v not_o impertinent_a or_o far_o fetch_v for_o as_o the_o serpent_n of_o brass_n be_v but_o a_o external_a show_n of_o a_o serpent_n salvation_n christ_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n our_o salvation_n and_o contain_v nothing_o within_o that_o be_v hurtful_a or_o venomous_a bu_n even_o so_o christ_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n and_o similitude_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n in_o all_o thing_n have_v our_o true_a and_o carnal_a substance_n in_o everye_o point_n most_o disagrée_v and_o far_o from_o all_o sin_n c._n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v heal_v that_o deadly_a wound_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v in_o us._n bu_n for_o that_o old_a serpent_n do_v sting_v very_o foore_a our_o father_n adam_n in_o paradise_n and_o everye_o one_o of_o we_o also_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o adam_n he_o have_v so_o infect_v with_o his_o pestiferous_a poison_n that_o in_o all_o the_o race_n of_o our_o life_n we_o be_v whole_a addict_v and_o give_v to_o self_n love_n and_o to_o the_o desire_n
love_v we_o because_o it_o spring_v from_o his_o eternal_a purpose_n be_v above_o all_o other_o cause_n but_o that_o his_o grace_n which_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v make_v manifest_a unto_o we_o and_o by_o which_o we_o have_v assurance_n of_o salvation_n begin_v at_o the_o reconciliation_n make_v by_o christ_n for_o see_v we_o must_v needs_o grant_v that_o he_o hate_v all_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n how_o can_v we_o assure_v ourselves_o to_o be_v in_o his_o love_n and_o favour_n until_o our_o sin_n be_v clean_o put_v away_o for_o the_o which_o he_o be_v just_o angry_a with_o us._n thus_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v the_o mean_a to_o make_v god_n favourable_a unto_o we_o before_o we_o can_v have_v any_o manner_n of_o feel_v of_o his_o fatherly_a love_n and_o clemency_n b._n and_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n because_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o god_n child_n and_o have_v all_o receyve_v of_o the_o fullness_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o we_o also_o may_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god._n moreover_o there_o be_v never_o any_o man_n beside_o he_o 7.26_o heb._n 7.26_o that_o be_v without_o sin_n and_o which_o bear_v the_o full_a and_o perfect_a image_n of_o god_n for_o he_o only_o be_v innocent_a and_o this_o name_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n god_n christ_n by_o nature_n but_o we_o by_o adoption_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n appertain_v to_o christ_n by_o right_a because_o by_o nature_n he_o be_v the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n but_o we_o by_o adoption_n be_v ingraff_v into_o his_o body_n therefore_o this_o name_n of_o only_o beget_v son_n be_v put_v down_o unto_o we_o to_o express_v the_o vehemency_n of_o god_n love_n toward_o us._n for_o because_o man_n do_v not_o easy_o persuade_v themselves_o to_o be_v belove_v of_o god_n to_o take_v away_o all_o doubt_n from_o we_o he_o express_o say_v that_o god_n have_v so_o great_o love_v we_o that_o for_o our_o sake_n he_o have_v not_o spare_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n see_v then_o god_n have_v sufficient_o declare_v unto_o we_o his_o love_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o little_a injurious_a to_o christ_n that_o not_o content_v with_o this_o testimony_n shall_v doubt_v still_o and_o make_v no_o more_o account_v of_o christ_n than_o if_o one_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o man_n have_v be_v give_v to_o death_n but_o we_o must_v rather_o way_n and_o consider_v of_o how_o great_a price_n god_n esteem_v his_o son_n to_o who_o our_o salvation_n be_v so_o precious_a that_o he_o will_v redeem_v the_o same_o with_o the_o price_n of_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n even_o so_o the_o apostle_n set_v this_o love_n of_o god_n toward_o we_o before_o our_o eye_n to_o be_v consider_v 8.32_o rom._n 8.32_o say_v which_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o son_n but_o give_v he_o for_o we_o all_o how_o also_o with_o he_o shall_v he_o not_o give_v unto_o we_o all_o thing_n that_o everye_o one_o which_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v a._n concern_v these_o word_n read_v the_o fifteen_o verse_n go_v before_o 17._o for_o god_n send_v not_o his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n to_o condemn_v the_o world_n but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v be_v save_v through_o he_o m._n these_o word_n appertain_v to_o the_o enlarge_n &_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n with_o the_o which_o he_o have_v so_o love_v this_o world_n that_o he_o have_v give_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n to_o the_o same_o he_o may_v by_o the_o send_n of_o his_o son_n utter_o condemn_v and_o destroy_v the_o world_n for_o the_o world_n by_o his_o wickedness_n and_o impiety_n have_v deserve_v perpetual_a condemnation_n but_o such_o be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n toward_o the_o same_o that_o he_o have_v rather_o spare_v it_o and_o by_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v a_o saviour_n seek_v rather_o to_o offer_v the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n than_o of_o condemnation_n therefore_o this_o be_v here_o attribute_v to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n because_o he_o will_v not_o take_v vengeance_n of_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o world_n and_o because_o the_o same_o love_n be_v so_o great_a that_o by_o the_o excellency_n thereof_o it_o have_v repress_v the_o severity_n of_o the_o judgement_n by_o which_o he_o may_v just_o have_v condemn_v the_o world_n r._n the_o will_v therefore_o of_o the_o father_n be_v to_o save_v by_o the_o son_n but_o what_o for_o all_o this_o surelye_o although_o our_o sin_n condemn_v we_o yet_o the_o father_n save_v we_o by_o the_o son_n if_o we_o be_v afflict_v by_o the_o cross_n the_o father_n save_v we_o by_o his_o son_n if_o we_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o death_n yet_o the_o father_n save_v we_o by_o the_o son_n therefore_o let_v we_o stedfastlye_o believe_v and_o lean_v to_o this_o word_n god_n send_v not_o his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n to_o condemn_v the_o world_n but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v be_v save_v through_o he_o for_o hereby_o thou_o may_v receyve_v great_a comfort_n and_o consolation_n in_o all_o thy_o affliction_n bu_n for_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n .24_o math._n 26_o and_o .24_o to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a with_o great_a power_n and_o majesty_n but_o it_o will_v be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n first_o now_o he_o come_v not_o as_o a_o judge_n but_o as_o a_o most_o merciful_a saviour_n therefore_o although_o now_o thy_o great_a sin_n do_v accuse_v thou_o and_o condemn_v thou_o consider_v that_o this_o be_v the_o time_n of_o grace_n and_o mercy_n and_o fear_v not_o but_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n and_o so_o shall_v thou_o find_v grace_n and_o favour_n .23_o ezech._n 18_o and_o .23_o r._n for_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n i_o live_v which_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o rather_o that_o lie_v turn_n from_o his_o wickedness_n and_o live_v bu_n therefore_o if_o thou_o be_v convert_v and_o repose_v thy_o whole_a trust_n in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o suffer_v for_o thou_o that_o he_o may_v make_v satisfaction_n for_o thy_o sin_n 8.31_o rom._n 8.31_o and_o reconcile_v thou_o unto_o god_n thou_o shall_v be_v safe_a 2.1_o 1._o john_n 2.1_o for_o paul_n say_v if_o god_n be_v with_o we_o who_o can_v be_v against_o we_o and_o saint_n john_n say_v if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o our_o sin_n alone_o but_o for_o the_o sin_n also_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n .10_o luke_n 19_o and_o .10_o to_o this_o effect_n also_o appertain_v this_o evangelicall_a sentence_n the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v to_o save_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v and_o diverse_a other_o such_o like_a sentence_n e._n moreover_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v in_o another_o place_n 9.39_o john_n 9.39_o be_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n i_o come_v to_o judgement_n into_o the_o world_n that_o they_o which_o see_v not_o may_v see_v and_o that_o they_o which_o see_v may_v be_v make_v blind_a for_o in_o these_o word_n he_o declare_v what_o his_o come_n shall_v be_v to_o many_o but_o in_o this_o place_n what_o special_o it_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n .47_o john_n 12._o and_o .47_o so_o be_v that_o to_o be_v take_v which_o he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n for_o i_o come_v not_o to_o judge_v the_o world_n c._n to_o judge_v here_o be_v take_v for_o to_o condemn_v as_o in_o many_o other_o place_n also_o therefore_o in_o that_o he_o deny_v that_o he_o come_v to_o condemn_v the_o world_n he_o note_v thereby_o the_o proper_a end_n of_o his_o come_n for_o how_o needless_a be_v it_o that_o christ_n shall_v come_v to_o destroy_v we_o which_o be_v to_o much_o already_o overwhelm_v with_o destruction_n therefore_o in_o christ_n we_o must_v consider_v nothing_o but_o that_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n 8.33_o rom._n 8.33_o seek_v to_o help_v we_o and_o to_o deliver_v we_o from_o destruction_n b._n and_o as_o he_o can_v sin_v to_o condemnation_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n the_o lord_n at_o the_o length_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n purge_v out_o all_o sin_n 5.24_o joh._n 5.24_o and_o undoubted_o pardon_v whatsoever_o be_v commit_v even_o so_o such_o a_o one_o can_v be_v judge_v that_o be_v to_o say_v condemn_v for_o by_o christ_n he_o have_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o be_v assure_v of_o god_n love_n and_o favour_n in_o christ_n have_v already_o eternal_a life_n wherefore_o whatsoever_o belong_v unto_o sin_n and_o death_n must_v decrease_v and_o fade_v away_o othersome_a which_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o
5.10_o 1._o joh._n 5.10_o to_o this_o effect_n pertain_v that_o say_n of_o john_n if_o we_o receyve_v the_o testimony_n of_o man_n the_o testimony_n of_o god_n be_v great_a and_o so_o forth_o till_o you_o come_v to_o these_o word_n he_o which_o have_v the_o son_n have_v life_n and_o he_o which_o have_v not_o the_o son_n have_v not_o life_n m._n therefore_o we_o look_v for_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n not_o as_o of_o a_o judge_n but_o as_o a_o deliverer_n and_o redeemer_n but_o to_o the_o wicked_a and_o unbeléeving_a he_o shall_v come_v a_o terrible_a and_o fearful_a judge_n 2.2_o heb._n 2.2_o bu_n for_o if_o they_o escape_v not_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o despise_v the_o send_n and_o word_n of_o angel_n much_o less_o shall_v they_o escape_v the_o horrible_a judgement_n of_o god_n 10.27_o heb._n 10.27_o which_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n for_o there_o wait_v for_o they_o a_o certain_a fearful_a look_v for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o a_o burn_a fire_n which_o shall_v devour_v his_o adversaries_n 19_o and_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n love_v darkness_n more_o than_o light_n because_o their_o deed_n wear_v evil_a and_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n m._n because_o he_o say_v that_o the_o unbeléever_n be_v judge_v already_o and_o condemn_v by_o his_o own_o wickedness_n he_o add_v and_o declare_v that_o the_o reason_n and_o order_n of_o this_o judgement_n be_v such_o that_o no_o man_n can_v not_o choose_v but_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o c._n therefore_o he_o prevent_v by_o answer_n the_o murmur_n and_o grudge_n which_o profane_a and_o wicked_a man_n be_v wont_v to_o use_v to_o reproove_v the_o severe_a rigour_n as_o they_o think_v of_o god_n when_o he_o deal_v more_o sharp_o with_o they_o than_o they_o will_v have_v he_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o hard_a that_o everye_o one_o which_o beléeve_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v therefore_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v ascribe_v his_o damnation_n to_o christ_n he_o teach_v that_o everye_o man_n must_v impute_v the_o same_o to_o his_o proper_a fault_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o infidelitye_n be_v the_o witness_n of_o a_o evyll_n conscience_n whereby_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o wickedness_n of_o unbeléever_n do_v hinder_v they_o from_o come_v to_o christ_n there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v that_o there_o be_v only_o note_v here_o the_o sign_n of_o damnation_n but_o the_o purpose_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n here_o be_v to_o bridle_v the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n lest_o they_o shall_v presume_v according_a to_o their_o manner_n to_o contend_v and_o reason_v the_o cause_n with_o god_n as_o though_o he_o deal_v uniustlye_o with_o they_o in_o punish_v their_o infidelitye_n with_o eternal_a death_n therefore_o he_o teach_v that_o such_o judgement_n be_v just_a and_o free_a from_o all_o slander_v not_o only_o because_o they_o do_v wicked_o which_o prefer_v darkness_n before_o light_n and_o do_v willing_o shun_v the_o light_n offer_v unto_o they_o but_o also_o because_o that_o hatred_n of_o the_o light_n procee_v not_o but_o from_o a_o wicked_a mind_n which_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v itself_o of_o evil_a b._n wherefore_o the_o principal_a point_n and_o substance_n of_o their_o whole_a condemnation_n be_v predestination_n predestination_n that_o they_o can_v not_o prefer_v christ_n before_o their_o own_o desire_n because_o so_o many_o as_o be_v damn_v be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v before_o they_o be_v bear_v 1.4_o ephe_n 1.4_o even_o as_o also_o with_o god_n so_o many_o as_o be_v save_v be_v save_v before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o as_o these_o be_v elect_v before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n so_o be_v the_o other_o reject_v before_o the_o world_n be_v make_v reprobation_n reprobation_n and_o this_o reprobation_n do_v then_o appear_v when_o they_o reject_v the_o gospel_n of_o grace_n offer_v unto_o they_o and_o have_v rather_o be_v ignorant_a of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o want_v the_o light_n than_o to_o receyve_v he_o and_o to_o attain_v to_o life_n by_o the_o which_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o do_v accomplish_v and_o fill_v uppe_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o wickedness_n to_o the_o full_a that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o geve_v occasion_n to_o have_v their_o judgement_n and_o condemnation_n seal_v and_o fulfil_v m._n therefore_o in_o this_o they_o be_v inexcusable_a that_o they_o do_v willing_o reject_v and_o refuse_v that_o grace_n offer_v unto_o they_o which_o most_o earnest_o they_o ought_v to_o embrace_v and_o desire_v b._n by_o darkness_n be_v here_o mean_v the_o ignorance_n of_o christ_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o worldly_a man_n love_v more_o than_o christ_n for_o they_o which_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o god_n as_o they_o can_v not_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o prefer_v the_o ignorance_n of_o christ_n before_o they_o knowledge_n he_o and_o so_o to_o love_v darkness_n more_o than_o light_n m._n when_o he_o say_v that_o light_n come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o mean_v that_o all_o thing_n in_o this_o world_n be_v replenish_v and_o full_a of_o darkness_n for_o what_o can_v be_v find_v in_o this_o world_n without_o christ_n christ_n darkness_n be_v all_o thing_n in_o this_o world_n without_o christ_n but_o darkness_n bu_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o ignorance_n of_o god_n impiety_n error_n blindness_n of_o the_o mind_n superstition_n idolatrye_a wickedness_n of_o life_n filthiness_n uncleanness_n profane_a talk_n gluttony_n drunkenness_n and_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o such_o like_a wickedness_n for_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n because_o their_o deed_n be_v evyll_n b._n this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o wicked_a be_v enemy_n to_o the_o light_n of_o life_n god_n christ_n the_o light_n of_o god_n christ_n be_v the_o light_n of_o god_n by_o which_o whatsoever_o be_v evyll_n be_v reproove_v for_o how_o can_v injustice_n be_v hide_v when_o righteousness_n be_v in_o place_n how_o can_v foolishness_n not_o be_v see_v when_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o wisdom_n now_o flesh_n in_o the_o which_o there_o be_v no_o goodness_n can_v abide_v nothing_o less_o than_o to_o have_v the_o same_o uncover_v and_o therefore_o it_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o hate_n christ_n which_o manife_v and_o reveal_v all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v renew_v and_o bear_v again_o which_o receyve_v christ_n m._n the_o reason_n therefore_o why_o those_o man_n name_o the_o scribe_n high_a priest_n and_o pharisee_n and_o those_o of_o that_o sect_n love_v darkness_n more_o than_o light_n be_v because_o their_o deed_n be_v evyll_n that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o their_o own_o conscience_n bear_v they_o witness_v that_o all_o their_o work_n be_v evyll_n bu_n by_o this_o word_n work_n he_o understand_v evil_a intentes_fw-la thought_n word_n and_o work_n out_o of_o these_o word_n the_o apostle_n borrow_v this_o say_n if_o our_o gospel_n be_v yet_o hide_v 4.3_o 2._o cor._n 4.3_o it_o be_v hide_v in_o they_o that_o be_v lose_v in_o who_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v the_o mind_n of_o they_o which_o believe_v not_o lest_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n shall_v shine_v unto_o they_o therefore_o in_o that_o they_o perish_v they_o perish_v through_o their_o own_o fault_n see_v the_o most_o merciful_a lord_n have_v do_v his_o part_n but_o they_o will_v not_o do_v their_o duty_n if_o the_o sick_a man_n perish_v which_o will_v not_o bewray_v his_o disease_n to_o the_o physician_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v heal_v may_v he_o not_o pronounce_v of_o himself_o that_o he_o perish_v through_o his_o own_o fault_n even_o so_o man_n that_o be_v lover_n of_o this_o world_n be_v enemy_n to_o the_o light_n offer_v to_o they_o because_o their_o deed_n be_v evil_a a._n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o they_o run_v headlong_o into_o destruction_n 20._o for_o everye_o one_o that_o evyll_n do_v hate_v the_o light_n neither_o come_v to_o the_o light_n lest_o his_o dede_n shall_v be_v reprove_v m._n this_o be_v a_o general_a sentence_n take_v of_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o reprobate_n the_o sense_n whereof_o be_v this_o b._n he_o be_v common_o say_v to_o hate_v the_o truth_n which_o do_v amiss_o see_v therefore_o the_o wicked_a can_v not_o abide_v christ_n the_o light_n of_o god_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o they_o be_v evil_a and_o that_o their_o deed_n be_v evil_a also_o c._n for_o therefore_o the_o light_n be_v odious_a unto_o they_o because_o they_o and_o their_o dede_n be_v evil_a and_o do_v seek_v to_o cover_v their_o sin_n so_o much_o as_o they_o can_v whereupon_o
there_o and_o show_v many_o sign_n because_o the_o time_n of_o his_o gloryfication_n draw_v near_o m._n but_o because_o the_o time_n be_v come_v to_o gather_v together_o the_o church_n of_o the_o faithful_a church_n two_o thing_n deliver_v to_o the_o church_n christ_n begin_v to_o order_n and_o appoint_v a_o church_n bu_n and_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n special_o which_o he_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n with_o the_o which_o he_o exercise_v the_o same_o namely_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o truth_n and_o holy_a baptism_n c._n for_o although_o christ_n baptise_a by_o his_o disciple_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v here_o name_v as_o the_o author_n of_o baptism_n the_o minister_n be_v leave_v out_o which_o do_v nothing_o but_o in_o his_o name_n and_o at_o his_o commandment_n r._n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n what_o manner_n of_o person_n the_o minister_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n aug._n for_o when_o the_o integrity_n and_o pureness_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v handle_v it_o make_v no_o matter_n what_o faith_n he_o be_v of_o which_o geve_v the_o sacrament_n it_o make_v much_o touch_v the_o way_n of_o his_o own_o salvation_n but_o as_o touch_v the_o question_n of_o the_o sacrament_n it_o make_v no_o matter_n at_o all_o r._n for_o the_o sacrament_n have_v his_o integrity_n from_o the_o word_n or_o from_o the_o preach_v annex_v to_o the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o word_n have_v his_o authority_n from_o god_n 23._o and_o john_n also_o baptise_a in_o aenon_n beside_o salim_n because_o there_o be_v much_o water_n there_o and_o they_o come_v and_o be_v baptise_a m._n christ_n now_o teach_v and_o baptise_v john_n as_o it_o may_v seem_v may_v lawfullye_o have_v forsake_v his_o office_n give_v himself_o to_o rest_n and_o have_v follow_v security_n 1.29_o john_n 1.29_o a._n special_o new_a that_o he_o have_v testify_v of_o he_o already_o that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n m._n but_o because_o he_o be_v send_v by_o god_n to_o teach_v and_o to_o baptise_v he_o do_v not_o at_o his_o own_o will_n and_o pleasure_n lie_v aside_o the_o office_n commit_v unto_o to_o he_o but_o look_v and_o wait_v for_o the_o time_n appoint_v of_o god._n 23.21_o we_o may_v not_o forsake_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n at_o out_o own_o pleasure_n which_o be_v call_v to_o be_v preacher_n jere._n 23.21_o by_o this_o example_n we_o be_v teach_v not_o to_o cease_v from_o execute_v our_o office_n and_o duty_n so_o long_o as_o the_o administration_n thereof_o be_v permit_v for_o as_o he_o offend_v which_o run_v before_o he_o be_v call_v a._n as_o the_o lord_n complain_v by_o the_o prophet_n jeremye_n even_o so_o verylye_o he_o offend_v no_o less_o which_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n take_v and_o forsake_v the_o office_n which_o god_n have_v commit_v to_o he_o c._n the_o geographer_n affirm_v that_o these_o two_o town_n aenon_n and_o salim_n be_v not_o far_o from_o the_o river_n of_o jordane_n and_o jaboc_n near_o unto_o the_o which_o two_o town_n they_o make_v a_o city_n call_v scythopolis_n hierome_n say_v it_o make_v no_o matter_n whether_o you_o read_v salem_n or_o salim_n c._n the_o cause_n why_o john_n baptise_a in_o aenon_n be_v add_v for_o that_o there_o be_v much_o water_n there_o b._n judea_n want_v the_o same_o very_a much_o god_n water_n of_o baptism_n sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o river_n of_o jordane_n do_v overflowe_v and_o yet_o we_o read_v not_o that_o it_o be_v consecrate_v with_o any_o cross_n character_n or_o seremony_n for_o the_o pure_a water_n of_o baptism_n be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o godly_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o read_v the_o like_a hereof_o where_o it_o be_v say_v and_o as_o they_o go_v on_o their_o way_n 8.36_o act_n 8.36_o they_o come_v to_o a_o certain_a water_n and_o the_o eunuch_n say_v see_v here_o be_v water_n what_o let_v i_o to_o be_v baptise_a not_o that_o we_o may_v at_o this_o day_n leave_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o baptise_v in_o everye_o ryver_n lake_n or_o spring_n for_o the_o apostle_n will_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v decentlye_o and_o in_o order_n 14.40_o 1._o cor._n 14.40_o c._n by_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n we_o may_v also_o gather_v that_o both_o john_n and_o christ_n celebrate_a baptism_n by_o duck_v the_o whole_a body_n in_o the_o water_n how_o be_v it_o let_v we_o not_o be_v too_o curious_a in_o the_o external_a rite_n so_o it_o be_v agree_v with_o the_o spiritual_a truth_n and_o with_o the_o institution_n and_o rule_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n 24._o for_o john_n be_v not_o yet_o cast_v into_o prison_n m._n therefore_o the_o prison_n be_v the_o end_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o john_n to_o finish_v his_o office_n of_o preach_v and_o baptise_v even_o as_o the_o cross_n be_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n 13.5_o deut._n 13.5_o and_o yet_o truelye_o prison_n and_o cross_n belong_v not_o to_o true_a but_o to_o false_a teacher_n but_o this_o be_v the_o lot_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o of_o all_o true_a teacher_n in_o this_o most_o wicked_a world_n concern_v the_o imprisonment_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n and_o his_o death_n read_v more_o in_o our_o exposition_n of_o matthew_n begin_v at_o the_o third_o verse_n 25._o and_o there_o arise_v a_o question_n between_o johns_n disciple_n and_o the_o jew_n about_o purify_n and_o there_o arise_v a_o question_n between_o johns_n disciple_n bu_n now_o the_o evangelist_n come_v near_a to_o the_o matter_n itself_o of_o the_o which_o he_o intend_v to_o entreat_v c._n and_o first_o of_o all_o he_o recite_v a_o controversye_n which_o arise_v by_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n about_o purify_n and_o not_o in_o vain_a for_o the_o less_o that_o they_o be_v instruct_v in_o doctrine_n the_o more_o bold_o they_o put_v forth_o themselves_o to_o disputation_n according_a to_o the_o proverb_n who_o so_o bold_o as_o blind_a bayarde_n if_o other_o have_v begin_v the_o contention_n with_o they_o they_o may_v have_v be_v excuse_v but_o whereas_o they_o be_v unable_a to_o encounter_v with_o the_o jew_n and_o yet_o do_v wyllinglye_o provooke_v they_o thereunto_o and_o that_o rashelye_o without_o cause_n they_o be_v much_o to_o blame_v for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n import_v that_o the_o question_n be_v move_v by_o they_o and_o beside_o that_o they_o deserve_v blame_v for_o their_o rash_a contention_n about_o a_o unknown_a thing_n which_o exceed_v the_o reach_n of_o their_o knowledge_n they_o be_v also_o to_o be_v reprehend_v for_o another_o fault_n no_o less_o than_o this_o name_o for_o that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o ready_a to_o defend_v and_o maintain_v the_o lawful_a use_n of_o baptism_n as_o they_o be_v to_o defend_v their_o master_n cause_n that_o he_o may_v have_v his_o authority_n still_o par._n for_o there_o come_v many_o unto_o john_n jew_n contention_n between_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n and_o the_o jew_n and_o be_v baptise_a of_o he_o many_o also_o come_v to_o jesus_n and_o be_v baptise_a of_o his_o disciple_n and_o hereupon_o arise_v envy_n in_o certain_a of_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n against_o jesus_n that_o he_o be_v of_o late_a baptise_a of_o john_n and_o behave_v himself_o as_o his_o disciple_n and_o be_v commend_v by_o his_o testimony_n unto_o the_o people_n will_v now_o sudden_o make_v himself_o equal_a with_o he_o &_o will_v also_o prefer_v himself_o before_o he_o who_o disciple_n take_v upon_o they_o the_o administration_n of_o that_o which_o john_n alone_o have_v hitherto_o use_v c._n therefore_o both_o these_o fault_n be_v worthy_a of_o reprehension_n because_o they_o not_o weigh_v the_o consideration_n of_o baptism_n make_v but_o a_o trifle_n of_o god_n holy_a institution_n and_o because_o through_o wicked_a ambition_n they_o take_v their_o master_n part_n against_o christ_n about_o purify_n c._n the_o question_n be_v about_o purify_n because_o the_o jew_n have_v diverse_a and_o sundry_a precept_n concern_v baptism_n from_o the_o law_n and_o be_v not_o content_a with_o those_o legal_a rule_n they_o use_v many_o other_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v receyve_v from_o their_o elder_n a._n as_o you_o may_v more_o plain_o perceive_v if_o you_o read_v the_o fiftéenth_n of_o matthew_n and_o the_o seven_o of_o mark_n c._n therefore_o because_o a_o new_a rite_n also_o and_o order_v of_o purify_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o christ_n and_o by_o john_n the_o baptist_n they_o have_v already_o so_o great_a plenty_n and_o variety_n they_o think_v it_o very_o absurd_a and_o without_o reason_n m._n wherefore_o in_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n we_o see_v a_o carnal_a disposition_n c._n who_o
be_v whole_o occupy_v in_o the_o personne_n of_o man_n have_v little_a regard_n to_o the_o veritye_n of_o doctrine_n r._n for_o this_o contention_n be_v plain_a carnal_a and_o proceed_v from_o ambition_n as_o also_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n accuse_v a_o certain_a man_n which_o cast_v out_o deville_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o follow_v not_o they_o for_o that_o they_o think_v that_o authority_n to_o work_v miracle_n 22.24_o mar._n 9.38_o mat._n 18.1_o luk._n 22.24_o be_v give_v whole_o unto_o they_o furthermore_o they_o contend_v too_o carnallye_o about_o the_o supremacye_n m._n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o in_o this_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n 9.14_o mat._n 9.14_o that_o they_o labour_v for_o their_o master_n against_o christ_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o emulation_n for_o we_o have_v the_o like_a in_o the_o nine_o of_o mathewe_n but_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o there_o be_v no_o contention_n between_o christ_n and_o john_n neither_o do_v john_n seek_v any_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o he_o may_v decrease_v as_o christ_n increase_v bu_n therefore_o by_o this_o example_n we_o see_v how_o much_o we_o may_v hurt_v the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n minister_n the_o unitye_n of_o the_o church_n rend_v by_o lean_v to_o much_o to_o god_n minister_n if_o we_o attribute_v to_o much_o to_o god_n minister_n for_o so_o both_o the_o glory_n which_o belong_v unto_o christ_n the_o creator_n be_v give_v to_o creature_n and_o also_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n rend_v when_o as_o one_o be_v addict_v to_o this_o minister_n and_o another_o to_o that_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o the_o corinthian_n 3.4_o 1._o cor._n 1.12_o 1._o cor._n 3.4_o i_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v contention_n among_o you_o for_o everye_o one_o say_v i_o be_o of_o paul_n and_o i_o be_o of_o apollo_n and_o i_o be_o of_o cephas_n and_o i_o be_o of_o christ_n be_v christ_n divide_v be_v paul_n crucify_a for_o you_o 23.8_o math._n 23.8_o either_o be_v you_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n to_o this_o end_n also_o pertain_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o you_o call_v lord_n for_o one_o be_v your_o lord_n even_o christ_n c._n therefore_o they_o be_v here_o note_v which_o be_v rather_o lead_v with_o the_o vain_a and_o wicked_a love_n of_o man_n than_o with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v admonish_v to_o have_v regard_n to_o this_o one_o thing_n and_o to_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_v possible_a that_o christ_n alone_o may_v be_v glorify_v 4.1_o 1._o cor._n 4.1_o a._n and_o as_o for_o all_o other_o let_v we_o esteem_v they_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o dispensatour_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n 26._o and_o they_o come_v unto_o john_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o rabbi_n he_o that_o be_v with_o thou_o beyond_o jordane_n to_o who_o thou_o bear_v witness_v behold_v the_o same_o baptize_v and_o all_o man_n come_v to_o he_o and_o they_o come_v to_o john_n par._n the_o disciple_n of_o john_n go_v about_o to_o turn_v away_o the_o people_n from_o the_o baptism_n of_o jesu_n and_o to_o persuade_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n be_v more_o effectual_a to_o wash_v away_o sin_n than_o the_o baptism_n of_o our_o lord_n jesu_n the_o which_o thing_n when_o they_o can_v not_o persuade_v the_o people_n unto_o they_o come_v unto_o john_n make_v complaint_n unto_o he_o and_o think_v that_o he_o will_v take_v it_o in_o evil_a part_n and_o by_o some_o mean_n or_o other_o restrain_v this_o emulation_n m._n and_o they_o find_v no_o fault_n with_o the_o legal_a purifyinge_n but_o with_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o emulation_n they_o be_v ful_o bend_v against_o christ_n for_o johns_n sake_n even_o as_o josuah_n 11.28_o num._n 11.28_o be_v zealous_a for_o moses_n and_o true_o this_o emulation_n or_o envy_n be_v so_o much_o the_o worse_o for_o that_o contemptuouslye_o they_o speak_v of_o christ_n for_o to_o extenuate_v and_o abase_v christ_n they_o geve_v he_o no_o manner_n of_o title_n of_o reverence_n whereas_o they_o call_v john_n master_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v he_o which_o join_v himself_o to_o thou_o as_o a_o friend_n and_o favourer_n of_o thy_o cause_n and_o which_o be_v baptise_a of_o thou_o of_o who_o also_o for_o honour_n sake_n thou_o bear_v witness_v as_o of_o a_o holy_a man_n behold_v the_o same_o be_v now_o convert_v and_o turn_v another_o way_n abuse_v thy_o testimony_n against_o thou_o presume_v to_o baptise_v and_o have_v go_v so_o far_o that_o all_o man_n now_o come_v to_o he_o the_o which_o no_o doubt_n will_v fall_v out_o great_o to_o the_o defase_a of_o thy_o honour_n and_o fame_n r._n therefore_o we_o pray_v thou_o that_o by_o thy_o authority_n thou_o will_v forbid_v he_o and_o his_o disciple_n to_o baptise_v for_o it_o be_v a_o venture_n if_o they_o proceed_v lest_o we_o be_v forsake_v and_o despise_v for_o all_o man_n forsake_v we_o gooe_v to_o they_o and_o be_v baptise_a bu_n behold_v the_o fruit_n of_o a_o rash_a zeal_n without_o knowledge_n knowledge_n zeal_n with_o out_o knowledge_n b._n hereby_o also_o it_o appear_v how_o soon_o good_a man_n may_v be_v make_v the_o author_n of_o sect_n against_o their_o wylle_n to_o who_o thou_o bear_v witness_v c._n by_o this_o argument_n either_o they_o gooe_v about_o to_o make_v christ_n inferior_a to_o john_n or_o else_o to_o make_v he_o bind_v unto_o john_n because_o he_o be_v come_v to_o honour_n for_o they_o count_v it_o for_o a_o great_a benefit_n that_o john_n have_v give_v to_o christ_n such_o glorious_a title_n and_o name_n concern_v the_o messiah_n and_o whereas_o they_o add_v that_o all_o man_n come_v unto_o christ_n that_o procee_v of_o most_o wicked_a envy_n for_o they_o fear_v jest_n their_o master_n shall_v be_v forsake_v straight_o way_n of_o the_o multitude_n a._n the_o like_a almost_o speak_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr of_o christ_n say_v if_o we_o let_v he_o go_v thus_o 8.12_o john_n 11.48_o joh._n 12.19_o john_n 8.12_o all_o man_n will_v believe_v on_o he_o also_o say_v they_o you_o see_v that_o you_o profit_v nothing_o behold_v all_o the_o whole_a world_n go_v after_o he_o but_o i_o will_v to_o god_n all_o the_o world_n will_v follow_v christ_n for_o he_o which_o follow_v he_o walk_v not_o in_o darkness_n but_o have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n 27._o john_n answer_v and_o say_v a_o man_n can_v receyve_v nothing_o except_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o above_o certain_a refer_v these_o word_n unto_o christ_n as_o though_o john_n shall_v accuse_v his_o disciple_n of_o wicked_a presumption_n against_o god_n in_o go_v about_o to_o take_v away_o from_o christ_n that_o which_o be_v give_v he_o of_o his_o father_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v no_o man_n will_v usurp_v or_o take_v any_o such_o thing_n upon_o he_o except_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o above_o let_v it_o not_o therefore_o offend_v you_o that_o he_o gather_v disciple_n unto_o he_o by_o baptism_n and_o that_o many_o come_v unto_o he_o i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o both_o you_o and_o all_o other_o man_n will_v acknowledge_v he_o for_o a_o master_n and_o principal_a teacher_n in_o vain_a therefore_o you_o go_v about_o to_o abase_v he_o who_o god_n have_v exalt_v but_o other_o some_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o exclamation_n into_o the_o which_o he_o burst_v forth_o even_o for_o very_a grief_n that_o his_o disciple_n have_v so_o little_o profit_v and_o verylye_o they_o be_v to_o much_o blind_v in_o seek_v to_o make_v he_o no_o better_o than_o his_o servant_n who_o they_o have_v hear_v so_o often_o to_o be_v christ_n therefore_o john_n may_v have_v just_o pronounce_v that_o he_o have_v spend_v his_o labour_n in_o vain_a in_o teach_v man_n both_o deaf_a and_o senseless_a until_o they_o be_v renew_v in_o mind_n but_o their_o sentence_n be_v more_o probable_a which_o refer_v these_o word_n to_o john_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o your_o nor_o my_o power_n to_o make_v myself_o great_a because_o everye_o one_o of_o we_o must_v be_v such_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o appoint_v 5.5_o heb._n 5.5_o for_o he_o which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v not_o honour_v himself_o what_o man_n be_v he_o that_o dare_v presume_v to_o covette_n more_o than_o it_o shall_v please_v the_o lord_n to_o geve_v he_o therefore_o it_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o my_o authority_n to_o stay_v christ_n from_o his_o office_n for_o this_o be_v my_o office_n only_o which_o i_o have_v receyve_v from_o god_n to_o prepare_v the_o way_n before_o christ_n that_o i_o may_v be_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o crier_n in_o the_o wilderness_n to_o baptise_v with_o water_n
from_o heaven_n christ_n therefore_o will_v be_v acknowledge_v in_o his_o minister_n but_o yet_o so_o that_o he_o will_v be_v lord_n alone_o as_o for_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n they_o be_v content_v to_o be_v in_o the_o order_n of_o servant_n special_o when_o comparison_n be_v make_v béetwéene_n christ_n and_o they_o he_o that_o come_v from_o heaven_n be_v above_o all_o m._n he_o repeat_v this_o sentence_n first_o of_o all_o to_o inculcate_v and_o imprint_v the_o same_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o his_o disciple_n that_o they_o may_v submit_v themselves_o to_o christ_n alone_o which_o boath_n come_v from_o heaven_n and_o also_o be_v above_o all_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o depend_v upon_o he_o who_o himself_o be_v subject_a to_o another_o who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o man_n by_o god_n the_o father_n second_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v the_o more_o convenientlye_o adjoine_v and_o bring_v in_o that_o which_o remain_v unspoken_a 32._o and_o what_o he_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v that_o he_o testify_v and_o no_o man_n receyve_v his_o testimony_n chr._n because_o these_o by_o corporal_a scence_z of_o hear_v and_o see_v we_o know_v all_o thing_n certain_o and_o think_v ourselves_o worthy_a to_o be_v beléeve_v when_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v as_o such_o that_o neither_o fain_a nor_o tell_v lie_n therefore_o to_o confirm_v the_o matter_n saint_n john_n say_v that_o christ_n testify_v that_o which_o he_o have_v both_o see_v and_o hear_v c._n for_o to_o the_o end_n his_o disciple_n may_v obey_v christ_n he_o commend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o same_o because_o he_o utter_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o he_o have_v receyve_v from_o the_o father_n b._n therefore_o christ_n teach_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v most_o certain_a and_o approve_a true_a 1.18_o joh._n 1.18_o see_v he_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n m._n and_o he_o say_v not_o he_o speak_v that_o which_o he_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v but_o he_o testify_v to_o admonish_v they_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o a_o teacher_n of_o god_n truth_n but_o also_o a_o most_o assure_a witness_n of_o all_o thing_n a._n for_o he_o say_v 8.26_o joh._n 8.26_o what_o thing_n i_o have_v hear_v of_o he_o i_o declare_v in_o the_o world_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v 15.15_o john_n 15.15_o i_o have_v show_v unto_o you_o all_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o my_o father_n m._n therefore_o by_o this_o place_n we_o may_v note_v what_o prerogative_n christ_n have_v above_o john_n and_o above_o all_o other_o teacher_n because_o he_o can_v and_o do_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n teach_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n as_o well_o as_o by_o word_n how_o many_o soever_o in_o this_o life_n teach_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a thing_n how_o holy_a soever_o they_o be_v yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o can_v testify_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o teach_v that_o they_o have_v see_v they_o in_o heaven_n though_o they_o be_v true_a which_o they_o speak_v for_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v receyve_v they_o have_v not_o receyve_v by_o knowledge_n or_o by_o fight_n in_o heaven_n but_o either_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o else_o by_o faith_n in_o god_n word_n but_o christ_n can_v testify_v in_o this_o world_n those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v both_o hear_v and_o see_v and_o no_o man_n receyve_v his_o testimony_n bu_n saint_n john_n here_o do_v reprove_v not_o only_o the_o unbeléefe_n of_o his_o disciple_n but_o also_o the_o incredulity_n of_o other_o of_o the_o jew_n who_o withstand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o that_o it_o be_v most_o true_a 3.11_o john_n 3.11_o m._n so_o christ_n say_v to_o nicodemus_n we_o speak_v that_o we_o know_v and_o testify_v that_o we_o have_v see_v and_o you_o receyve_v not_o our_o witness_n where_o he_o reprove_v the_o blindness_n of_o the_o jew_n even_o as_o john_n do_v here_o their_o incredulity_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o no_o man_n receyve_v the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n see_v the_o apostle_n and_o diverse_a other_o receive_v and_o beléeve_v the_o same_o but_o he_o mean_v that_o a_o very_a few_o in_o comparison_n have_v receyve_v and_o beléeve_v it_o c._n for_o if_o we_o compare_v the_o beléever_n with_o the_o huge_a multitude_n of_o the_o wicked_a they_o will_v appear_v nothing_o and_o to_o receyve_v the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n be_v stedfastlye_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o to_o embrace_v his_o word_n with_o thankesgeve_a as_o the_o most_o assure_a testimony_n of_o god_n will_n this_o be_v do_v but_o of_o very_a few_o also_o at_o this_o day_n for_o the_o credit_n give_v to_o this_o heavenly_a doctrine_n be_v even_o now_o as_o little_a as_o it_o be_v then_o he_o say_v not_o and_o no_o man_n hear_v his_o testimony_n but_o no_o man_n receyve_v his_o testimony_n for_o there_o have_v be_v always_o many_o hearer_n thereof_o but_o there_o have_v be_v few_o receyver_n of_o the_o same_o find_v a._n so_o this_o place_n may_v be_v expound_v even_o as_o that_o which_o we_o hear_v before_o he_o come_v into_o his_o own_o 1.11_o john_n 1.11_o and_o his_o own_o receyve_v he_o not_o 33._o he_o that_o have_v receyve_v his_o testimony_n have_v set_v to_o his_o seal_n that_o god_n be_v true_a m._n from_o this_o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n john_n the_o baptist_n note_v two_o thing_n first_o what_o praise_n and_o profit_n he_o shall_v receyve_v which_o receyve_v the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n secondlye_o what_o hurt_n shall_v happen_v unto_o he_o which_o receyve_v not_o the_o same_o he_z which_o receive_v his_o testimony_n have_v put_v to_o his_o seal_n r._n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o which_o beléeve_v his_o word_n have_v put_v to_o his_o seal_n or_o approve_v by_o his_o faith_n and_o confession_n that_o god_n be_v true_a and_o keep_v his_o promise_n or_o else_o receyve_v the_o testimony_n in_o his_o hart_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o christ_n speak_v be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o god._n and_o this_o testimony_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n certify_v and_o confirm_v our_o conscience_n as_o a_o seal_n that_o this_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o deed_n and_o that_o his_o word_n 2d_o joh._n 15_o 2d_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o deed_n hereupon_o christ_n say_v when_o the_o comforter_n come_v which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n he_o shall_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o 1.22_o 2._o cor._n 1.22_o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v which_o have_v seal_v we_o and_o have_v give_v the_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n into_o our_o heart_n epheâ_n epheâ_n also_o in_o a_o other_o place_n after_o you_o believe_v you_o be_v seal_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n which_o be_v the_o pledge_n of_o our_o inheritance_n c._n saint_n john_n also_o here_o prevent_v and_o méete_v by_o the_o way_n with_o a_o offence_n or_o stumble_a block_n which_o may_v turn_v many_o from_o the_o faith_n and_o may_v hinder_v or_o at_o least_o stop_v their_o swiftness_n in_o their_o race_n for_o the_o great_a part_n hang_v to_o much_o upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n and_o déeme_v and_o judge_v of_o the_o gospel_n after_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n at_o the_o least_o when_o it_o see_v the_o same_o in_o some_o place_n to_o be_v reject_v have_v before_o conceyve_v this_o prejudice_n it_o be_v the_o more_o hard_a and_o slow_a to_o believe_v here_o therefore_o the_o man_n of_o god_n exhort_v and_o encourage_v the_o godly_a boldelye_o to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o godly_a shall_v be_v ashamed_a or_o gréeve_v at_o the_o smalenesse_n of_o their_o number_n truth_n god_n the_o author_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v more_o than_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o to_o give_v testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n see_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o their_o faith_n who_o himself_o alone_o be_v all_o in_o all_o and_o therefore_o all_o sufficient_a and_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o multitude_n therefore_o although_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v withstand_v the_o faith_n yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o ought_v not_o to_o keep_v good_a man_n from_o the_o obedience_n and_o service_n of_o god._n they_o have_v also_o whereupon_o to_o rest_v and_o stay_v themselves_o see_v they_o know_v that_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n be_v nothing_o else_o than_o to_o believe_v thâ_n oracle_n of_o god._n in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o gather_v that_o this_o be_v proper_a to_o faith_n to_o rest_v and_o stay_v itself_o upon_o god_n goâ_n faith_n stay_v itself_o upon_o goâ_n and_o to_o be_v ground_v and_o establish_v by_o his_o word_n
honour_v notable_a man_n which_o be_v endue_v with_o godliness_n &_o with_o other_o rare_a gift_n but_o they_o must_v be_v honour_v no_o far_o than_o that_o god_n himself_o may_v have_v the_o pre-eminence_n &_o glory_n that_o christ_n with_o his_o gospel_n may_v shine_v most_o clere_o for_o to_o he_o the_o whole_a glory_n of_o the_o world_n must_v give_v place_n b._n we_o must_v also_o note_v that_o although_o the_o samaritan_n be_v stranger_n yet_o notwithstanding_o afterward_o when_o the_o jew_n prosper_v they_o boast_v that_o they_o spring_v of_o joseph_n jews_n joseph_n last_o chap._n of_o the_o 9_o book_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o jews_n as_o josephus_n testify_v hereupon_o this_o woman_n call_v jacob_n her_o father_n c._n even_o so_o at_o this_o day_n the_o papist_n be_v bastard_n and_o a_o adulterous_a seed_n very_o arrogant_o brag_v and_o boast_v of_o the_o father_n &_o exalt_v themselves_o above_o the_o lawful_a son_n of_o god_n for_o although_o the_o samaritan_n spring_v of_o jacob_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o they_o do_v degenerate_a and_o swerve_v from_o true_a godliness_n this_o be_v a_o preposterous_a brag_n now_o they_o be_v the_o offspring_n of_o the_o people_n of_o cuthah_n so_o call_v of_o the_o ryver_n cuthah_n c._n or_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a 24._o 4._o king_n 17_o 24._o gather_v from_o among_o other_o profane_a nation_n yet_o notwithstanding_o let_v not_o to_o brag_v falselye_o of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a patriarche_n but_o without_o any_o profit_n even_o so_o it_o must_v necessary_o happen_v unto_o all_o those_o which_o joy_n amiss_o in_o the_o light_n of_o man_n as_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o light_n of_o god_n and_o to_o have_v no_o society_n with_o the_o holy_a father_n who_o title_n they_o have_v abuse_v 13._o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o she_o whosoever_o drinck_v of_o this_o water_n shall_v thirst_n again_o m._n again_o the_o lord_n answer_v not_o unto_o all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o woman_n but_o rather_o to_o that_o which_o appertain_v to_o the_o purpose_n &_o that_o because_o she_o have_v so_o great_o exalt_v this_o well_o as_o though_o there_o can_v no_o better_a water_n be_v give_v for_o this_o cause_n he_o expound_v his_o former_a sentence_n concern_v the_o water_n c._n and_o although_o he_o see_v that_o he_o profit_v little_a and_o that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v make_v but_o a_o jest_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o go_v forward_o more_o plainelye_o to_o expound_v that_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v r._n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v the_o more_o stir_v up_o the_o woman_n to_o seek_v that_o water_n of_o life_n for_o he_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o use_n of_o both_o water_n as_o that_o the_o one_o belong_v to_o the_o body_n for_o a_o time_n and_o that_o the_o other_o perpetuallye_o serve_v for_o the_o refresh_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o as_o the_o body_n be_v subject_a to_o corruption_n so_o the_o preseruative_n belong_v to_o the_o same_o must_v needs_o be_v temporal_a and_o transitory_a but_o that_o which_o quicken_v the_o soul_n must_v needs_o be_v everlasting_a 14._o but_o whosoever_o drink_v of_o the_o water_n that_o i_o shall_v geve_v he_o shall_v never_o be_v more_o a_o thyrste_fw-mi but_o the_o water_n that_o i_o shall_v geve_v he_o shall_v be_v in_o he_o a_o well_o of_o water_n spring_v uppe_o into_o everlasting_a life_n r._n the_o manner_n of_o drink_v of_o this_o water_n be_v by_o faith_n therefore_o everye_o one_o which_o drink_v of_o this_o water_n that_o be_v to_o say_v everye_o one_o that_o beléeve_v in_o i_o and_o receyve_v of_o i_o the_o promise_a spirit_n shall_v never_o thyrste_v but_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o he_o a_o well_o of_o water_n spring_v into_o everlasting_a life_n this_o be_v the_o very_a same_o which_o he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n 7.39_o joh._n 7.39_o he_o which_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v have_v flow_v out_o of_o his_o belly_n river_n of_o water_n of_o life_n this_o also_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n which_o all_o the_o beléever_n in_o he_o shall_v receyve_v for_o he_o which_o have_v receyve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o faith_n he_o have_v a_o vein_n or_o spring_n flow_v from_o sin_n to_o righteousness_n from_o damnation_n to_o salvation_n from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o from_o earth_n to_o heaven_n b._n it_o be_v most_o certain_a therefore_o that_o this_o water_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n wherefore_o if_o he_o that_o have_v once_o drink_v of_o this_o spiryte_n can_v never_o thir_v again_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o which_o have_v once_o this_o spiryte_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o who_o it_o be_v once_o give_v to_o believe_v shall_v never_o fall_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o god._n therefore_o paul_n glori_v that_o nothing_o from_o above_o neither_o from_o beneathe_n 8.35_o rom._n 8.35_o can_v remove_v he_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesu_n c._n moreover_o it_o be_v not_o repugnaunt_a nor_o disagrée_v with_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o faithful_a even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o life_n have_v a_o fervent_a desire_n to_o have_v more_o plenty_n of_o grace_n for_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v drink_v our_o fill_n the_o first_o day_n that_o he_o geve_v unto_o we_o his_o holy_a spirit_n but_o that_o he_o only_o seek_v to_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o spring_n flow_v perpetuallye_o and_o so_o life_n he_z which_o once_o receyve_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n be_v seal_v to_o eternal_a life_n that_o there_o be_v danger_n lest_o they_o shall_v wyther_o away_o which_o be_v renew_v by_o spiritual_a grace_n therefore_o although_o we_o thir_v all_o our_o life_n time_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o we_o have_v not_o receyve_v this_o spirit_n for_o one_o day_n or_o for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o that_o the_o same_o flow_v perpetuallye_o shall_v never_o forsake_v us._n thus_o the_o faithful_a thirst_n during_o all_o the_o time_n of_o their_o mortal_a life_n and_o that_o feruentlye_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o time_n they_o be_v full_a of_o lively_a liquour_n because_o how_o little_a grace_n soever_o they_o have_v receyve_v the_o same_o do_v daily_o moisten_v they_o that_o they_o can_v never_o be_v quite_o dry_a wherefore_o this_o fullness_n be_v not_o oppose_v or_o set_v against_o desire_n but_o only_o against_o dryness_n the_o which_o thing_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v as_o yet_o he_o do_v more_o plainelye_o express_v there_o shall_v say_v he_o be_v a_o well_o of_o water_n flow_v into_o eternal_a life_n for_o here_o be_v a_o continual_a water_v note_v which_o in_o this_o mortal_a and_o transitory_a life_n foster_v and_o increase_v in_o they_o heavenlye_a eternity_n b._n for_o as_o he_o can_v never_o wyther_o away_o by_o drought_n which_o have_v a_o spring_n continual_o flow_v in_o his_o bowel_n even_o so_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v full_a of_o all_o goodness_n and_o grace_n and_o must_v always_o and_o in_o all_o thing_n have_v present_a consolation_n in_o who_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n child_n do_v dwell_v c._n therefore_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o flow_v in_o we_o for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o do_v continual_o pour_v out_o itself_o untyll_o we_o come_v to_o the_o bless_a state_n of_o immortalytye_n 15._o the_o woman_n say_v unto_o he_o sir_n geve_v i_o of_o that_o water_n that_o i_o thirst_n not_o neither_o come_v hither_o to_o draw_v b._n this_o woman_n seem_v to_o be_v but_o a_o prattler_n and_o talker_n how_o soever_o she_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n and_o have_v the_o seed_n of_o god_n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o she_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o christ_n speak_v of_o spiritual_a water_n but_o because_o she_o contemn_v he_o she_o make_v no_o account_n of_o all_o his_o promise_n for_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o teach_v so_o long_o as_o he_o which_o speak_v be_v of_o no_o authority_n with_o us._n the_o woman_n therefore_o very_o overthwart_o repli_v against_o christ_n b._n and_o speak_v these_o thing_n ironicè_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o a_o contrary_a sense_n as_o if_o she_o shall_v say_v thou_o brag_v much_o but_o i_o see_v nothing_o if_o thou_o can_v do_v as_o thou_o say_v do_v it_o in_o deed_n m._n therefore_o by_o this_o example_n we_o see_v that_o the_o elect_v sometime_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o darkness_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n do_v deride_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o rydiculous_a and_o foolish_a wherefore_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o condemn_v everye_o one_o who_o we_o see_v to_o be_v derider_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n
untyll_o the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o flourish_a youth_n succéede_v the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n even_o so_o then_o salvation_n begin_v to_o wax_v ripe_a the_o which_o the_o prophet_n have_v only_o sow_v before_o 37._o and_o herein_o be_v the_o say_n true_a that_o one_o sow_v and_o another_o reap_v r._n therefore_o the_o prophet_n be_v the_o sower_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o reaper_n that_o which_o the_o prophet_n sow_v the_o apostle_n reap_v also_o to_o sow_v be_v to_o preach_v the_o law_n and_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v to_o reap_v the_o offer_a christ_n c._n for_o this_o be_v a_o common_a proverb_n by_o which_o be_v mean_v that_o many_o oftentimes_o receyve_v the_o fruit_n of_o other_o man_n labour_n howbeit_o this_o name_o that_o he_o which_o labour_v be_v greeve_v that_o another_o man_n shall_v take_v away_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o labour_n be_v otherwise_o because_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v partaker_n one_o of_o the_o other_o joy_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o it_o follow_v not_o hereuppon_o that_o the_o prophet_n be_v witness_n or_o privye_v to_o those_o thing_n which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n because_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n tend_v to_o no_o other_o end_n than_o to_o show_v that_o the_o prophet_n teach_v with_o this_o mind_n and_o desire_v that_o they_o may_v rejoice_v over_o that_o fruit_n which_o they_o have_v not_o leave_v to_o gather_v the_o comparison_n which_o the_o apostle_n peter_n use_v 1.12_o 1._o pet._n 1.12_o be_v not_o much_o unlyke_o this_o save_v that_o he_o general_o exbort_v all_o the_o faithful_a whereas_o christ_n speak_v to_o his_o disciple_n only_o 38._o i_o send_v you_o to_o reap_v that_o whereon_o you_o bestow_v no_o labour_n other_o man_n labour_v and_o you_o be_v enter_v into_o their_o labour_n bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o prophet_n by_o their_o labour_n make_v the_o fallows_n and_o by_o their_o doctrine_n prepare_v the_o world_n be_v as_o yet_o unrulye_a and_o stubborn_a for_o the_o gospel_n you_o now_o succeed_v they_o and_o enter_v into_o their_o labour_n and_o take_v a_o work_n in_o hand_n already_o begin_v the_o world_n even_o now_o wyllinglye_o receyve_v the_o gospel_n and_o mortal_a man_n seek_v violent_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n r._n in_o say_v i_o send_v you_o he_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v appoint_v reaper_n by_o his_o mere_a grace_n and_o not_o by_o their_o merit_n according_a to_o that_o which_o he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n 15.16_o joh._n 15.16_o i_o have_v choose_v you_o and_o you_o have_v not_o choose_v i_o question_v etc._n etc._n m._n but_o here_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v how_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v to_o reap_v when_o paul_n say_v i_o have_v plant_v 3.6_o i_o cor._n 3.6_o apollo_n have_v water_v but_o god_n have_v give_v the_o increase_n also_o he_o say_v you_o be_v god_n husbandrye_a again_o i_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n and_o another_o have_v build_v thereon_o and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v 9.11_o i_o cor._n 9.11_o if_o we_o sow_v unto_o you_o spiritual_a thing_n think_v not_o much_o if_o we_o reap_v your_o carnal_a thing_n therefore_o paul_n be_v send_v of_o the_o lord_n rather_o to_o sow_v than_o to_o reap_v be_v then_o the_o apostleship_n of_o paul_n answer_v answer_v differ_v from_o the_o apostleship_n of_o the_o rest_n surelye_o it_o be_v differ_v from_o the_o rest_n so_o long_o as_o they_o preach_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o he_o to_o the_o gentile_n for_o that_o which_o christ_n here_o speak_v unto_o his_o disciple_n seem_v to_o appertain_v chief_o to_o that_o first_o send_v forth_o in_o the_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v forth_o to_o the_o lose_v sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n in_o the_o which_o nation_n the_o prophet_n also_o labour_v it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o preach_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o preach_v the_o same_o among_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o one_o know_v not_o god_n and_o the_o other_o be_v train_v up_o in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n bu_n moreover_o these_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n ought_v always_o to_o be_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o preacher_n of_o god_n word_n that_o thereby_o they_o may_v be_v encourage_v to_o be_v faithful_a and_o diligent_a in_o discharge_v the_o office_n commit_v unto_o they_o when_o as_o they_o know_v that_o the_o labour_n which_o they_o bestow_v in_o teach_v shall_v be_v so_o profitable_a for_o they_o and_o so_o fruitful_a to_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n 39_o many_o of_o the_o samaritan_n of_o that_o city_n believe_v on_o he_o for_o the_o say_n of_o the_o woman_n which_o testify_v that_o he_o tell_v she_o all_o that_o she_o have_v do_v bu_n the_o evangelist_n now_o return_v to_o the_o former_a history_n and_o more_o ful_o describe_v the_o prompt_a obedience_n and_o the_o grow_a of_o faith_n of_o the_o citizen_n of_o sychar_n otherwise_o call_v samaria_n foreshow_v the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n foreshow_v r._n and_o he_o declare_v how_o great_o the_o report_n which_o the_o woman_n make_v of_o he_o prevail_v with_o they_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o have_v a_o hope_n and_o desire_v of_o the_o promise_a messiah_n b._n moreover_o this_o sudden_a conversion_n of_o the_o samaritan_n be_v a_o foreshow_v of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v the_o same_o magnify_v as_o may_v plainelye_o appear_v when_o as_o at_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o sillye_o woman_n scant_o of_o good_a name_n many_o straight_a way_n and_o that_o samaritan_n beléeve_v the_o gospel_n and_o embrace_v christ_n m._n for_o what_o have_v she_o say_v of_o christ_n say_v she_o that_o by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o power_n he_o can_v command_v all_o thing_n as_o man_n spirit_n death_n life_n disease_n the_o sea_n and_o the_o wind_n many_o of_o the_o which_o thing_n the_o jew_n see_v and_o yet_o beléeve_v not_o she_o neither_o see_v nor_o speak_v of_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n but_o this_o only_o she_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v tell_v she_o all_o thing_n that_o ever_o she_o have_v do_v who_o therefore_o see_v not_o how_o soon_o these_o samaritan_n beléeve_v and_o the_o readiness_n and_o maturity_n of_o this_o harvest_n what_o else_o may_v we_o note_v here_o but_o that_o when_o the_o heart_n of_o mortal_a man_n be_v make_v apt_a by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o receyve_v the_o truth_n ghost_n faith_n come_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v set_v forewarde_n with_o little_a labour_n and_o oftentimes_o by_o such_o personne_n as_o be_v very_o base_a the_o ripe_a apple_n often_o time_n fall_v from_o the_o tree_n without_o much_o labour_n yea_o at_o the_o only_a shake_n of_o the_o same_o by_o a_o child_n but_o such_o as_o be_v scant_o ripe_a will_v scarce_o fall_v with_o the_o hurl_v and_o beat_v of_o a_o cudgel_n and_o be_v by_o violence_n shake_v down_o they_o be_v so_o sour_a that_o they_o be_v better_a untouched_a even_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n where_o the_o spiritual_a harvest_n be_v there_o even_o a_o samaritane_n woman_n bring_v many_o unto_o christ_n easy_a the_o harvest_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v easy_a but_o where_o the_o spiritual_a harvest_n be_v not_o there_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o sweat_v and_o labour_n in_o vain_a c._n this_o word_n beléeve_v signify_v herein_o proper_o that_o they_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o woman_n to_o acknowledge_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o prophet_n for_o this_o be_v as_o it_o be_v but_o the_o begin_n of_o faith_n when_o man_n mind_n be_v prepare_v to_o receive_v the_o proffer_a doctrine_n such_o entrance_n into_o faith_n be_v here_o call_v honourable_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v how_o reverent_o god_n esteem_v of_o his_o word_n in_o make_v their_o only_a docillity_n so_o honourable_a which_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o teach_v but_o in_o this_o that_o faith_n of_o they_o show_v itself_o that_o they_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o profit_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n they_o desire_v to_o have_v christ_n abide_v with_o they_o 40_o so_o when_o the_o samaritan_n be_v come_v to_o he_o they_o beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v tarry_v with_o they_o and_o he_o abide_v there_o two_o day_n so_o when_o the_o samaritan_n be_v come_v m._n in_o these_o word_n be_v describe_v the_o quality_n of_o faith_n which_o come_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o preach_v gospel_n by_o this_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o believer_n be_v inflame_v first_o to_o see_v he_o of_o who_o so_o great_a thing_n be_v publish_v and_o beléeve_v even_o so_o these_o samaritan_n so_o soon_o
the_o stripe_n of_o chastisement_n as_o affirm_v the_o apostle_n paul_n 3â_n 1._o cor._n 11_o 3â_n b._n for_o although_o some_o have_v disease_n even_o from_o their_o birth_n which_o they_o seem_v not_o as_o yet_o to_o have_v deserve_v yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o natural_a sin_n which_o cleave_v so_o fast_o unto_o they_o be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o for_o those_o disease_n which_o god_n send_v unto_o his_o child_n he_o lay_v on_o they_o not_o only_o to_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o way_n by_o chastisement_n but_o also_o often_o time_n to_o keep_v they_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o duty_n and_o also_o to_o drive_v they_o from_o heinous_a offence_n c._n first_o of_o all_o therefore_o when_o we_o be_v sick_a we_o must_v acknowledge_v the_o same_o to_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o not_o the_o stroke_n of_o blind_a fortune_n second_o we_o must_v know_v that_o he_o be_v our_o most_o merciful_a father_n who_o delight_v not_o in_o our_o misery_n and_o therefore_o he_o deal_v not_o with_o we_o extreme_o except_o our_o sin_n provoke_v he_o thereunto_o bu_n moreover_o 9.5_o christ_n be_v a_o physician_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n math._n 9.5_o hereby_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v not_o only_o take_v away_o the_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n but_o also_o cure_v the_o sickness_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o cure_n of_o another_o man_n sick_a of_o the_o paulsey_n in_o the_o nienth_n of_o matthew_n c._n when_o christ_n forbid_v the_o man_n here_o to_o sin_n he_o do_v not_o require_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v free_a from_o all_o sin_n but_o it_o be_v a_o comparison_n of_o the_o former_a life_n for_o the_o lord_n exhort_v he_o ever_o after_o to_o repent_v and_o not_o to_o continue_v still_o in_o sin_n bu_n wherein_o be_v declare_v the_o use_n of_o god_n benefit_n for_o mortal_a man_n be_v not_o restore_v to_o health_n to_o riot_n and_o surfeit_n in_o eat_v and_o drink_v but_o to_o serve_v god_n more_o devout_o lest_o a_o worse_a thing_n c._n if_o so_o be_v god_n can_v prevail_v any_o thing_n with_o we_o by_o stripe_n by_o which_o he_o do_v gentle_o chastise_v we_o as_o a_o most_o love_a father_n do_v his_o tender_a child_n he_o be_v constrain_v to_o deal_v with_o we_o after_o another_o manner_n of_o fashion_n therefore_o he_o take_v the_o rod_n and_o scourge_n in_o hand_n 32.9_o levi._n 26.14_o deut._n 28.15_o psal_n 32.9_o to_o tame_v and_o bridel_n our_o wildness_n even_o as_o he_o prononce_v in_o the_o law_n therefore_o when_o we_o be_v daily_o correct_v anew_o we_o ought_v to_o attribute_v the_o cause_n thereof_o to_o stubbornness_n for_o we_o be_v not_o only_o like_a to_o unbroken_a horse_n and_o mule_n but_o we_o be_v also_o more_o than_o untamed_a beast_n r._n the_o lord_n complain_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n say_v the_o people_n turn_v not_o unto_o he_o that_o smite_v they_o 9.13_o esay_n 9.13_o neither_o do_v they_o seek_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n c._n wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o the_o lord_n do_v use_v more_o sharp_a punishement_n and_o do_v bruise_v they_o as_o it_o be_v with_o iron_n maules_n which_o will_v not_o be_v convert_v by_o mean_a punishment_n for_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o he_o be_v break_v like_o a_o potter_n vessel_n which_o will_v not_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v correct_v to_o be_v short_a this_o be_v the_o use_n of_o punishment_n name_o that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v more_o ware_a afterward_o m_o also_o this_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o life_n of_o this_o man_n be_v not_o unknown_a to_o christ_n if_o this_o man_n life_n be_v not_o know_v unto_o he_o be_v a_o stranger_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o our_o life_n which_o be_v under_o the_o profession_n of_o his_o name_n a._n let_v we_o learn_v therefore_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n even_o as_o if_o we_o be_v always_o before_o his_o eye_n as_o we_o be_v in_o deed_n 7.10_o psal_n 7.10_o for_o he_o be_v a_o searcher_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o reins_n 15._o the_o man_n depart_v and_o tell_v the_o jew_n that_o it_o be_v jesus_n which_o have_v make_v he_o whole_a b._n this_o man_n go_v to_o the_o jew_n no_o doubt_n to_o commend_v jesus_n as_o a_o man_n of_o god_n and_o as_o a_o prophet_n of_o all_o man_n to_o be_v reverence_v bu_n for_o he_o think_v it_o to_o be_v very_o necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v know_v unto_o many_o which_o can_v with_o his_o word_n heal_v a_o disease_n incurable_a because_o other_o which_o be_v also_o afflict_v may_v peradventure_o come_v unto_o he_o c._n therefore_o by_o this_o his_o act_n he_o intend_v nothing_o less_o than_o to_o cause_n christ_n to_o be_v hate_v &_o he_o little_o think_v that_o man_n will_v have_v be_v so_o outrageous_a against_o christ_n cyr._n but_o he_o manifest_v the_o physician_n to_o the_o jew_n not_o to_o the_o end_n they_o immagine_v any_o evil_n of_o he_o shall_v burden_n he_o with_o impiety_n but_o to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o physician_n if_o so_o be_v any_o of_o they_o have_v need_n to_o be_v cure_v c._n so_o that_o this_o his_o act_n proceed_v of_o a_o godly_a affection_n when_o he_o will_v have_v the_o physician_n to_o have_v his_o due_a honour_n b._n but_o they_o the_o more_o they_o feel_v and_o perceive_v the_o lord_n devinity_n the_o more_o they_o rage_v against_o he_o satan_n god_n enemy_n provoke_v they_o thereunto_o m._n last_o of_o all_o we_o must_v note_v that_o they_o which_o have_v taste_v of_o the_o grace_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v know_v the_o heavenly_a saviour_n be_v of_o this_o mind_n that_o they_o can_v choose_v but_o to_o set_v forth_o his_o glory_n by_o who_o they_o be_v save_v also_o they_o seek_v through_o love_n to_o help_v their_o neighbour_n be_v in_o misery_n and_o afflict_a in_o show_v unto_o they_o the_o physician_n and_o saviour_n by_o who_o they_o may_v be_v heal_v let_v we_o also_o follow_v this_o example_n that_o we_o may_v declare_v his_o power_n which_o have_v call_v we_o into_o his_o wonderful_a light_n 2.9_o 1._o pet._n 2.9_o and_o let_v we_o seek_v the_o profit_n of_o our_o neighbour_n 16._o and_o therefore_o do_v the_o jew_n persecute_v jesus_n and_o seek_v the_o mean_n to_o slay_v he_o because_o he_o have_v do_v these_o thing_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n bu_n here_o the_o preposterous_a &_o counterfeit_a devotion_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v touch_v who_o think_v that_o jesus_n have_v break_v the_o sabbath_n day_n because_o he_o have_v heal_v the_o man_n of_o the_o paulsey_n and_o have_v command_v he_o to_o take_v up_o his_o bed_n for_o which_o cause_n they_o conspire_v to_o murder_v he_o and_o burst_v forth_o into_o extreme_a madness_n m._n but_o see_v by_o order_n man_n ought_v to_o consider_v what_o be_v do_v rather_o than_o when_o any_o thing_n be_v do_v they_o shall_v first_o have_v consider_v what_o the_o lord_n have_v do_v and_o then_o afterward_o of_o the_o time_n when_o he_o have_v do_v it_o but_o their_o hypocritical_a disposition_n do_v here_o appear_v for_o they_o take_v it_o in_o very_a evyll_n part_n that_o christ_n have_v do_v such_o thing_n therefore_o when_o they_o can_v not_o condemn_v the_o deed_n of_o christ_n as_o they_o be_v do_v they_o object_v the_o break_n of_o the_o sabbath_n by_o which_o pretence_n they_o go_v about_o to_o extingush_v the_o light_n of_o christ_n miracle_n thus_o malice_n persecute_v and_o go_v about_o to_o extingush_v righteousness_n &_o honesty_n and_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n seek_v the_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o he_o which_o be_v bear_v after_o the_o flesh_n persecute_v he_o which_o be_v bear_v after_o the_o spirit_n but_o why_o do_v they_o not_o kill_v he_o because_o his_o hour_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v 4.29_o gala._n 4.29_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v i_o be_v daily_o with_o you_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o you_o take_v i_o not_o 26.55_o mat._n 26.55_o but_o this_o be_v your_o hour_n and_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n whatsoever_o the_o wicked_a jew_n go_v about_o before_o this_o hour_n be_v altogether_o in_o vain_a wickâ_n our_o life_n be_v not_o in_o the_o hand_n ãâã_d the_o wickâ_n even_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n our_o life_n be_v not_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n insomuch_o that_o what_o soever_o they_o practise_v they_o can_v prevail_v but_o do_v only_o bewray_v their_o malice_n and_o trouble_v themselves_o with_o vain_a counsel_n hereupon_o the_o prophet_n say_v 37._o psal_n 37._o the_o ungodly_a see_v the_o righteous_a and_o seek_v occasision_n to_o flay_v he_o but_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o deliver_v he_o in_o to_o his_o hand_n
have_v they_o only_o in_o book_n and_o so_o lay_v up_o as_o our_o treasure_n as_o we_o saee_fw-la many_o man_n do_v neither_o yet_o be_v they_o give_v that_o we_o may_v simp_o and_o sleightlye_o read_v they_o as_o though_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o read_v either_o that_o by_o a_o superstitious_a opinion_n the_o read_n of_o they_o may_v be_v in_o steed_n of_o worship_n and_o divine_a service_n as_o we_o see_v the_o papist_n do_v and_o as_o the_o jew_n continual_o do_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n but_o they_o be_v give_v to_o this_o end_n that_o they_o may_v be_v read_v with_o diligence_n and_o with_o a_o mind_n desirous_a to_o find_v out_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o true_a knowledge_n and_o true_a godliness_n the_o reader_n of_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v searcher_n and_o not_o corrupter_n wrester_n dreamer_n or_o superstitious_a murmurer_n read_v how_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v read_v and_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o require_v any_o search_a but_o that_o which_o be_v godly_a humble_a and_o desirous_a to_o know_v and_o embrace_v one_o truth_n only_o otherwise_o a_o man_n may_v find_v some_o which_o read_v the_o scripture_n but_o not_o to_o search_v out_o god_n truth_n but_o rather_o to_o hinder_v the_o same_o even_o so_o herode_fw-la inquire_v out_o the_o truth_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o place_n where_o christ_n shall_v be_v bear_v not_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v worship_v he_o 2.4_o mat._n 2.4_o but_o rather_o to_o destroy_v he_o also_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr say_v to_o nicodemus_n search_v the_o prophet_n and_o see_v how_o that_o a_o prophet_n come_v not_o out_o of_o galilee_n 7.52_o john_n 7.52_o they_o say_v not_o and_o see_v what_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n concern_v christ_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n wicked_a and_o ungodlye_a man_n do_v search_v the_o scripture_n to_o corrupt_v the_o same_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n c._n by_o this_o word_n scripture_n be_v understand_v the_o old_a testament_n for_o christ_n do_v not_o first_o of_o all_o begin_v to_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o gospel_n but_o have_v testimony_n out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n he_o open_o exhibit_v himself_o in_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v here_o agree_v with_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v unto_o his_o apostle_n after_o his_o resurrection_n 24.44_o luk._n 24.44_o say_v these_o be_v the_o word_n which_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o when_o i_o be_v yet_o with_o you_o that_o all_o must_v needs_o be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v write_v of_o i_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o the_o psalm_n but_o now_o it_o be_v a_o infinite_a labour_n to_o gather_v into_o one_o those_o testymony_n of_o scripture_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o manifest_v of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o we_o may_v behold_v some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o of_o luke_n 40._o and_o yet_o will_v you_o not_o come_v to_o i_o that_o you_o may_v have_v light_a a._n he_o mean_v that_o man_n labour_v in_o vain_a in_o read_v of_o the_o scripture_n except_o their_o only_a drift_n be_v to_o find_v out_o christ_n in_o they_o m._n he_o say_v not_o and_o you_o come_v not_o but_o and_o you_o will_v not_o come_v to_o i_o that_o you_o may_v have_v life_n c._n in_o which_o word_n he_o again_o cast_v in_o their_o tooth_n that_o nothing_o stay_v they_o from_o obtain_v that_o life_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o their_o own_o malice_n for_o in_o say_v that_o they_o will_v not_o he_o assign_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o ignorance_n and_o blindness_n to_o their_o own_o wicked_a obstinacye_n and_o verylye_o see_v he_o so_o willing_o offer_v himself_o unto_o they_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o they_o be_v wyllinglye_o blind_a and_o see_v they_o do_v seek_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o shun_v the_o light_n nay_o see_v they_o do_v seek_v to_o obscure_v and_o darken_v the_o bright_a son_n with_o the_o darkness_n of_o their_o unbeléefe_n christ_n do_v just_o more_o sharp_o reprehend_v they_o m._n and_o behold_v here_o what_o a_o false_a persuasion_n can_v do_v they_o will_v not_o come_v unto_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n by_o he_o and_o wherefore_o because_o they_o think_v that_o they_o have_v everlasting_a life_n already_o therefore_o so_o many_o as_o do_v think_v that_o they_o have_v already_o obtain_v salvation_n come_v not_o unto_o christ_n the_o saviour_n he_o which_o think_v himself_o whole_a and_o sound_o come_v not_o to_o the_o physician_n so_o it_o happen_v to_o the_o disciple_n of_o john_n who_o for_o the_o opinion_n of_o salvation_n which_o they_o have_v conceyve_v of_o john_n be_v against_o christ_n when_o as_o john_n send_v all_o man_n unto_o christ_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n also_o we_o see_v that_o the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n reject_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o every_o beléever_n through_o the_o opinion_n of_o salvation_n which_o they_o have_v conceyve_v in_o themselves_o in_o that_o they_o think_v themselves_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o out_o of_o the_o which_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v but_o the_o same_o church_n do_v not_o draw_v away_o man_n from_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n but_o rather_o send_v all_o man_n to_o his_o doctrine_n let_v they_o take_v heed_n which_o boast_n and_o brag_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o word_n of_o god_n least_o conceyve_v the_o like_a opinion_n they_o do_v not_o true_o hear_v christ_n the_o lord_n of_o life_n nor_o so_o truelye_o follow_v he_o as_o they_o ought_v 41._o i_o receyve_v not_o praise_v of_o man_n b._n in_o these_o word_n our_o saviour_n prevent_v the_o slander_v wherewith_o the_o jew_n may_v have_v sclander_v he_o to_o be_v ambitious_a because_o he_o have_v cast_v they_o in_o the_o tooth_n with_o their_o contempt_n of_o he_o who_o be_v so_o manifest_o commend_v in_o the_o scripture_n r._n as_o if_o be_v shall_v say_v i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o to_o think_v that_o i_o call_v you_o unto_o i_o and_o that_o i_o will_v you_o to_o believe_v my_o word_n because_o i_o be_o ambitious_a and_o desirous_a of_o praise_n be_a it_o far_o from_o i_o that_o i_o shall_v seek_v the_o praise_n and_o commendation_n of_o man_n for_o if_o i_o be_v any_o thing_n desirous_a of_o glory_n i_o will_v never_o have_v so_o abase_v myself_o as_o to_o have_v take_v upon_o i_o human_a flesh_n but_o i_o speak_v these_o thing_n be_v desirous_a of_o your_o salvation_n i_o seek_v not_o myself_o but_o you_o c._n neither_o be_o i_o gréeve_v that_o i_o see_v myself_o contemn_v but_o i_o seek_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o you_o all_o and_o so_o he_o go_v forward_o in_o refel_v the_o slander_v that_o he_o extoll_v himself_o above_o all_o man_n for_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v so_o great_a and_o mighty_a that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o depend_v upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n when_o as_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n can_v detract_v nothing_o at_o all_o from_o he_o nor_o diminish_v one_o here_o be_v breadth_n of_o his_o power_n 42._o but_o i_o know_v you_o that_o you_o have_v not_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o you_o m._n he_o now_o manifestlye_o declare_v whereof_o he_o gather_v the_o original_n of_o their_o incredulity_n name_o hereof_o that_o they_o have_v no_o love_n of_o god_n in_o they_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v it_o be_v not_o hide_v or_o unknown_a to_o i_o for_o what_o cause_n you_o come_v not_o unto_o i_o the_o fain_o that_o you_o have_v the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o persecute_v i_o because_o i_o be_o against_o the_o commandment_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n as_o a_o wicked_a man_n and_o a_o breaker_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n a_o blasphemer_n of_o god_n and_o a_o seeker_n of_o vaineglorye_n but_o howsoever_o you_o deceyve_v and_o blind_v simple_a and_o ignorant_a man_n with_o this_o hypocritical_a pretence_n you_o can_v not_o deceyve_v i_o the_o be_v not_o unlyke_o your_o forefather_n for_o as_o they_o honour_v god_n with_o their_o lip_n and_o despise_v he_o in_o their_o heart_n even_o so_o you_o through_o hypocrisy_n will_v seem_v to_o love_n god_n with_o your_o mouth_n who_o notwithstanding_o you_o love_v not_o in_o your_o heart_n with_o your_o mouth_n you_o speak_v of_o god_n but_o with_o your_o heart_n you_o seek_v yourselves_o for_o i_o know_v you_o thorough_o who_o and_o what_o you_o be_v what_o you_o do_v and_o whereunto_o also_o you_o have_v respect_n b._n for_o whosoever_o have_v any_o manner_n of_o love_n or_o feel_n of_o god_n do_v also_o receyve_v his_o word_n so_o far_o they_o be_v from_o reject_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 6.40_o joh._n
desert_n where_o the_o lord_n feed_v the_o multitude_n for_o luke_n say_v that_o the_o lord_n go_v a_o part_n by_o ship_n into_o a_o desert_a place_n of_o the_o city_n of_o bethsaida_n therefore_o the_o lord_n command_v he_o to_o go_v before_o he_o toward_o bethsaida_n to_o the_o side_n of_o the_o shore_n either_o because_o this_o be_v the_o more_o convenient_a place_n of_o passage_n or_o else_o because_o by_o this_o commandment_n he_o intend_v somewhat_o else_o which_o be_v unknown_a to_o us._n that_o also_o which_o mathewe_n and_o mark_n have_v that_o they_o go_v over_o to_o the_o land_n of_o genesar_n be_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o john_n write_v that_o they_o go_v to_o capernaum_n because_o they_o speak_v general_o of_o the_o land_n to_o the_o which_o they_o arrive_v and_o john_n perticularlye_o of_o the_o city_n capernaum_n to_o which_o they_o come_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o disagréement_n between_o these_o place_n as_o may_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n seem_v to_o be_v and_o it_o be_v now_o dark_a c._n john_n pretermit_v many_o circumstance_n which_o the_o other_o have_v as_o by_o read_v they_o you_o may_v see_v 18._o and_o the_o sea_n arise_v with_o a_o great_a wound_n that_o blue_v this_o history_n be_v expound_v in_o the_o fouretéene_a chapter_n of_o matthew_n from_o the_o forty_o and_o eight_o verse_n unto_o the_o fiftye_a and_o three_o verse_n 19_o so_o when_o they_o have_v row_v about_o five_o and_o twenty_o or_o thirty_o furlong_n they_o see_v jesus_n walk_v on_o the_o sea_n and_o draw_v nigh_o to_o the_o ship_n and_o they_o be_v afraid_a b._n because_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o sufficient_o perceive_v and_o know_v the_o lord_n power_n by_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o loaf_n they_o be_v to_o be_v exercise_v by_o this_o perryll_n and_o danger_n of_o the_o sea_n r._n for_o the_o tempest_n of_o the_o sea_n be_v not_o raise_v about_o the_o disciple_n by_o chance_n but_o by_o the_o wise_a dispensation_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v absent_a whereby_o his_o presence_n may_v the_o more_o earnest_o be_v desire_v of_o his_o disciple_n and_o may_v learn_v how_o necessary_a christ_n be_v in_o adversitye_n affliction_n affliction_n euenso_fw-la the_o godly_a be_v afflict_v with_o cross_n with_o affliction_n and_o with_o calamity_n that_o they_o may_v with_o more_o fervent_a prayer_n call_v upon_o christ_n by_o faith_n contrarywyse_o the_o wicked_a the_o more_o they_o be_v afflict_v the_o far_o they_o go_v from_o god_n for_o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o lord_n in_o tribulation_n but_o satan_n c._n and_o it_o may_v seem_v very_o absurd_a that_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o vex_v when_o other_o have_v quiet_a sail_v but_o so_o the_o lord_n oftentimes_o exercise_v his_o with_o grevous_a perrille_n that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o familliarlye_o know_v he_o in_o time_n of_o their_o deliveraunce_n a._n read_v for_o large_a matter_n in_o the_o fouretéene_n of_o matthew_n and_o in_o the_o sixth_o of_o mark_n also_o 20._o but_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v i_o be_v not_o afraid_a c._n here_o s._n john_n set_v before_o we_o as_o in_o a_o glass_n what_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v we_o can_v conceyve_v without_o the_o word_n and_o what_o it_o bring_v for_o if_o he_o geve_v unto_o we_o but_o a_o bare_a show_n of_o his_o divinitye_n only_o by_o and_o by_o we_o fall_v to_o our_o own_o imagination_n and_o every_o man_n make_v to_o himself_o a_o idol_n in_o steed_n of_o christ_n after_o the_o error_n of_o the_o mind_n follow_v tremble_v and_o confuse_a fear_n of_o the_o mind_n miracle_n knowledge_n of_o god_n come_v rather_o by_o the_o word_n than_o by_o miracle_n but_o when_o he_o begin_v to_o speak_v by_o and_o by_o by_o his_o voice_n we_o receive_v sound_a and_o perfect_a knowledge_n and_o then_o we_o have_v joy_n in_o our_o mind_n and_o peace_n of_o conscience_n for_o there_o be_v great_a weight_n in_o those_o word_n it_o be_v i_o be_v not_o afraid_a for_o we_o be_v here_o teach_v that_o we_o have_v sufficient_a cause_n of_o trust_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o so_o much_o that_o we_o may_v be_v in_o peace_n and_o safety_n but_o this_o pertain_v to_o none_o save_v only_o to_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n for_o afterward_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o wicked_a by_o the_o same_o voice_n be_v throw_v down_o at_o his_o foot_n the_o voice_n of_o christ_n will_v discern_v the_o wicked_a from_o the_o child_n of_o god_n 18.6_o john_n 18.6_o for_o he_o be_v send_v a_o judge_n to_o destroy_v the_o reprobate_n and_o unbeléeving_a wherefore_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v his_o sight_n but_o they_o be_v by_o and_o by_o confound_v but_o the_o godly_a who_o know_v that_o he_o be_v give_v to_o they_o for_o a_o merciful_a saviour_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o hear_v his_o word_n which_o be_v to_o they_o a_o sure_a pledge_n both_o of_o his_o divine_a love_n and_o also_o of_o their_o salvation_n do_v recover_v their_o strength_n as_o it_o be_v from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o do_v joyful_o behold_v the_o clear_a sky_n after_o the_o stormy_a tempest_n and_o do_v dwell_v in_o the_o earth_n in_o peace_n and_o be_v conqueror_n of_o all_o evil_a do_v set_v his_o defence_n against_o all_o perrille_n 21._o and_o they_o will_v have_v receyve_v he_o into_o the_o ship_n and_o immediatelye_a the_o ship_n be_v at_o the_o land_n whether_o they_o go_v the_o other_o evangelist_n say_v that_o they_o receyve_v he_o into_o the_o ship_n the_o which_o our_o evangelist_n do_v not_o deny_v but_o say_v that_o by_o and_o by_o the_o ship_n arrive_v to_o the_o land_n whether_o they_o go_v the_o miracle_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o he_o walk_v upon_o the_o sea_n and_o that_o he_o make_v the_o sea_n calm_a and_o thyrd_o that_o the_o ship_n by_o and_o by_o arrive_v to_o land_n by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n mathewe_n add_v a_o four_o part_n concern_v peter_n in_o the_o fouretéene_a chapter_n c._n therefore_o we_o see_v here_o that_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o only_o erect_v and_o comfort_v his_o disciple_n with_o his_o word_n but_o also_o in_o very_a deed_n deliver_v they_o from_o fear_n allay_v the_o tempest_n m._n let_v we_o learn_v therefore_o by_o this_o example_n to_o who_o we_o be_v bind_v for_o this_o that_o be_v so_o oftentimes_o tempt_v we_o be_v not_o overcome_v in_o temptation_n 22._o the_o day_n follow_v when_o the_o people_n which_o stand_v on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o sea_n see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o ship_n there_o save_o that_o one_o whereunto_o his_o discyple_n be_v enter_v and_o that_o jesus_n go_v not_o in_o with_o his_o disciple_n into_o the_o ship_n but_o that_o his_o discyple_n be_v go_v away_o alone_o bu_n by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o eangelist_n descend_v to_o more_o nigh_o occasion_n of_o that_o most_o divine_a sermon_n which_o the_o lord_n make_v in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o capernait_v concern_v the_o sum_n and_o brief_a compendium_n of_o our_o religion_n name_o that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n send_v of_o the_o father_n from_o heaven_n into_o the_o world_n to_o quicken_v all_o mankind_n of_o the_o which_o quicken_a the_o faithful_a that_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v partaker_n but_o the_o circumstance_n which_o the_o evangelist_n put_v down_o here_o pertain_v to_o this_o end_n to_o teach_v that_o the_o multitude_n perceive_v that_o christ_n go_v over_o the_o lake_n by_o his_o divine_a power_n and_o not_o by_o mariner_n skill_n that_o therefore_o which_o christ_n do_v in_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n do_v not_o only_o profit_v the_o disciple_n to_o confirm_v their_o faith_n but_o be_v yet_o more_o fruitful_a because_o the_o day_n follow_v the_o whole_a multitude_n may_v easy_o gather_v that_o he_o be_v carry_v over_o by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o not_o by_o ship_n 23._o howbeit_o there_o come_v other_o ship_n from_o tiberias_n nigh_o unto_o the_o place_n where_o they_o do_v eat_v bread_n after_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v thanks_n after_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v thanks_n c._n this_o repetition_n of_o thanksgiving_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o christ_n obtain_v by_o prayer_n that_o those_o few_o loaf_n do_v suffice_v to_o feed_v so_o many_o man_n and_o because_o we_o be_v cold_a and_o slow_a to_o prayer_n he_o do_v twice_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o same_o therefore_o we_o ought_v the_o more_o to_o note_n this_o say_n because_o we_o see_v at_o this_o day_n a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n like_o brute_n beast_n to_o give_v themselves_o to_o security_n 24._o when_o the_o people_n therefore_o see_v that_o jesus_n be_v not_o there_o neither_o his_o disciple_n they_o also_o take_v ship_n and_o come_v to_o capernaum_n seek_v for_o
put_v from_o they_o that_o disorder_a care_n of_o the_o belly_n and_o receyve_v the_o present_a occasion_n of_o heavenly_a food_n so_o when_o he_o say_v to_o martha_n martha_n martha_n 10.41_o lu._n 10.41_o thou_o be_v trouble_v about_o many_o thing_n but_o one_o be_v necessary_a mary_n have_v choose_v the_o better_a part_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v take_v from_o she_o he_o do_v not_o condemn_v the_o duty_n of_o hospitality_n and_o diligence_n and_o entertain_v of_o ghost_n which_o be_v commend_v in_o abraham_n and_o be_v commend_v to_o we_o in_o the_o apostle_n but_o that_o overmuche_a care_n about_o worldly_a thing_n 13.2_o gen._n 18.3_o heb._n 13.2_o by_o which_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o she_o neglect_v the_o present_a grace_n of_o heavenlye_a doctrine_n which_o marye_o more_o high_o esteem_v than_o to_o neglect_v the_o same_o by_o the_o care_n of_o corporal_a thing_n c._n and_o christ_n here_o by_o a_o metaphor_n call_v all_o that_o pertain_v to_o newness_n of_o life_n meat_n for_o we_o know_v that_o our_o soul_n be_v feed_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o the_o same_o be_v effectual_a in_o we_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n soul_n the_o gospel_n be_v the_o food_n of_o out_o soul_n therefore_o see_v faith_n be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o soul_n whatsoever_o nourish_v and_o increase_v faith_n be_v very_o well_o compare_v to_o meat_n but_o for_o that_o which_o endure_v he_o call_v this_o kind_n of_o meat_n incorruptible_a and_o say_v that_o the_o same_o endure_v to_o everlasting_a life_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o our_o soul_n be_v not_o feed_v for_o a_o day_n but_o be_v nourish_v for_o the_o hope_n of_o bless_a immortallitye_n for_o the_o lord_n do_v heginne_v the_o work_n of_o our_o salvation_n that_o he_o may_v profit_v and_o accomplish_v the_o same_o against_o the_o day_n of_o his_o come_n it_o be_v meet_v therefore_o that_o we_o receyve_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o spyrite_n that_o they_o may_v be_v pledge_n and_o seal_n to_o we_o of_o everlasting_a life_n for_o although_o the_o reprobate_a have_v once_o taste_v of_o this_o meat_n do_v perbrake_n it_o up_o again_o and_o can_v not_o retain_v it_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v feel_v his_o force_n abide_v in_o they_o when_o they_o do_v perceyve_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o his_o gift_n be_v not_o corruptible_a but_o ever_o abide_v thing_n heavenlye_a thing_n and_o earthly_a thing_n m._n wherefore_o they_o which_o have_v only_o regard_n to_o a_o earthly_a life_n be_v occupy_v in_o earthly_a thing_n but_o they_o which_o respect_v a_o eternal_a and_o heavenly_a life_n be_v whole_o give_v to_o everlasting_a and_o celestial_a thing_n the_o son_n of_o god_n also_o use_v earthly_a thing_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o hope_n of_o everlasting_a life_n but_o they_o use_v they_o for_o the_o necessity_n of_o nature_n and_o so_o that_o thou_o may_v perceyve_v that_o they_o look_v for_o a_o far_o better_a thing_n than_o this_o present_a life_n c._n moreover_o vain_a and_o wicked_a be_v their_o opinion_n which_o by_o this_o word_n labour_n gather_v that_o we_o by_o our_o work_n deserve_v everlasting_a life_n for_o christ_n as_o be_v say_v figurativelye_o exhort_v man_n to_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o meditation_n of_o a_o heavenly_a life_n be_v most_o common_o affect_v to_o the_o world_n also_o christ_n himself_o take_v away_o all_o doubt_n when_o he_o add_v which_o meat_n the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v give_v to_o you_o for_o in_o that_o we_o obtain_v it_o by_o his_o gift_n merit_n heaven_n be_v not_o get_v by_o merit_n no_o man_n get_v the_o same_o by_o his_o own_o industrye_n and_o labour_n there_o be_v in_o these_o word_n some_o show_n of_o contrarietye_n but_o the_o reconciliation_n be_v easy_o make_v because_o the_o spiritual_a meat_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o free_a gift_n of_o christ_n and_o because_o it_o become_v we_o to_o bend_v our_o whole_a heart_n and_o mind_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n m._n he_o say_v not_o which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v obtain_v for_o you_o but_o which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v geve_v unto_o you_o 2.25_o 1._o pet._n 2.25_o therefore_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o the_o shéephearde_n of_o our_o soul_n otherwise_o how_o can_v he_o geve_v unto_o we_o the_o meat_n of_o life_n but_o to_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o the_o shéephearde_n of_o our_o soul_n be_v not_o such_o a_o thing_n that_o it_o can_v simp_o belong_v to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v he_o never_o so_o holy_a and_o never_o so_o mighty_a no_o nor_o to_o that_o holy_a and_o mighty_a moses_n it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o that_o this_o son_n of_o man_n be_v endue_v with_o divine_a power_n god_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o may_v geve_v this_o food_n of_o eternal_a life_n christ_n then_o be_v boath_n the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v god_n and_o man_n and_o whereas_o in_o speak_v of_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n he_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n for_o he_o speak_v as_o the_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o frame_v himself_o to_o the_o weak_a capasity_n of_o his_o hearer_n 9.6_o math._n 9.6_o so_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v power_n in_o earth_n to_o forgeve_v sin_n for_o he_o have_v god_n the_o father_n seal_v c._n he_o confirm_v the_o sentence_n go_v before_o because_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n to_o that_o intent_n and_o purpose_n and_o by_o a_o apt_a metaphor_n he_o allude_v to_o the_o ancient_a and_o usual_a manner_n of_o seal_v for_o what_o so_o ever_o man_n will_v have_v confirm_v by_o their_o authority_n they_o seal_v with_o their_o ring_n even_o so_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o take_v any_o thing_n upon_o he_o pronounce_v that_o these_o duty_n be_v enjoin_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n and_o that_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o father_n be_v make_v manifest_a as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o plain_a and_o express_v seal_n a._n so_o that_o the_o father_n have_v seal_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v have_v anoint_v he_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n above_o all_o his_o fellow_n that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o saviour_n of_o all_o man_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o angel_n this_o be_v he_o which_o know_v the_o father_n alone_o and_o make_v others_z also_o to_o know_v he_o by_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o disciple_n the_o teacher_n of_o all_o truth_n c._n hereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o their_o labour_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a which_o commit_v their_o soul_n to_o christ_n to_o be_v feed_v let_v we_o know_v then_o that_o in_o christ_n we_o have_v life_n set_v before_o we_o that_o every_o one_o of_o we_o may_v aspire_v to_o the_o same_o not_o by_o chance_n but_o by_o assure_a hope_n of_o the_o success_n notwithstanding_o we_o be_v herewithal_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v account_v counterfeit_v before_o god_n which_o geve_v this_o praise_n to_o any_o other_o than_o to_o christ_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o papist_n be_v falsefier_n of_o all_o part_n of_o their_o doctrine_n for_o so_o many_o as_o place_v mean_n of_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o than_o in_o christ_n they_o do_v as_o it_o be_v cancel_v and_o raze_v this_o seal_n of_o god_n which_o alone_a be_v authentical_a and_o wicked_o corrupt_v the_o same_o but_o we_o lest_o we_o shall_v fall_v into_o this_o horrible_a sin_n do_v learn_v to_o serve_v christ_n whole_o and_o alone_a and_o to_o leave_v unto_o he_o all_o that_o the_o father_n have_v give_v he_o m._n the_o jew_n also_o in_o vain_a persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o have_v life_n without_o this_o mediator_n because_o they_o seek_v for_o that_o in_o god_n the_o father_n which_o he_o will_v have_v seek_v for_o in_o his_o son_n the_o turk_n also_o forsake_v this_o mediatoure_n do_v admit_v the_o intercestion_n of_o mahomet_n and_o other_o 4.12_o acts._n 4.12_o but_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a way_n to_o the_o father_n name_o christ_n jesus_n and_o there_o be_v salvation_n in_o no_o other_o than_o in_o he_o 28._o then_o say_v they_o unto_o he_o what_o shall_v we_o do_v that_o we_o may_v work_v the_o work_n of_o god_n b._n by_o this_o that_o the_o lord_n exhort_v to_o work_v or_o to_o seek_v the_o meat_n which_o abide_v to_o everlasting_a life_n these_o man_n easelye_o gather_v and_o understand_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o spiritual_a meat_n c._n and_o that_o
b._n the_o lord_n who_o know_v that_o there_o be_v in_o this_o multitude_n his_o elect_v which_o hear_v he_o with_o fruit_n and_o that_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v open_o preach_v to_o other_o also_o that_o they_o may_v have_v no_o excuse_n be_v nothing_o at_o all_o dismay_v with_o their_o wickedness_n rashness_n and_o disdain_n which_o dery_v he_o begin_v open_o to_o tell_v they_o boath_n who_o be_v this_o celestial_a bread_n in_o deed_n and_o also_o how_o they_o may_v attain_v the_o same_o c._n first_o of_o all_o he_o teach_v that_o they_o have_v before_o their_o face_n that_o bread_n which_o mockingly_a they_o require_v secondelye_o he_o reprehend_v they_o but_o he_o begin_v with_o doctrine_n that_o he_o may_v declare_v they_o to_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o great_a ingratitude_n m._n he_o may_v have_v say_v i_o be_o the_o saviour_n and_o the_o quickener_n but_o there_o be_v more_o consolation_n &_o sweetness_n contain_v in_o this_o that_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n for_o first_o of_o all_o what_o other_o use_n be_v there_o of_o bread_n than_o to_o feed_v and_o nourish_v even_o so_o very_o the_o son_n of_o god_n descend_v to_o we_o from_o heaven_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n than_o that_o he_o may_v be_v to_o we_o meat_n and_o life_n furthermore_o how_o precious_a bread_n be_v to_o the_o hungary_n &_o how_o gréede_o the_o same_o be_v seek_v experience_n teach_v euenso_fw-la how_o gréede_o this_o bread_n of_o life_n christ_n ought_v to_o be_v seek_v for_o of_o we_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o this_o metaphor_n of_o the_o bread_n the_o which_o figure_n to_o teach_v the_o rude_a and_o ignorant_a be_v more_o apt_a and_o meet_a than_o simple_a and_o plain_a speech_n howbeit_o we_o must_v note_n life_n bread_n do_v not_o give_v life_n that_o by_o this_o word_n bread_n the_o quicken_a power_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v express_v as_o we_o feel_v the_o same_o for_o bread_n do_v not_o give_v life_n but_o do_v only_o nourish_v and_o preserve_v the_o same_o in_o that_o state_n in_o the_o which_o it_o be_v but_o by_o the_o benefit_n and_o goodness_n of_o christ_n we_o do_v not_o only_o retain_v life_n but_o have_v also_o the_o beginning_n of_o life_n wherefore_o this_o similitude_n be_v improper_a in_o some_o part_n but_o there_o be_v no_o absurditye_n at_o all_o in_o this_o because_o christ_n frame_v his_o oration_n and_o talk_n by_o the_o circomstaunce_n of_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v before_o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o m._n now_o he_o show_v how_o this_o bread_n may_v be_v take_v to_o bring_v life_n and_o define_v the_o manner_n of_o eat_v which_o be_v when_o we_o receyve_v the_o same_o by_o faith_n for_o it_o do_v nothing_o at_o all_o profit_n the_o unbeléeving_a that_o christ_n be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n because_o they_o always_o abide_v empty_a but_o christ_n be_v then_o make_v our_o bread_n when_o we_o come_v hungerye_n unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v fill_v us._n b._n to_o come_v unto_o christ_n be_v to_o receyve_v he_o for_o our_o saviour_n and_o to_o consecrate_v ourselves_o whole_o unto_o he_o to_o who_o soever_o it_o be_v give_v to_o do_v this_o he_o shall_v not_o hunger_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o shall_v want_v no_o good_a thing_n the_o very_a same_o also_o he_o now_o speak_v by_o another_o allegory_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o in_o like_o manner_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v to_o come_v unto_o christ_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o our_o saviour_n but_o not_o to_o thirst_n be_v to_o want_v no_o good_a thing_n but_o to_o be_v thorough_o bless_v the_o which_o begin_v to_o be_v here_o in_o those_o which_o have_v give_v themselves_o whole_o unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o it_o be_v finish_v when_o this_o body_n of_o we_o be_v restore_v again_o in_o the_o latter_a day_n by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n shall_v bear_v his_o image_n 15.49_o 1._o cor._n 15.49_o which_o be_v the_o heavenly_a adam_n shall_v never_o thirst_v c._n this_o seem_v to_o be_v add_v without_o reason_n because_o the_o office_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o to_o quench_v thirst_n but_o to_o put_v away_o hunger_n therefore_o christ_n attribute_v more_o to_o the_o bread_n than_o the_o nature_n thereof_o will_v bear_v but_o in_o that_o he_o take_v the_o name_n of_o bread_n only_o he_o do_v it_o to_o this_o end_n because_o he_o have_v so_o make_v his_o comparison_n with_o his_o heavenlye_a power_n by_o which_o our_o soul_n be_v sustain_v in_o life_n nevertheless_o by_o this_o word_n bread_n he_o understand_v all_o manner_n of_o nutriment_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o common_a manner_n of_o his_o country_n for_o the_o hebrews_n by_o a_o figure_n call_v synecdoche_n which_o be_v when_o part_n be_v put_v for_o the_o whole_a use_v to_o call_v dinner_n and_o supper_n eat_v of_o bread_n and_o in_o the_o fourtéenth_fw-mi chapter_n of_o luke_n also_o when_o we_o ask_v of_o god_n our_o daily_o bread_n we_o comprehend_v drink_n and_o the_o other_o necessary_a part_n of_o our_o life_n the_o scence_n and_o meaning_n thereof_o be_v this_o whosoever_o shall_v come_v to_o christ_n to_o receyve_v life_n of_o he_o shall_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o manner_n of_o necessarye_n to_o the_o full_a r._n to_o this_o also_o the_o prophet_n have_v respect_n when_o they_o promise_v plenty_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n as_o when_o the_o prophet_n say_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v hongary_n neither_o shall_v they_o be_v thirsty_a neither_o shall_v heat_n smite_v they_o nor_o the_o son_n for_o he_o that_o have_v compassion_n on_o they_o shall_v lead_v they_o 1â_n esa_n 49_o 1â_n even_o to_o the_o spring_n of_o water_n shall_v he_o drive_v they_o to_o be_v short_a he_o have_v all_o thing_n which_o by_o faith_n possess_v christ_n for_o christ_n be_v the_o treasure_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n he_o have_v nothing_o although_o he_o possess_v all_o the_o riches_n of_o this_o world_n which_o have_v not_o christ_n by_o faith_n if_o therefore_o thou_o want_v thou_o haste_v not_o faith_n if_o thou_o have_v say_v thou_o want_v not_o 36._o but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o also_o have_v see_v i_o and_o yet_o you_o believe_v not_o m._n in_o these_o word_n he_o strike_v the_o hardness_n and_o obstinacy_n of_o their_o heart_n by_o which_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o see_v see_v not_o neither_o yet_o beleve_v affirm_v that_o this_o their_o incredulity_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o can_v not_o taste_v the_o virtue_n of_o this_o bread_n &_o that_o the_o same_o will_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o shall_v hear_v in_o vain_a whatsoever_o be_v speak_v concern_v that_o bread_n c._n for_o they_o do_v wicked_o reject_v the_o gift_n offer_v to_o they_o and_o therefore_o he_o take_v from_o they_o all_o excuse_n for_o except_o he_o have_v declare_v unto_o they_o his_o power_n and_o have_v make_v manifest_a that_o he_o come_v from_o god_n the_o pretence_n of_o ignorance_n may_v have_v mitigate_v their_o fault_n but_o in_o that_o they_o do_v reject_v his_o doctrine_n who_o before_o they_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n messiah_n it_o be_v extreme_a disdain_n and_o contempt_n it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o man_n will_v never_o have_v so_o wilful_o resist_v god_n if_o so_o be_v they_o have_v know_v with_o who_o they_o have_v to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2.8_o 1._o cor._n 2.8_o they_o will_v never_o have_v crucefy_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n if_o so_o be_v they_o have_v know_v he_o but_o because_o the_o unbeléeving_n be_v blind_a in_o the_o clear_a light_n they_o be_v right_o say_v to_o see_v that_o which_o by_o and_o by_o vanish_v out_o of_o their_o sight_n because_o satan_n darken_v their_o mind_n this_o be_v without_o all_o controversy_n that_o whereas_o he_o say_v they_o have_v see_v it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o bodily_a sight_n but_o ought_v rather_o to_o be_v take_v for_o wilful_a blindness_n because_o they_o may_v have_v know_v who_o he_o have_v be_v have_v it_o not_o be_v that_o they_o be_v let_v by_o their_o own_o malice_n b._n therefore_o he_o note_v that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v a_o litlle_n before_o you_o seek_v i_o not_o because_o you_o see_v the_o sign_n for_o by_o the_o sign_n they_o see_v who_o he_o be_v namely_o the_o very_a son_n of_o god_n yet_o not_o withstand_v they_o do_v not_o believe_v because_o it_o be_v not_o give_v they_o from_o the_o father_n as_o straight_o way_n he_o show_v 37_o all_o that_o the_o father_n geve_v i_o shall_v come_v to_o i_o and_o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o i_o cast_v not_o away_o all_o that_o the_o father_n geve_v i_o m._n by_o these_o word_n the_o
thing_n this_o have_v be_v the_o part_n of_o reasonable_a man_n but_o they_o do_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n but_o according_a to_o the_o disposition_n of_o flesh_n they_o murmur_v because_o the_o lord_n say_v that_o he_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n for_o this_o be_v the_o lot_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n that_o it_o shall_v soon_o find_v such_o as_o shall_v murmur_v against_o it_o and_o contemn_v and_o deride_v it_o béefore_o they_o know_v it_o than_o such_o as_o shall_v right_o understande_v it_o and_o when_o they_o understande_v it_o earnest_o embrace_v it_o 42._o and_o they_o say_v be_v not_o this_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o joseph_n who_o father_n and_o mother_n we_o know_v how_o be_v it_o then_o that_o he_o say_v i_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n be_v not_o this_o jesus_n bu_n they_o look_v for_o some_o mighty_a and_o victorious_a messiah_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o as_o do_v solomon_n cyrus_n and_o alexander_n therefore_o they_o despise_v the_o humility_n of_o christ_n not_o perceive_v how_o this_o base_a man_n descend_v from_o heaven_n m._n for_o they_o think_v that_o he_o have_v so_o speak_v of_o his_o dissension_n from_o heaven_n as_o though_o he_o have_v deny_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v bear_v in_o this_o world_n among_o man_n but_o even_o as_o he_o be_v present_a before_o they_o to_o have_v fall_v as_o some_o angel_n from_o heaven_n hereupon_o it_o come_v that_o they_o say_v be_v not_o this_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o joseph_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v do_v he_o think_v we_o to_o be_v so_o dole_n &_o scenelesse_a that_o we_o will_v suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n see_v we_o know_v from_o whence_o he_o come_v who_o he_o be_v of_o what_o stock_n and_o kinder_v and_o with_o who_o he_o be_v bring_v up_o what_o rashness_n then_o be_v this_o that_o he_o say_v he_o descend_v from_o heaven_n as_o though_o he_o speak_v to_o stranger_n and_o to_o such_o as_o do_v not_o know_v he_o c._n they_o have_v therefore_o a_o double_a let_v the_o one_o be_v which_o they_o feign_v to_o themselves_o by_o a_o false_a opinion_n when_o they_o say_v this_o be_v the_o son_n of_o joseph_n who_o father_n &_o mother_n we_o know_v âewes_n two_o âbling_a âkes_n to_o âewes_n the_o other_o be_v the_o which_o procee_v of_o a_o wrong_a judgement_n because_o they_o do_v not_o think_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o that_o he_o descend_v to_o man_n take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n but_o we_o be_v to_o to_o wicked_a if_o so_o be_v we_o therefore_o despise_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n because_o he_o do_v abase_v and_o emptye_v himself_o for_o our_o sake_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n for_o this_o be_v rather_o a_o manifest_a sign_n of_o his_o unspeakable_a love_n towards_o we_o and_o also_o of_o his_o wonderful_a grace_n furthermore_o the_o divine_a majesty_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o so_o lie_v hide_v under_o the_o base_a and_o contemptible_a show_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o that_o the_o bright_a beam_n of_o the_o divine_a glory_n appear_v but_o those_o gross_a and_o senseless_a man_n want_v eye_n to_o behold_v the_o same_o bu_n so_o at_o this_o day_n when_o jesus_n be_v preach_v and_o the_o same_o crucefy_v when_o mortification_n &_o regeneration_n be_v teach_v the_o preach_n be_v contemn_v of_o proud_a man_n of_o covetous_a ambitious_a gain_v carnal_a gospeler_n follow_v christ_n for_o gain_v and_o luxurious_a man_n which_o cry_n from_o whence_o have_v we_o this_o new_a doctrine_n which_o these_o new_a apostle_n set_v before_o we_o let_v we_o note_n therefore_o in_o this_o place_n the_o nature_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o follow_v the_o gospel_n so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v hope_n of_o gain_n but_o that_o hope_n be_v take_v away_o it_z starteth_z aside_z m._n moreover_o the_o corrupt_a nature_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v to_o stand_v upon_o external_a thing_n and_o to_o judge_v after_o the_o outward_a apparaunce_n not_o only_o of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o also_o of_o all_o the_o elect_a of_o who_o it_o judge_v not_o according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o be_v heavenlye_a but_o according_a to_o the_o humility_n and_o baseness_n of_o the_o flesh_n it_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o those_o who_o it_o see_v in_o this_o world_n to_o be_v poor_a idiot_n unlearned_a base_a weak_a contemn_a abject_n and_o know_v according_a to_o the_o nativitye_n and_o conversation_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o be_v son_n of_o the_o heavenlye_a kingdom_n this_o thing_n s_o john_n expound_v in_o another_o place_n in_o these_o word_n say_v behold_v what_o love_n the_o father_n have_v bestow_v on_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god._n 3.1_o 1._o john_n 3.1_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o world_n know_v you_o not_o because_o it_o know_v not_o he_o 43._o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o murmur_n not_o among_o yourselves_o bu_n murmuration_n against_o god_n and_o the_o truth_n brawl_n also_o and_o contention_n and_o strife_n in_o religion_n be_v very_o displeasant_a to_o god_n &_o the_o same_o be_v oftentimes_o gréevous_o punish_v wherefore_o the_o lord_n give_v good_a advice_n to_o the_o multitude_n exhort_v they_o not_o so_o to_o murmur_v and_o grudge_v c._o notwithstanding_o he_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o murmuration_n upon_o they_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v my_o doctrine_n contain_v no_o matter_n of_o offence_n but_o because_o you_o be_v reprobate_n it_o prove_v your_o poison_a mind_n and_o be_v therefore_o unsavorye_a because_o your_o mouth_n be_v out_o of_o taste_n m._n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v here_o to_o be_v consider_v by_o which_o he_o be_v very_o circumspect_a lest_o if_o he_o shall_v hold_v his_o peace_n at_o those_o thing_n whereat_o they_o murmur_v among_o themselves_o they_o may_v think_v that_o they_o have_v just_o murmur_v let_v we_o follow_v this_o wise_a diligence_n by_o which_o we_o must_v beware_v lest_o they_o which_o murmur_v against_o the_o truth_n murmur_v not_o without_o reason_n 44._o no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o i_o except_o the_o father_n which_o have_v send_v i_o draw_v he_o and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o i_o m._n he_o repeat_v that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v but_o in_o other_o word_n for_o he_o have_v say_v all_o that_o my_o father_n give_v i_o shall_v come_v unto_o i_o and_o now_o he_o say_v no_o man_n can_v come_v unto_o i_o except_o my_o father_n which_o have_v send_v i_o draw_v he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v you_o murmur_v without_o reason_n of_o this_o that_o i_o say_v i_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n for_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o you_o know_v not_o i_o but_o be_v offend_v at_o this_o humility_n of_o my_o flesh_n do_v not_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o i_o who_o my_o father_n have_v give_v i_o why_o do_v you_o not_o rather_o murmur_v of_o that_o among_o yourselves_o now_o i_o confirm_v the_o very_a same_o unto_o you_o namely_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v know_v who_o i_o be_o from_o whence_o and_o to_o what_o end_n i_o be_o come_v except_o he_o be_v draw_v to_o i_o by_o grace_n from_o my_o father_n r._n but_o your_o belly_n draw_v you_o unto_o i_o and_o not_o my_o heavenlye_a father_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o you_o believe_v not_o my_o word_n c._n here_o christ_n open_o pronounce_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n although_o it_o be_v preach_v to_o all_o man_n alike_o can_v notwithstanding_o be_v of_o all_o man_n receive_v but_o they_o must_v first_o be_v renew_v in_o mind_n &_o in_o understanding_n fayth_n therefore_o come_v not_o by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god._n bu_n to_o come_v to_o christ_n be_v to_o béeléeve_v and_o to_o cleave_v unto_o christ_n to_o receyve_v christ_n and_o to_o depend_v only_o upon_o he_o as_o we_o have_v hear_v in_o the_o five_o and_o thirty_o verse_n go_v before_o c._n he_o say_v they_o be_v draw_v who_o mind_n god_n do_v illuminate_v and_o who_o heart_n he_o bend_v and_o frame_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n r._n for_o god_n draw_v in_o that_o order_n as_o before_o we_o have_v describe_v for_o he_o have_v choose_v some_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v and_o those_o who_o he_o have_v elect_v he_o have_v call_v and_o do_v call_v by_o christ_n through_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o thou_o shall_v feign_v and_o imagine_v to_o thyself_o any_o heavenly_a voice_n and_o descension_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o shall_v happen_v beside_o
speak_v for_o he_o compare_v himself_o with_o his_o father_n only_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o flesh_n for_o although_o the_o father_n be_v the_o beginning_n of_o life_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o eternal_a word_n itself_o be_v also_o proper_o life_n but_o the_o eternal_a divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o here_o handle_v because_o he_o propound_v himself_o as_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o our_o flesh_n manifest_v himself_o to_o the_o world_n whereas_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o he_o live_v by_o the_o father_n it_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o bare_a divinity_n neither_o also_o do_v it_o simp_o agree_v with_o the_o human_a nature_n but_o it_o be_v a_o title_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n furthermore_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v no_o unwonted_a thing_n to_o christ_n to_o ascribe_v to_o the_o father_n whatsoever_o be_v divine_a in_o himself_o bu_n it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v noated_a that_o he_o say_v shall_v live_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o i_o grace_n justification_n come_v by_o grace_n for_o in_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v quicken_v and_o bless_v it_o come_v not_o by_o our_o own_o merit_n but_o by_o the_o mere_a goodness_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n i_o will_v redeem_v thou_o life_n esec_n 36.22_o three_o degree_n of_o life_n not_o for_o thy_o sake_n but_o for_o my_o own_o sake_n c._n we_o must_v also_o note_n that_o there_o be_v reckon_v here_o three_o degree_n of_o life_n the_o first_o degree_n have_v god_n the_o lyve_a father_n who_o be_v a_o spring_a well_o but_o secret_a and_o hide_a the_o second_o degree_n have_v the_o son_n who_o be_v as_o a_o conduit_n pipe_v by_o who_o life_n be_v pour_v into_o us._n the_o third_o be_v that_o life_n which_o we_o draw_v from_o he_o so_o that_o because_o god_n the_o father_n in_o who_o consist_v life_n be_v far_o from_o we_o christ_n be_v appoint_v as_o a_o mean_a which_o be_v the_o second_o cause_n of_o life_n that_o from_o he_o that_o may_v come_v to_o we_o which_o otherwise_o lie_v secret_a and_o hide_v in_o god_n this_o sentence_n therefore_o agréeeth_n with_o that_o which_o go_v before_o where_o the_o lord_n say_v 5.29_o john_n 5.29_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o for_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n he_o call_v himself_o life_n 58._o this_o be_v that_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n not_o as_o your_o father_n do_v eat_v manna_n and_o be_v dead_a he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v ever_o this_o be_v that_o bread_n m._n when_o the_o jew_n object_v unto_o christ_n the_o father_n which_o be_v feed_v of_o moses_n by_o manna_n he_o answer_v to_o the_o same_o three_o thing_n one_o be_v that_o moses_n do_v not_o geve_v unto_o they_o bread_n from_o heaven_n and_o that_o the_o bread_n which_o the_o father_n do_v eat_v in_o the_o desert_n be_v not_o the_o true_a bread_n of_o heaven_n because_o the_o eater_n of_o the_o same_o be_v subject_n to_o death_n the_o second_o be_v that_o the_o father_n geve_v the_o true_a bread_n of_o heaven_n the_o which_o bread_n he_o himself_o be_v the_o third_o be_v that_o the_o eater_n of_o this_o bread_n have_v everlasting_a life_n now_o therefore_o to_o finish_v this_o dialogue_n he_o return_v to_o the_o comparison_n of_o manna_n and_o of_o his_o flesh_n where_o with_o he_o begin_v this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o word_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v prefer_v moses_n before_o i_o because_o he_o feed_v your_o father_n in_o the_o wilderness_n see_v that_o i_o have_v far_o better_a meat_n to_o geve_v unto_o you_o than_o that_o be_v for_o i_o bring_v with_o i_o celestial_a and_o everlasting_a life_n for_o that_o bread_n be_v say_v to_o descend_v from_o heaven_n which_o have_v no_o earthly_a or_o corruptible_a taste_n but_o geve_v the_o immortality_n of_o god_n kingdom_n this_o virtue_n they_o feel_v not_o in_o manna_n which_o only_o seek_v to_o fill_v their_o belly_n for_o there_o be_v two_o use_n of_o the_o same_o the_o jew_n with_o who_o christ_n here_o dispute_v respect_v nothing_o but_o the_o corporal_a food_n but_o the_o life_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o transitorye_n but_o grow_v more_o and_o more_o till_o the_o whole_a man_n be_v renew_a bu_n and_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o these_o place_n that_o faith_n in_o christ_n iustify_v all_o those_o that_o believe_v 59_o these_o thing_n say_v he_o in_o the_o synagogue_n as_o he_o teach_v in_o capernaum_n bu_n now_o the_o evangelist_n noat_v the_o place_n where_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v and_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o historical_a manner_n thereby_o to_o declare_v the_o undoubted_a truth_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o matter_n c._n and_o also_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o there_o be_v then_o many_o present_n when_o these_o thing_n be_v speak_v bu_n for_o this_o talk_n and_o disputation_n concern_v faith_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o a_o great_a assembly_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o a_o school_n temple_n or_o church_n because_o it_o pertain_v to_o the_o right_a instruction_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o of_o the_o universal_a world_n c._n he_o signifi_v that_o this_o sermon_n be_v make_v as_o of_o a_o grave_n and_o serious_a matter_n m._n and_o that_o christ_n be_v find_v of_o the_o capernaite_v in_o the_o synagogue_n into_o the_o which_o he_o enter_v to_o teach_v that_o they_o may_v hear_v he_o speak_v of_o so_o great_a mystery_n for_o he_o will_v teach_v open_o 18.20_o joh._n 18.20_o that_o he_o may_v have_v many_o witness_n of_o his_o doctrine_n even_o as_o he_o bold_o affirm_v before_o the_o high_a priest_n as_o he_o teach_v in_o capernaum_n this_o be_v a_o notable_a prerogative_n of_o the_o city_n of_o capernaum_n that_o they_o have_v christ_n himself_o to_o be_v their_o teacher_n and_o that_o open_o not_o once_o or_o twice_o but_o oftentimes_o what_o thing_n more_o profitable_a can_v happen_v to_o this_o city_n than_o this_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o same_o it_o be_v just_o say_v to_o be_v lyft_v up_o to_o heaven_n those_o city_n wax_v proud_a in_o the_o which_o sometime_o certain_a notable_a man_n have_v live_v or_o else_o have_v do_v some_o notable_a thing_n but_o how_o much_o more_o notable_a be_v that_o which_o happen_v to_o this_o city_n 11.23_o mat._n 11.23_o but_o when_o it_o do_v contemn_v this_o singular_a grace_n and_o abuse_v the_o same_o it_o be_v just_o say_v to_o be_v deject_a to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n the_o romanistes_n brag_v of_o peter_n and_o paul_n seat_n and_o under_o the_o pretence_n hereof_o have_v invade_v and_o win_v the_o government_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n &_o have_v exalt_v themselves_o even_o to_o the_o heaven_n good_a lord_n what_o will_v they_o have_v do_v if_o so_o be_v christ_n have_v teach_v so_o oftentimes_o among_o they_o but_o now_o see_v they_o do_v not_o retain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n in_o their_o proper_a place_n what_o else_o remain_v for_o they_o now_o than_o the_o great_a condemnation_n all_o these_o church_n which_o have_v by_o the_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n the_o sound_n and_o wholesome_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o other_o church_n want_n must_v have_v this_o example_n of_o the_o capernaite_v always_o before_o their_o eye_n 60._o many_o therefore_o of_o his_o disciple_n when_o they_o have_v hear_v this_o say_v this_o be_v a_o hard_a say_n who_o can_v abide_v the_o hear_n of_o it_o many_o therefore_o of_o his_o disciple_n m._n all_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v between_o this_o verse_n and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n concern_v the_o discyple_n of_o christ_n c._n first_o of_o all_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o there_o be_v very_o few_o among_o this_o great_a multitude_n which_o receive_v any_o profit_n nay_o this_o doctrine_n be_v the_o occasion_n that_o many_o which_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n fall_v away_o if_o the_o evangelist_n have_v say_v that_o only_o a_o few_o have_v be_v offend_v it_o have_v be_v almost_o a_o wonder_n but_o in_o that_o a_o great_a multitude_n rise_v and_o conspire_v against_o he_o what_o example_n shall_v we_o say_v it_o be_v m._n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o the_o rude_a multitude_n do_v not_o receyve_v the_o mystical_a word_n of_o christ_n when_o that_o his_o own_o disciple_n can_v not_o abide_v the_o hear_n of_o they_o wherefore_o let_v this_o history_n be_v print_v in_o our_o heart_n lest_o that_o at_o any_o time_n we_o trouble_v christ_n when_o he_o be_v speak_v and_o if_o we_o see_v the_o like_a
to_o be_v in_o other_o at_o this_o day_n let_v not_o their_o pride_n trouble_v our_o faith_n bu_n those_o gross_a hearer_n not_o understand_v as_o yet_o what_o christ_n have_v teach_v murmur_v against_o the_o divine_a teacher_n say_v who_o can_v abide_v the_o hear_n of_o it_o c._n but_o the_o hardness_n wherewith_o all_o they_o find_v fault_n be_v rather_o in_o their_o heart_n than_o in_o the_o word_n but_o thus_o be_v the_o reprobate_n wont_a to_o gather_v together_o heap_n of_o stone_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o throw_v at_o other_o and_o when_o they_o resist_v christ_n with_o their_o stubborness_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n they_o complain_v that_o his_o word_n be_v hard_a which_o rather_o ought_v to_o mollifye_v they_o for_o whosoever_o humble_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n shall_v find_v nothing_o in_o the_o same_o intolerable_a or_o hard_a but_o to_o the_o unbeléeving_n which_o stubbornlye_o withstand_v the_o same_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o maul_v or_o hammer_v that_o break_v the_o stone_n 32.29_o jer._n 32.29_o as_o say_v the_o prophet_n and_o see_v there_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o same_o hardness_n in_o everye_o one_o of_o we_o if_o we_o judge_v after_o our_o own_o scence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n everye_o word_n shall_v be_v unto_o we_o a_o dark_a sentence_n wherefore_o every_o one_o of_o we_o must_v commend_v ourselves_o to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o may_v write_v the_o same_o in_o our_o heart_n which_o otherwise_o will_v not_o enter_v in_o at_o our_o ear_n m._n notwithstanding_o for_o consolation_n sake_n this_o also_o be_v to_o be_v noated_a that_o he_o say_v not_o all_z but_z many_o of_o his_o disciple_n be_v offend_v apostasy_n apostasy_n although_o many_o be_v offend_v yet_o notwithstanding_o some_o remain_n which_o be_v edifyed_a and_o save_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o who_o sake_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n must_v constantlye_o abide_v in_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v although_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v small_a in_o comparison_n of_o those_o which_o go_v back_o for_o if_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n rejoice_v over_o one_o sinner_n that_o repent_v more_o than_o over_o ninety_o and_o nine_o just_a person_n and_o if_o so_o be_v the_o good_a shepherd_n leave_v nintye_a and_o nine_o in_o the_o wilderness_n go_v to_o seek_v that_o which_o be_v go_v astray_o and_o have_v find_v it_o bring_v it_o home_o with_o joy_n of_o how_o great_a weight_n ought_v the_o salvation_n of_o a_o few_o yea_o of_o one_o man_n to_o be_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n let_v he_o therefore_o rejoice_v more_o at_o the_o faith_n sinceritye_n and_o constancy_n of_o a_o few_o which_o be_v god_n elect_v than_o of_o the_o inconstancye_n of_o a_o great_a many_o which_o be_v reprobate_n b._n for_o we_o see_v how_o rare_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o find_v a_o sincere_a and_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o how_o hard_o a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o find_v any_o assembly_n without_o hypocrite_n m._n this_o complaint_n which_o the_o disciple_n make_v concern_v the_o hardness_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v full_a of_o arrogancye_n contempt_n and_o rashness_n for_o they_o ascribe_v the_o fault_n of_o their_o unbeléefe_n not_o to_o themselves_o but_o to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n say_v who_o can_v abide_v the_o hear_n such_o wisdom_n industrye_n honesty_n and_o godliness_n they_o ascrybe_n to_o themselves_o that_o they_o will_v have_v no_o man_n to_o understande_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o themselves_o understand_v not_o but_o they_o which_o be_v of_o a_o modest_a nature_n &_o humble_a disposition_n if_o they_o be_v offend_v in_o any_o matter_n know_v their_o own_o imbecillitye_n do_v first_o of_o all_o suspect_v their_o own_o dulness_n and_o negligence_n and_o do_v rather_o lay_v the_o fault_n upon_o this_o than_o upon_o that_o which_o they_o hear_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o a_o great_a many_o can_v comprehend_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o themselves_o can_v 61._o jesus_n know_v in_o himself_o that_o his_o disciple_n murmur_v at_o it_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o do_v this_o offend_v you_o b._n jesus_n according_a to_o his_o wont_a clemencye_n seek_v to_o help_v their_o offence_n and_o foul_a error_n know_v the_o cogitation_n and_o secréete_n of_o their_o heart_n know_v straight_o way_n also_o what_o it_o be_v that_o draw_v away_o those_o his_o hearer_n c._n christ_n know_v that_o the_o offence_n which_o the_o reprobate_n have_v conceyve_v can_v not_o be_v take_v away_o for_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o wound_n they_o with_o his_o doctrine_n as_o he_o do_v detest_v the_o poison_a malice_n which_o lie_v hide_v in_o their_o heart_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o think_v he_o will_v seek_v by_o all_o mean_v possible_a whether_o there_o be_v any_o curable_a among_o those_o that_o be_v offend_v and_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o rest_n say_v do_v this_o offend_v you_o he_o speak_v thus_o by_o interrogation_n to_o signify_v unto_o they_o that_o it_o seem_v strange_a unto_o he_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v offend_v at_o this_o his_o doctrine_n and_o also_o that_o they_o may_v understande_v that_o they_o be_v offend_v without_o cause_n c._n see_v the_o doctrine_n itself_o contain_v no_o matter_n in_o it_o of_o offence_n m._n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o have_v this_o communication_n apart_o from_o among_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o synagogue_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o do_v in_o diverse_a other_o place_n otherwise_o it_o have_v not_o be_v convenient_a that_o he_o shall_v have_v go_v about_o open_o in_o the_o foresay_a assembly_n to_o have_v correct_v and_o reprove_v his_o murmur_a disciple_n 62._o what_o and_o if_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n ascend_v uppe_o thither_o where_o he_o be_v before_o c._n christ_n here_o seem_v not_o so_o much_o to_o take_v away_o the_o offence_n as_o he_o do_v seem_v to_o increase_v it_o notwithstanding_o if_o any_o man_n way_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o offence_n thorough_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o it_o be_v in_o this_o that_o they_o have_v conceyve_v a_o opinion_n that_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o shall_v please_v they_o the_o simple_a and_o base_a condition_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o behold_v with_o their_o eye_n be_v a_o let_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o geve_v place_n to_o the_o power_n of_o his_o divinitye_n but_o now_o draw_v aside_o as_o it_o be_v the_o curtain_n or_o veil_n he_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o heavenly_a glory_n b._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v this_o offend_v you_o that_o i_o take_v so_o much_o to_o myself_o that_o i_o attribute_v so_o much_o to_o the_o eat_n of_o my_o flesh_n that_o i_o affirm_v that_o i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n which_o descend_v from_o heaven_n c._n and_o because_o i_o be_o without_o honour_n among_o man_n you_o despise_v i_o and_o acknowledge_v no_o divine_a power_n to_o be_v in_o i_o but_o short_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o god_n by_o his_o mighty_a power_n shall_v exalt_v i_o from_o this_o contemptible_a state_n of_o mortal_a life_n above_o the_o heaven_n for_o in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n there_o appear_v such_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o open_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n also_o when_o it_o be_v say_v 2.7_o psal_n 2.7_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n to_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o the_o resurrection_n be_v set_v forth_o as_o a_o plain_a show_n token_n whereby_o this_o glory_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o be_v know_v as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n do_v interpret_v the_o same_o 13.33_o acts._n 13.33_o and_o the_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n be_v the_o fulfyl_n of_o his_o glory_n confirm_v ascention_n of_o christ_n into_o heaven_n confirm_v m._n let_v we_o here_o note_n how_o the_o article_n of_o the_o lord_n ascension_n be_v confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v that_o this_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o lyve_a god_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n for_o our_o salvation_n for_o his_o ascension_n do_v confirm_v his_o descension_n his_o descension_n into_o this_o world_n be_v see_v of_o no_o mortal_a eye_n it_o be_v meet_v therefore_o that_o his_o ascension_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o return_n to_o his_o father_n shall_v be_v see_v of_o such_o as_o shall_v testify_v of_o the_o same_o whereby_o his_o descension_n which_o be_v invisible_a may_v be_v confirm_v 3.13_o john_n 3.13_o for_o no_o man_n ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o he_o which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n even_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o that_o he_o
at_o their_o pleasure_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o have_v no_o care_n of_o the_o law_n second_o he_o descend_v to_o the_o cause_n itself_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o and_o thus_o he_o bring_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a defence_n of_o his_o cause_n therefore_o the_o sum_n of_o this_o part_n be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o zeal_n or_o love_n toward_o the_o law_n in_o such_o as_o contemn_v the_o same_o whereupon_o christ_n do_v infer_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o jew_n some_o other_o provocation_n to_o madness_n in_o that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v he_o euenso_fw-la at_o this_o day_n the_o pope_n bishopes_n abbatte_n monk_n friar_n and_o the_o whole_a hellish_a rabble_n must_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o their_o lourk_a den_n so_o often_o as_o they_o withstand_v god_n and_o his_o wholesome_a doctrine_n do_v fain_o that_o they_o do_v the_o same_o of_o godly_a affection_n and_o zeal_n for_o if_o their_o life_n be_v disclose_v we_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o same_o nothing_o but_o horrible_a wickedness_n coulléer_v with_o hypocrisy_n m._n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o our_o savioure_n christ_n do_v great_o provoke_v and_o gall_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o jew_n with_o this_o sharp_a reprehension_n they_o do_v glory_n and_o boast_v of_o moses_n of_o the_o law_n and_o of_o god_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o they_o observe_v not_o the_o law_n which_o be_v give_v they_o by_o which_o notwithstanding_o they_o look_v to_o be_v save_v and_o so_o those_o miserable_a and_o blind_a man_n find_v death_n in_o that_o by_o which_o they_o promise_v to_o themselves_o life_n 20._o the_o people_n answer_v and_o say_v thou_o have_v the_o devil_n who_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v thou_o b._n peradventure_o the_o people_n not_o know_v what_o their_o ruler_n go_v about_o and_o practise_v against_o the_o lord_n say_v that_o he_o have_v the_o devil_n because_o he_o complain_v that_o his_o death_n be_v seek_v c._n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v thou_o be_v mad_a and_o lie_v there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v thou_o for_o this_o be_v a_o common_a manner_n of_o speech_n among_o the_o jew_n when_o a_o man_n be_v move_v to_o fury_n or_o when_o one_o be_v out_o of_o his_o wit_n to_o say_v that_o he_o have_v a_o devil_n and_o very_o as_o soft_a and_o gentle_a chatisment_n be_v the_o fatherlye_v stroke_n of_o god_n evenso_fw-la when_o he_o deal_v more_o hardelye_o and_o sharp_o with_o we_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o strike_v we_o with_o his_o hand_n but_o rather_o to_o use_v the_o devil_n the_o minister_n of_o his_o wrath_n m._n notwithstanding_o there_o be_v some_o which_o refer_v not_o this_o answer_n to_o the_o common_a multitude_n but_o to_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o text_n be_v quite_o repugnaunt_a to_o their_o judgement_n c._n for_o because_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o scribe_n be_v not_o know_v as_o yet_o to_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n they_o with_o a_o simple_a mind_n reprehend_v christ_n these_o foolish_a man_n therefore_o attribute_v it_o to_o madness_n that_o christ_n complain_v that_o his_o death_n be_v seek_v hereby_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o take_v diligent_a heed_n that_o we_o geve_v not_o our_o judgement_n of_o unknown_a matter_n and_o if_o so_o be_v it_o fall_v out_o at_o any_o time_n that_o we_o be_v rashlye_a condemn_v by_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a man_n we_o must_v patient_o suffer_v the_o same_o after_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n m._n see_v that_o he_o which_o come_v to_o tread_v down_o the_o serpent_n head_n and_o to_o dissolve_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n modestlye_o suffer_v this_o blasphemye_n 21._o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o i_o have_v do_v one_o work_n and_o you_o all_o marvel_n m._n he_o prosecute_v his_o former_a complaint_n and_o make_v no_o answer_n at_o all_o to_o the_o blasphemye_n c._n and_o first_o of_o all_o he_o show_v that_o the_o miracle_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v be_v not_o repugnaunt_a with_o the_o law_n of_o god._n m._n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v do_v one_o work_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o restore_n of_o he_o who_o he_o heal_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n at_o the_o pool_n c._n the_o scence_n and_o meaning_n than_o be_v this_o i_o you_o say_v be_o guilty_a of_o one_o only_a fault_n for_o the_o which_o i_o be_o to_o be_v reprehend_v you_o think_v namely_o for_o that_o i_o have_v heal_v a_o man_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n but_o as_o for_o you_o you_o do_v more_o work_v everye_o sabbath_n day_n and_o there_o be_v no_o faultefounde_a with_o they_o for_o there_o pass_v not_o one_o sabbath_n day_n on_o the_o which_o many_o infant_n be_v not_o circomcise_v by_o this_o example_n he_o defend_v his_o deed_n in_o this_o circomcision_n and_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o paulsey_n be_v alike_o that_o boath_n of_o they_o be_v divine_a work_n but_o christ_n show_v that_o this_o his_o work_n be_v better_a than_o the_o other_o because_o it_o be_v a_o benefit_n pertain_v to_o the_o whole_a man_n because_o it_o be_v a_o benefit_n pertain_v to_o the_o whole_a man_n but_o if_o he_o have_v heal_v the_o man_n only_o of_o a_o corporal_a disease_n than_o this_o comparison_n will_v not_o have_v avayl_v for_o circumcision_n which_o belong_v to_o soul_n health_n shall_v have_v more_o excellency_n christ_n therefore_o join_v the_o spiritual_a fruit_n of_o the_o miracle_n with_o the_o external_a benefit_n do_v to_o the_o body_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v right_o prefer_v the_o perfect_a salvation_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n and_o you_o all_o marvel_n c._n the_o maruayl_v of_o the_o which_o he_o speak_v signifi_v that_o murmur_a which_o rise_v of_o the_o deed_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o think_v he_o to_o be_v more_o bold_a than_o be_v meet_v sabbath_n superstition_n in_o observe_v the_o sabbath_n m._n in_o the_o which_o appear_v a_o certain_a general_a superstition_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n by_o which_o they_o judge_v simple_o the_o sabbath_n to_o be_v break_v by_o work_n put_v no_o difference_n between_o one_o work_n and_o another_o according_a to_o their_o several_a quallitye_n insomuch_o that_o they_o account_v this_o miraculous_a heal_n of_o the_o man_n sick_a of_o the_o paulsée_fw-fr 13.14_o luk._n 13.14_o to_o be_v the_o break_n of_o the_o sabbath_n the_o which_o they_o do_v not_o only_o at_o this_o time_n but_o at_o diverse_a other_o time_n also_o as_o when_o the_o rulars_n of_o the_o synagogue_n be_v angry_a with_o the_o lord_n for_o heal_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n say_v to_o the_o people_n there_o be_v six_o day_n for_o man_n to_o work_v in_o in_o these_o therefore_o come_v and_o be_v heal_v and_o not_o on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n this_o preciseness_n come_v upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o law_n in_o it_o thou_o shall_v do_v no_o manner_n of_o work_n r._n but_o these_o miserable_a man_n do_v not_o perceyve_v that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v not_o fulfil_v with_o bodily_a rest_n for_o then_o upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n man_n must_v not_o lie_v stand_v walk_v eat_v drink_n speakeheare_v see_v circumcise_v nor_o help_v his_o neighbour_n ox_n be_v fall_v into_o a_o pit_n for_o all_o these_o be_v work_n but_o see_v human_a necessity_n can_v want_v these_o work_n therefore_o the_o law_n of_o the_o sabbath_n have_v another_o respect_n not_o to_o the_o ease_n and_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n but_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o spyrite_n the_o which_o be_v when_o we_o rest_n from_o our_o nature_n by_o which_o we_o be_v bear_v in_o sin_n and_o do_v suffer_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o a_o new_a regeneration_n to_o fulfil_v his_o work_n in_o we_o for_o he_o do_v trulye_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n day_n which_o devine_v his_o own_o strength_n give_v over_o himself_o wholelye_o to_o the_o work_n of_o god._n m._n for_o the_o sabis_n profane_v by_o vain_a and_o trifle_a work_n spiritual_o sabbath_n observe_v spiritual_o which_o be_v repugnaunt_a to_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o same_o whereupon_o it_o be_v object_v to_o the_o jew_n that_o it_o be_v better_a for_o their_o woman_n to_o spin_v than_o to_o dance_v upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n but_o they_o be_v train_v uppe_o in_o those_o superstition_n and_o accustom_v in_o the_o same_o through_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr this_o superstitious_a admiration_n be_v plentiful_a in_o the_o papacye_n they_o marvel_v if_o a_o priest_n marry_v with_o a_o lawful_a wife_n but_o they_o marvel_v not_o if_o they_o live_v libidinous_o with_o everye_o harlot_n they_o marvel_v if_o so_o be_v upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n a_o man_n do_v any_o necessary_a and_o profitable_a work_n but_o they_o do_v not_o marvel_v if_o all_o fall_n to_o drink_v to_o gamn_v and_o to_o
acceptable_a unto_o god_n m._n here_o we_o see_v that_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v profit_v the_o simple_a sort_n to_o instruction_n but_o to_o the_o other_o it_o geve_v matter_n of_o contradiction_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o sign_n and_o miracle_n of_o our_o savioure_n christ_n be_v set_v before_o all_o man_n eye_n to_o be_v see_v by_o the_o sight_n and_o diligent_a consideration_n whereof_o the_o elect_v beléeve_v on_o he_o b._n but_o the_o reprobate_n can_v behold_v nothing_o in_o christ_n but_o base_a and_o contemptible_a thing_n whereat_o they_o be_v offend_v 32._o the_o pharisee_v be_v hear_v that_o the_o people_n murmur_v such_o thing_n concern_v he_o and_o the_o phariseis_n and_o high_a priest_n send_v servant_n to_o take_v he_o m._n the_o more_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n do_v declare_v itself_o to_o the_o people_n the_o more_o the_o malice_n the_o spite_n and_o fury_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr increase_v for_o the_o phariseis_n be_v appoint_v as_o scout_n to_o seek_v all_o occasion_n to_o suppress_v christ_n in_o the_o former_a place_n or_o room_n the_o evangelist_n name_v they_o alone_a after_o he_o join_v with_o they_o the_o high_a priest_n with_o who_o also_o they_o take_v part_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o as_o these_o phariseis_n be_v the_o most_o zealous_a observer_n of_o the_o law_n so_o be_v they_o the_o most_o zealous_a enemy_n of_o all_o other_o unto_o christ_n but_o because_o they_o be_v not_o able_a alone_a to_o oppress_v christ_n they_o refer_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o priesthood_n so_o that_o they_o which_o otherwise_o be_v enemy_n and_o at_o contention_n between_o themselves_o do_v now_o by_o the_o help_n of_o satan_n agree_v together_o and_o conspire_v among_o themselves_o against_o the_o son_n of_o god_n a._n even_o as_o we_o read_v of_o herode_fw-la and_o pilate_n when_o christ_n be_v bring_v before_o they_o to_o be_v judge_v 23.12_o luk._n 23.12_o for_o than_o they_o be_v make_v friend_n between_o who_o before_o there_o be_v hartburn_a and_o grudge_n bu_n and_o it_o great_o gréeve_v the_o high_a priest_n that_o the_o people_n neglect_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o phariseis_n and_o as_o it_o be_v despise_v those_o holy_a man_n follow_v christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n which_o be_v quite_o repugnaunt_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o phariseis_n therefore_o the_o wicked_a jew_n mynd_v to_o stay_v this_o rumore_fw-la concern_v christe_o suborn_v public_a soldier_n which_o may_v bring_v he_o bind_v m._n in_o the_o which_o we_o may_v note_n the_o nature_n of_o wicked_a hypocrite_n at_o the_o first_o when_o they_o seek_v to_o kill_v christ_n they_o pretend_v the_o break_n of_o the_o sabbath_n when_o as_o notwithstanding_o the_o break_n of_o the_o sabbath_n do_v not_o offend_v they_o but_o the_o obscure_n of_o their_o own_o name_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o hear_v this_o rumoure_n of_o the_o people_n concern_v christ_n they_o be_v in_o such_o a_o rage_n that_o they_o go_v about_o open_o to_o lay_v violent_a hand_n on_o he_o so_o impiety_n somwhile_o seek_v to_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n privy_o but_o when_o it_o have_v not_o success_n than_o it_o open_o burst_v forth_o so_o saul_n at_o the_o first_o lie_v privy_o in_o wait_n to_o destroy_v david_n iâ_n 1._o kin._n i8_n iâ_n but_o when_o his_o rage_n be_v more_o hot_a he_o begin_v with_o open_a war_n and_o persecution_n to_o seek_v his_o death_n thus_o also_o be_v hypocrite_n wont_v to_o behave_v themselves_o who_o in_o the_o church_n seek_v not_o christ_n but_o either_o the_o estimation_n of_o their_o own_o name_n either_o gain_n either_o kingdom_n or_o else_o the_o impunity_n of_o offence_n who_o at_o the_o first_o pretend_v the_o zeal_n of_o god_n but_o be_v so_o mad_a at_o the_o last_o that_o all_o man_n may_v see_v what_o it_o be_v they_o look_v for_o and_o what_o offend_v they_o c._n moreover_o if_o so_o be_v the_o phariseis_n be_v so_o whoat_n &_o so_o careful_o diligent_a to_o defend_v the_o corrupt_a state_n of_o the_o church_n howmuche_o more_o vehement_a aught_o we_o to_o be_v in_o defend_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o madness_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v no_o less_o at_o this_o day_n to_o extinguish_v the_o gospel_n m._n last_o of_o all_o it_o appear_v how_o prepostourous_a the_o judgement_n and_o how_o perverse_a the_o counsel_n of_o the_o reprobate_n be_v the_o multitude_n murmur_n and_o christ_n be_v command_v to_o be_v take_v why_o do_v they_o not_o rather_o instruct_v the_o murmur_a multitude_n in_o the_o truth_n or_o reprehend_v they_o but_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o world_n be_v void_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n after_o this_o manner_n the_o upper_a captain_n command_v paul_n to_o be_v carry_v up_o into_o the_o castle_n and_o bid_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v scourge_v and_o examine_v that_o he_o may_v know_v wherefore_o they_o cry_v so_o on_o he_o 22.24_o act_n 22.24_o whereas_o rather_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o those_o impudent_a dog_n which_o continual_o barck_v at_o the_o little_a flock_n of_o christ_n 33._o then_o say_v jesus_n unto_o they_o yet_o be_o i_o a_o little_a while_n with_o you_o and_o then_o go_v i_o unto_o he_o that_o send_v i_o bu_n when_o jesus_n know_v what_o they_o privilye_o go_v about_o he_o declare_v unto_o they_o in_o certain_a dark_a sentence_n boath_n that_o their_o conspiracy_n shall_v be_v vain_a and_o also_o that_o he_o will_v in_o a_o short_a time_n of_o his_o own_o free_a will_v offer_v up_o his_o body_n to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o so_o under_o a_o sertaine_a hide_a and_o dark_a speech_n he_o declare_v unto_o they_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o dispensation_n that_o he_o shall_v short_o dye_v after_o that_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o so_o to_o come_v from_o thence_o to_o judge_v his_o enemy_n c._n there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v these_o word_n to_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o asassemblye_o of_o people_n which_o be_v present_a and_o other_o some_o to_o the_o servant_n which_o be_v send_v to_o take_v christ_n but_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o christ_n proper_o speak_v to_o his_o enemy_n which_o seek_v his_o destruction_n for_o he_o deryde_v their_o practice_n because_o in_o vain_a they_o take_v they_o in_o hand_n until_o the_o time_n come_v which_o his_o father_n have_v decréeed_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v m._n i_o seem_v to_o you_o to_o be_v intolerable_a and_o therefore_o you_o seek_v with_o all_o your_o might_n and_o main_n to_o destroy_v i_o be_v quiet_a a_o while_n for_o i_o mean_v not_o to_o be_v with_o you_o very_o long_o r._n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v be_v careful_a so_o take_v away_o my_o life_n lest_o i_o shall_v escape_v your_o hand_n for_o see_v i_o be_o so_o welcome_a unto_o you_o as_o smoke_n to_o your_o eye_n and_o thorn_n to_o your_o foot_n i_o mean_v not_o to_o trouble_v you_o with_o my_o presence_n any_o long_a time_n m._n only_o a_o little_a while_o i_o will_v be_v troublesome_a unto_o you_o r._n for_o i_o will_v go_v unto_o he_o that_o send_v i_o bu_n i_o will_v not_o flee_v from_o you_o but_o will_v willing_o offer_v myself_o to_o the_o death_n when_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v that_o by_o the_o cross_n and_o death_n i_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n and_o shall_v possess_v the_o kingdom_n over_o all_o creature_n by_o these_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o neither_o his_o life_n nor_o his_o death_n be_v at_o their_o will_n but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o time_n appoint_v to_o he_o of_o his_o father_n âi_fw-la luk._n 13.3_o âi_fw-la which_o must_v needs_o be_v fulfil_v a._n even_o as_o he_o make_v answer_v to_o certain_a in_o another_o place_n go_v you_o and_o tell_v that_o fox_n behold_v i_o cast_v out_o deville_n and_o heal_v the_o people_n to_o day_n and_o to_o morrow_n and_o the_o third_o day_n i_o shall_v be_v perfect_v i_o go_v unto_o he_o that_o send_v i_o c._n by_o these_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o death_n can_v destroy_v he_o but_o rather_o that_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v put_v of_o his_o mortal_a body_n he_o will_v declare_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o glorious_a triumph_n of_o his_o resurrection_n moreover_o hereupon_o be_v to_o be_v gather_v a_o general_a admonition_fw-la for_o christ_n be_v present_o with_o we_o so_o often_o as_o he_o call_v we_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n 2.17_o ephe._n 2.17_o for_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a call_v the_o dissension_n of_o christ_n unto_o us._n if_o so_o be_v we_o will_v take_v
other_o but_o also_o go_v about_o to_o destroy_v the_o good_a seed_n that_o be_v conceyve_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o good_a m._n here_o we_o see_v how_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v straight_o way_n subject_a to_o the_o confession_n of_o such_o as_o err_v the_o sincerer_n sort_n say_v this_o be_v christ_n these_o by_o and_o by_o gainsaye_v they_o not_o simp_o say_v he_o be_v not_o christ_n but_o go_v subtillye_o about_o to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v not_o christ_n neither_o can_v be_v this_o confession_n therefore_o of_o christian_a faith_n be_v no_o soon_o utter_v but_o it_o be_v withstand_v and_o gainesayde_v this_o lot_n belong_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o truth_n for_o ever_o against_o the_o which_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o confirm_v and_o fortifye_v our_o conscience_n c._n but_o least_o these_o wicked_a man_n may_v seem_v rashlye_a to_o reject_v christ_n they_o arm_v themselves_o with_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n which_o although_o they_o wrest_v amiss_o against_o christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o have_v some_o show_n of_o truth_n in_o this_o only_o they_o be_v deceyve_v that_o they_o make_v christ_n to_o be_v of_o galilee_n but_o whereupon_o come_v this_o ignorance_n but_o of_o contempt_n for_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v grevous_a to_o they_o to_o enquyre_v christ_n have_v appear_v unto_o they_o glorious_a under_o boath_n title_n be_v bear_v in_o bethleem_n and_o the_o son_n of_o david_n but_o such_o be_v our_o nature_n in_o trifle_a matter_n we_o be_v ashamed_a to_o be_v ignorant_a but_o as_o for_o heavenlye_a matter_n we_o make_v no_o account_n of_o they_o b._n this_o scruple_n also_o offend_v nathanaell_n but_o because_o he_o seek_v the_o truth_n he_o go_v nevertheless_o to_o the_o lord_n without_o the_o sight_n of_o any_o sign_n to_o hear_v what_o he_o teach_v or_o promise_v but_o these_o man_n have_v see_v so_o many_o sign_n and_o have_v hear_v so_o many_o sermon_n plain_o preach_v by_o which_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o god_n without_o all_o doubt_n they_o will_v have_v be_v so_o addict_v to_o he_o that_o they_o will_v never_o have_v think_v of_o the_o place_n of_o his_o birth_n or_o or_o have_v ask_v the_o lord_n concern_v the_o same_o but_o they_o do_v only_o ask_v to_o withstand_v the_o truth_n and_o not_o to_o learn_v therefore_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n they_o know_v not_o where_o the_o lord_n be_v bear_v which_o be_v to_o they_o a_o occasion_n of_o offence_n behold_v how_o man_n of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o which_o lead_v we_o by_o the_o hand_n to_o christ_n make_v a_o let_v and_o stay_v that_o they_o come_v not_o unto_o he_o m._n it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n therefore_o that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o truth_n at_o this_o day_n do_v falselye_o bring_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o be_v the_o old_a subtiltye_n of_o satan_n to_o bring_v that_o to_o a_o contrary_a sense_n application_n knowledge_n of_o scripture_n not_o sufficient_a without_o application_n which_o be_v give_v of_o god_n to_o testify_v of_o the_o truth_n but_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o understand_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n in_o themselves_o except_o also_o we_o know_v very_o well_o whereunto_o they_o be_v apply_v 42._o say_v not_o the_o scripture_n that_o christ_n shall_v come_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n and_o out_o of_o the_o town_n of_o bethlehem_n where_o david_n be_v 43._o so_o be_v there_o dissension_n among_o the_o people_n because_o of_o he_o 44._o and_o some_o of_o they_o will_v have_v take_v he_o but_o no_o man_n lay_v hand_n on_o he_o c._n by_o this_o example_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o seem_v wonderful_a unto_o we_o at_o this_o day_n if_o so_o be_v man_n be_v divide_v among_o themselves_o by_o contention_n we_o see_v that_o there_o rise_v a_o schism_n by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o not_o among_o the_o gentile_n which_o be_v alienate_v from_o the_o faith_n but_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v therefore_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v blame_v as_o the_o author_n of_o trouble_n bu_n shall_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o author_n of_o dissension_n and_o sedition_n they_o rather_o be_v to_o he_o count_v the_o author_n of_o strife_n who_o be_v rebel_n to_o god_n and_o disobedient_a to_o the_o truth_n do_v proceed_v to_o defend_v their_o lie_n imagination_n and_o error_n against_o the_o manifest_a and_o know_a truth_n c._n yea_o howsoever_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v trouble_v so_o precious_a be_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n people_n contention_n among_o god_n people_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o at_o the_o least_o it_o may_v be_v receive_v of_o a_o few_o theris_z no_o cause_n therefore_o why_o our_o conscience_n shall_v be_v trouble_v when_o we_o see_v that_o they_o which_o will_v be_v count_v the_o people_n of_o god_n do_v diverslye_o contend_v among_o themselves_o we_o know_v what_o christ_n himself_o have_v foreshow_v 10.35_o mat._n 10.35_o name_o that_o he_o come_v to_o bring_v into_o the_o world_n fire_n sword_n division_n and_o separation_n c._n howbeit_o we_o must_v note_n that_o dissension_n have_v not_o proper_o their_o beginning_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o firm_a agreement_n but_o in_o the_o certain_a truth_n whereas_o therefore_o they_o have_v peace_n among_o themselves_o which_o be_v ignorant_a of_o god_n that_o come_v rather_o of_o dulness_n and_o scencelesnesse_n in_o understanding_n then_o by_o true_a consent_n to_o be_v short_a what_o contention_n soever_o do_v arise_v when_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v the_o first_o cause_n and_o original_n of_o they_o be_v in_o man_n but_o then_o as_o awake_v out_o of_o a_o dream_n they_o begin_v to_o move_v &_o stir_v r._n for_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o peace_n 9.5_o esay_n 9.5_o can_v be_v the_o author_n of_o dissension_n but_o man_n be_v impatient_a at_o the_o preach_v thereof_o be_v trouble_v by_o their_o own_o infidelitye_n a._n wherefore_o the_o whole_a blame_n of_o dissension_n be_v to_o be_v lay_v neither_o upon_o christ_n nor_o upon_o his_o doctrine_n but_o upon_o the_o deprave_a and_o corrupt_a nature_n of_o man_n 44._o and_o some_o of_o they_o will_v have_v take_v he_o but_o no_o man_n lay_v hand_n on_o he_o c._n by_o these_o word_n the_o evangelist_n declare_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o contemn_v of_o they_o but_o also_o cruel_o assault_v as_o superstition_n be_v always_o cruel_a also_o we_o see_v that_o the_o will_n and_o devise_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v bring_v to_o naught_o except_o the_o will_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v join_v therewith_o for_o we_o must_v ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n that_o their_o practice_n be_v make_v void_a for_o because_o christ_n hour_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v as_o it_o be_v say_v before_o by_o the_o power_n and_o might_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n he_o overcome_v all_o peril_n a._n read_v the_o thirty_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n go_v before_o 45._o then_o come_v the_o servant_n to_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharisy_n and_o they_o say_v unto_o they_o why_o have_v you_o not_o bring_v he_o bu_n now_o john_n return_v to_o that_o which_o he_o begin_v a_o little_a before_o to_o speak_v concern_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n add_v what_o be_v do_v to_o the_o soldier_n who_o they_o have_v send_v forth_o to_o take_v jesus_n m._n no_o doubt_v there_o be_v a_o counsel_n call_v and_o gather_v together_o and_o this_o return_n of_o the_o soldier_n be_v gréedelye_o look_v for_o for_o like_o raven_a wolf_n they_o gape_v for_o the_o lord_n death_n par._n hope_v to_o satisfy_v their_o ravenous_a desire_n and_o cruel_a hatred_n with_o the_o innocent_a blood_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o soldier_n bring_v not_o christ_n and_o they_o say_v unto_o they_o m._n they_o do_v not_o tarry_v to_o hear_v what_o the_o soldier_n will_v say_v but_o because_o they_o see_v they_o to_o return_v empty_a hand_v and_o with_o lose_a labour_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o abide_v and_o refrain_v any_o long_o but_o burst_v forth_o and_o be_v disappoint_v of_o their_o hope_n they_o reason_v the_o matter_n with_o they_o why_o they_o bring_v not_o he_o bind_v who_o they_o command_v to_o be_v bring_v say_v why_o have_v you_o not_o bring_v he_o m._n by_o these_o word_n they_o declare_v that_o they_o look_v for_o nothing_o less_o than_o their_o void_a return_n and_o therefore_o do_v marvel_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o bring_v he_o not_o c._n here_o we_o may_v behold_v how_o blind_a the_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v they_o have_v in_o
c._n now_o follow_v the_o end_n and_o issue_n of_o all_o this_o platform_n if_o any_o man_n consider_v with_o himself_o what_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o priesthood_n be_v at_o that_o time_n how_o great_a their_o madness_n and_o also_o how_o great_a their_o preparation_n and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n how_o naked_a bare_a unprovided_a and_o destitude_v of_o all_o man_n help_n christ_n be_v there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v see_v but_o destruction_n m._n the_o pharise_n and_o high_a priest_n conspire_v tegether_o consult_v give_v commandment_n send_v forth_o soldier_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o do_v not_o only_o bring_v nothing_o to_o pass_v but_o also_o return_v home_n more_o trouble_v then_o before_o c._n therefore_o in_o that_o so_o strong_a a_o conspiracy_n of_o itself_o come_v to_o nothing_o and_o all_o they_o as_o wave_n of_o the_o sea_n break_v themselves_o with_o their_o own_o violence_n and_o force_n who_o see_v not_o that_o they_o be_v scatter_v by_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n bu_n for_o there_o be_v no_o counsel_n against_o the_o lord_n 2d_o pro._n 2d_o m._n and_o this_o be_v a_o lyvely_a image_n of_o those_o counsel_n and_o assemble_v which_o be_v not_o gather_v together_o in_o the_o lord_n 4â_n esa_n 4â_n a._n for_o only_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v stand_v and_o his_o will_n shall_v be_v do_v c._n for_o the_o lord_n be_v never_o change_v but_o be_v always_o like_o himself_o so_o that_o so_o often_o as_o he_o will_v he_o shall_v frustrate_v the_o devise_n of_o his_o enemy_n who_o although_o they_o have_v all_o thing_n at_o hand_n &_o be_v ready_a to_o bring_v their_o purpose_n to_o pass_v yet_o notwithstanding_o shall_v depart_v with_o loss_n of_o their_o labour_n and_o we_o have_v often_o time_n see_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o enemy_n have_v practise_v to_o destroy_v the_o gospel_n have_v be_v by_o the_o wonderful_a grace_n of_o god_n by_o and_o by_o make_v frustrate_a and_o void_a m._n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n more_o famous_a and_o manifest_a to_o all_o man_n â§_o the_o eight_o chapter_n 1._o jesus_n go_v unto_o mount_n olivet_n r_o this_o history_n concern_v the_o adulterous_a woman_n contain_v between_o this_o and_o the_o twelve_o verse_n c._n be_v not_o know_v to_o the_o greek_n wheruppon_o many_o think_v that_o it_o be_v borrow_v from_o some_o other_o place_n and_o here_o insert_v but_o because_o it_o have_v be_v always_o receive_v of_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o be_v find_v in_o the_o most_o ancient_a book_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o contain_v nothing_o unworthy_a of_o the_o apostolical_a spirit_n b._n the_o same_o also_o may_v be_v read_v with_o great_a fruit_n r._n eusebius_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n in_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o his_o third_o book_n say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v wrighten_a after_o the_o hebrews_n but_o whatsoever_o he_o be_v that_o wright_n this_o story_n it_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v keep_v from_o perishinge_v for_o it_o teach_v very_o notable_o that_o all_o man_n how_o righteous_a so_o ever_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v in_o outward_a show_n be_v equalye_o and_o as_o much_o before_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n ungodly_a and_o subject_a to_o sin_n as_o the_o manifest_a wicked_a unto_o mount_n olivet_n b._n the_o lord_n be_v in_o jerusalem_n often_o time_n go_v aside_o into_o this_o mountain_n to_o pray_v and_o that_o most_o common_o in_o the_o night_n for_o in_o the_o day_n time_n he_o teach_v in_o the_o temple_n preach_v unto_o the_o people_n the_o grace_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n 21.37_o luk._n 21.37_o for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n that_o become_v he_o better_o or_o be_v more_o profitable_a for_o man_n see_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o he_o be_v everlasting_a life_n 17.3_o john_n 17.3_o concern_v prayer_n and_o his_o go_v aside_o to_o pray_v read_v the_o sixst_a verse_n of_o the_o sixst_a chapter_n of_o mathewe_n 2._o and_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n he_o come_v again_o into_o the_o temple_n and_o all_o the_o people_n come_v to_o he_o and_o he_o sit_v down_o and_o teach_v they_o and_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n m._n the_o evangelist_n here_o commend_v unto_o we_o boath_n the_o diligence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o the_o people_n he_o say_v not_o simple_o he_o come_v again_o into_o the_o temple_n but_o he_o say_v early_o in_o the_o morning_n he_o come_v again_o into_o the_o temple_n and_o he_o noat_v the_o diligence_n of_o the_o people_n when_o he_o say_v and_o all_o the_o people_n come_v to_o he_o the_o evangelist_n luke_n more_o plain_o say_v and_o all_o the_o people_n come_v to_o he_o into_o the_o temple_n 21.38_o luk._n 21.38_o to_o hear_v he_o bu_n therefore_o let_v slothful_a and_o idle_a man_n be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o negligence_n to_o who_o it_o be_v sweet_a and_o plesaunt_n to_o sleep_v in_o the_o manifest_a daylight_n and_o do_v seldom_o or_o never_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n or_o congregation_n of_o the_o godly_a let_v boath_n the_o teacher_n and_o the_o disciple_n learn_v that_o the_o morning_n tide_n be_v the_o most_o apt_a and_o convenient_a time_n to_o atchive_v great_a matter_n and_o to_o labour_n in_o divine_a and_o holy_a thing_n m._n the_o popish_a canon_n and_o monk_n do_v rush_v early_o into_o their_o temple_n but_o not_o with_o that_o mind_n &_o to_o that_o end_n that_o christ_n do_v christ_n go_v to_o see_v those_o sheep_n which_o he_o have_v begin_v to_o feed_v early_o in_o the_o morning_n but_o what_o these_o man_n seek_v in_o their_o temple_n the_o whole_a world_n know_v and_o he_o sit_v down_o and_o teach_v they_o bu_n he_o show_v that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o a_o more_o excellent_a treasure_n than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ministry_n or_o service_n in_o the_o church_n more_o acceptable_a than_o teach_v god_n teach_v most_o acceptable_a seruic_fw-la to_o god_n in_o that_o christ_n teach_v syt_v the_o majesty_n of_o his_o doctrine_n be_v express_v howbeit_o we_o read_v not_o that_o he_o always_o teach_v sit_v as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n go_v before_o the_o seven_o and_o thirty_o verse_n a._n but_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n whether_o he_o that_o teach_v sit_v or_o stand_v so_o that_o he_o boulde_o preach_v unto_o the_o people_n of_o god_n wholesome_a doctrine_n 3._o and_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n bring_v unto_o he_o a_o woman_n take_v in_o adultery_n and_o when_o they_o have_v set_v she_o in_o the_o midst_n c._n the_o evangelist_n mean_v that_o this_o matter_n be_v devise_v among_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n of_o set_n purpose_n to_o entrap_v and_o snare_v our_o saviour_n christ_n b_o they_o see_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v wonderful_a pitiful_a &_o gentle_a towards_o sinner_n and_o therefore_o they_o hope_v that_o he_o will_v set_v this_o adulterouse_a woman_n at_o lybertye_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o so_o to_o geve_v unto_o they_o occasion_n to_o be_v revenge_v on_o he_o as_o a_o breaker_n of_o god_n law_n c._n he_o mean_v the_o pharisées_fw-fr because_o they_o be_v principal_a in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o scribe_n m_o but_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o bring_v the_o adulterouse_a woman_n alone_a and_o not_o the_o adulterer_n 22.22_o leni_fw-la 20.10_o deut._n 22.22_o see_v the_o law_n be_v make_v as_o well_o for_o adulterouse_a man_n as_o for_o adulterous_a woman_n that_o boath_n may_v be_v put_v to_o death_n it_o be_v not_o sertaine_a whether_o they_o take_v the_o man_n with_o the_o woman_n or_o no_o and_o if_o they_o do_v take_v they_o boath_n together_o why_o do_v they_o not_o aswell_o bring_v he_o as_o she_o but_o only_o because_o they_o bring_v the_o woman_n alone_a to_o the_o lord_n for_o some_o evell_a purpose_n but_o if_o we_o behold_v the_o corruption_n of_o this_o present_a age_n we_o shall_v find_v it_o most_o evident_a that_o at_o this_o day_n whoremongar_n and_o adulterouse_a man_n escape_v free_a for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o the_o woman_n only_o be_v punish_v special_o if_o the_o man_n be_v of_o any_o countenance_n substance_n or_o great_a parentage_n so_o that_o the_o weak_a vessel_n be_v ponish_v and_o the_o strongar_n go_v free_a law_n adultery_n ponish_v with_o death_n in_o the_o old_a law_n this_o inequality_n the_o law_n of_o god_n do_v not_o approve_v which_o appoint_v as_o well_o the_o man_n as_o the_o woman_n take_v in_o adultery_n to_o be_v punish_v by_o death_n 4._o they_o say_v unto_o he_o master_n this_o woman_n be_v take_v in_o adultery_n even_o as_o the_o deed_n be_v do_v b._n they_o salute_v he_o by_o the_o name_n of_o master_n but_o with_o the_o same_o affection_n &_o mind_n that_o they_o have_v 22.16_o mat._n 22.16_o when_o they_o demand_v of_o he_o the_o question_n concern_v tribute_n
that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o call_v he_o master_n who_o disciple_n they_o will_v not_o be_v this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o ypocrit_n to_o carry_v a_o show_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o they_o a._n but_o not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 7.21_o mat._n 7.21_o but_o he_o which_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 5_o moses_n in_o the_o law_n command_v we_o that_o such_o shall_v be_v stone_v but_o what_o say_v thou_o m._n the_o phariseis_n know_v the_o law_n and_o also_o how_o to_o cite_v the_o same_o in_o another_o body_n cause_n and_o when_o they_o see_v it_o serve_v for_o their_o purpose_n they_o know_v also_o what_o ponishement_n the_o law_n lay_v upon_o sinner_n when_o other_o man_n sin_n come_v into_o judgement_n but_o when_o they_o themselves_o offend_v against_o the_o law_n than_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v make_v of_o the_o same_o but_o the_o law_n do_v not_o only_o command_v this_o that_o the_o haynouse_a offender_n shall_v be_v ponish_v neither_o be_v the_o law_n only_o make_v to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v know_v when_o other_o man_n sin_n and_o when_o they_o be_v to_o be_v condemn_v but_o it_o do_v also_o command_v that_o no_o man_n oppress_v the_o innocent_a and_o as_o nicodemus_n say_v that_o no_o man_n be_v judge_v before_o his_o cause_n be_v hear_v and_o furthermore_o it_o be_v give_v to_o this_o end_n that_o every_o man_n may_v behold_v in_o the_o same_o as_o in_o a_o glass_n the_o deformity_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o corruption_n of_o man_n nature_n but_o ypocrite_n which_o desire_n only_o to_o judge_n otherman_n be_v blind_a in_o their_o own_o sin_n but_o more_o quick_a of_o sight_n than_o lynceus_n in_o behold_v other_o man_n falte_n write_v lynceus_n a_o man_n who_o can_v see_v ship_n on_o the_o sea_n 130._o mile_n from_o he_o &_o can_v number_n they_o &_o also_o can_v see_v through_o a_o stone_n wall_n as_o soon_o write_v c._n furthermore_o their_o dishonesty_n be_v so_o great_a in_o seek_v occasion_n to_o cavil_n the_o which_o also_o they_o bewray_v with_o their_o own_o mouth_n for_o they_o say_v that_o they_o have_v a_o manyfeste_a commandment_n in_o the_o law_n whereupon_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o they_o deal_v malicious_o in_o seek_v and_o demand_v of_o the_o same_o as_o of_o a_o doubtful_a matter_n but_o their_o purpose_n be_v to_o constrain_v christ_n to_o forsake_v his_o office_n of_o preach_v that_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o man_n waver_v and_o inconstant_a r._n they_o cyte_v the_o law_n out_o of_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n of_o levitticus_n where_o it_o be_v say_v and_o the_o man_n that_o commit_v adultery_n with_o another_o man_n wife_n because_o he_o have_v commit_v adultery_n with_o his_o neighbour_n wife_n i0_n levi._n 20_o i0_n the_o adulterer_n and_o the_o adulteress_n shall_v boath_n die_v the_o death_n but_o the_o law_n do_v not_o therefore_o punish_v the_o sin_n and_o offence_n of_o man_n as_o though_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o sword_n be_v a_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n sin_n punishment_n of_o the_o law_n do_v not_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n for_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n only_o have_v make_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n but_o offender_n be_v punish_v by_o the_o sword_n for_o example_n sake_n that_o the_o people_n may_v fear_v to_o offend_v and_o least_o in_o time_n sin_n and_o wickedness_n may_v be_v count_v for_o virtue_n and_o righteousness_n for_o the_o sin_n that_o be_v leave_v unpunished_a be_v not_o know_v to_o be_v sin_n if_o any_o man_n object_n the_o deed_n of_o phinees_n the_o which_o be_v commend_v to_o come_v as_o it_o be_v from_o a_o devyne_a zeal_n sin_n sin_n unpunished_a be_v not_o know_v for_o sin_n and_o be_v say_v to_o turn_v away_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n from_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o deed_n of_o phinees_n be_v not_o a_o satisfactorious_a punishment_n of_o sin_n 25._o num._n 25._o for_o no_o punishment_n save_v the_o only_a punishment_n of_o christ_n jesus_n have_v satisfy_v for_o sin_n but_o by_o this_o cruel_a stab_a as_o it_o may_v seem_v of_o phinees_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o israelite_n be_v make_v afeard_a to_o commit_v whoredom_n with_o the_o daughter_n of_o moab_n and_o idolatry_n with_o baal_n peor_n that_o know_v their_o impiety_n they_o may_v repent_v by_o which_o repentance_n the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v pacefy_v wherefore_o phinehe_n be_v say_v by_o his_o fact_n to_o have_v appease_v the_o lord_n wrath_n not_o that_o any_o death_n be_v so_o cruel_a which_o may_v satisfy_v for_o sin_n but_o because_o hereby_o the_o people_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o right_a way_n and_o to_o repentance_n sin_n magistrate_n appese_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n by_o ponish_a sin_n by_o which_o the_o lord_n be_v please_v if_o so_o be_v it_o proceed_v from_o faith_n so_o every_o faithful_a magistrate_n by_o punish_v with_o the_o sword_n horryble_a offence_n and_o by_o their_o punishment_n draw_v the_o wicked_a people_n to_o repentanc_fw-la be_v say_v to_o appease_v the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o take_v away_o sin_n 6._o this_o they_o say_v to_o tempt_v he_o that_o they_o may_v accuse_v he_o but_o jesus_n stoop_v down_o and_o with_o his_o finger_n he_o write_v on_o the_o ground_n this_o they_o say_v to_o tempt_v m._n the_o euaungeliste_n now_o express_v with_o what_o mind_n the_o scribe_n and_o phariseis_n bring_v the_o adulterouse_a woman_n unto_o christ_n namely_o not_o to_o admonish_v he_o or_o to_o make_v he_o circomspecte_v but_o to_o tempt_v to_o accuse_v and_o to_o destroy_v he_o all_o temptation_n or_o trial_n be_v not_o evell_a for_o god_n tempt_v his_o servant_n one_o friend_n be_v tempt_v of_o another_o the_o child_n be_v try_v by_o the_o father_n evell_a temptation_n generaly_a be_v not_o evell_a the_o wife_n by_o her_o husband_n the_o servant_n by_o his_o master_n not_o that_o they_o may_v be_v hurt_v by_o trial_n but_o rather_o that_o they_o may_v thereby_o be_v profit_v the_o devil_n also_o tempt_v 35._o mat_n 4.3_o i_o thes_n 35._o whereupon_o also_o he_o be_v call_v a_o temptor_n in_o the_o scripture_n m._n also_o enemy_n use_v to_o tempt_v not_o to_o profit_v thereby_o but_o to_o hurt_v and_o to_o destroy_v this_o kind_n of_o temptation_n be_v wicked_a and_o plain_a develishe_a therefore_o the_o lord_n have_v exhort_v we_o to_o beware_v of_o those_o which_o tempt_v with_o a_o evell_a mind_n when_o as_o he_o will_v we_o not_o only_o to_o be_v innocent_a as_o dove_n but_o also_o wise_a as_o serpent_n i6_n mat._n 20_o i6_n r._n therefore_o because_o christ_n preach_v himself_o to_o be_v gentle_a and_o lowly_a in_o hart_n 7.48.50_o mat_n xi_o 26._o mat._n 9.5_o lu._n 7.48.50_o and_o because_o also_o they_o have_v hear_v he_o say_v so_o often_o time_n go_v thy_o way_n thy_o faith_n have_v save_v thou_o on_o the_o one_o side_n they_o set_v before_o he_o this_o sinful_a woman_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o law_n c._n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v catch_v christ_n in_o a_o trip_n by_o the_o providence_n of_o the_o law_n for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v to_o absolute_a any_o who_o the_o law_n condemn_v if_o he_o shall_v subscribe_v to_o the_o law_n he_o may_v seem_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o r._n and_o so_o they_o have_v take_v occasion_n to_o discredit_n he_o with_o the_o people_n and_o to_o convince_v he_o of_o a_o lie_n as_o one_o which_o preach_v many_o thing_n concern_v remission_n of_o sin_n which_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v not_o perform_v but_o jesus_n stoop_v down_o par._n jesus_n who_o by_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n know_v the_o secret_a thought_n of_o the_o heart_n so_o delude_v the_o malice_n and_o subtlety_n of_o his_o adversary_n that_o he_o deliver_v the_o sinful_a woman_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o those_o that_o go_v about_o to_o stone_n she_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o do_v not_o discharge_v she_o of_o punishment_n lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o offend_v against_o moses_n and_o the_o politic_a law_n and_o again_o that_o he_o may_v not_o condemn_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o come_n into_o this_o world_n which_o be_v to_o save_v sinner_n m._n what_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n wroate_n because_o the_o evaungelist_n himself_o do_v not_o show_v as_o we_o can_v define_v so_o we_o may_v not_o to_o curious_o search_v after_o the_o same_o bu_n it_o seem_v to_o some_o that_o he_o wroate_fw-mi these_o word_n upon_o the_o ground_n you_o be_v earth_n and_o you_o judge_v of_o the_o earth_n m._n othersome_a think_v that_o he_o wroate_fw-mi the_o very_a same_o which_o he_o answer_v afterwerde_n in_o word_n many_o think_v that_o he_o wroate_fw-mi some_o more_o
in_o it_o except_o it_o receyve_v the_o same_o from_o christ_n otherwise_o it_o be_v but_o vain_a and_o superfluous_a to_o geve_v light_n unto_o light_n c._n therefore_o without_o christ_n there_o be_v not_o one_o spark_n of_o true_a light_n there_o may_v appear_v some_o show_n of_o bryghtnesse_n but_o it_o be_v like_a to_o a_o sudden_a flash_n which_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o dazzle_v the_o eye_n bu_n moreover_o the_o lord_n promise_v in_o the_o scripture_n long_o before_o that_o he_o will_v geve_v this_o light_n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o lord_n have_v swear_v in_o truth_n to_o david_n and_o he_o will_v not_o shrink_v from_o it_o say_v 132.11_o psa_fw-la 132.11_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o body_n will_v i_o set_v upon_o thy_o throne_n if_o they_o son_n keep_v my_o covenaunt_n and_o my_o testimony_n that_o i_o shall_v teach_v they_o there_o son_n also_o shall_v sytte_n upon_o thy_o throne_n for_o ever_o for_o the_o lord_n have_v choose_v zion_n and_o love_v to_o dwell_v in_o it_o say_v this_o be_v my_o rest_n for_o ever_o here_o will_v i_o dwell_v for_o i_o have_v a_o delight_n therein_o there_o will_v i_o make_v the_o horn_n of_o david_n to_o bud_n for_o i_o have_v ordain_v a_o light_n for_o my_o anoint_a to_o this_o promise_n the_o prophet_n have_v oftentimes_o respect_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o dyverse_a place_n as_o in_o esay_n where_o the_o father_n say_v i_o have_v give_v thou_o to_o be_v light_n to_o the_o gentiles_n 49.6_o 3._o kin._n 11.36_o 3._o kin._n 15.4_o 2._o cor._n 21.7_o esay_n 49.6_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v my_o salvation_n to_o the_o world_n end_n whereunto_o that_o just_a man_n simeon_n afterward_o allude_v say_v that_o jesus_n be_v give_v to_o be_v a_o light_n to_o the_o gentiles_n 2.32_o luk._n 2.32_o c._n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_n that_o the_o part_n of_o illumening_n be_v not_o restrain_v to_o the_o parson_n of_o christ_n for_o although_o he_o be_v far_o from_o our_o bodily_a sight_n yet_o notwithstad_v he_o do_v daily_o illumen_fw-la we_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o by_o the_o secret_a power_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n notwithstanding_o we_o have_v not_o yet_o a_o full_a definition_n of_o this_o light_n except_o we_o learn_v that_o we_o be_v illumine_v by_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o in_o he_o be_v hide_v the_o well_o of_o all_o knowledge_n and_o wisdom_n therefore_o as_o satan_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n darkness_n satan_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n because_o the_o work_n that_o he_o work_v in_o the_o child_n of_o unbeléefe_n be_v evell_a and_o corrupt_a insomuche_o that_o by_o they_o the_o wicked_a fall_n headlong_o as_o it_o be_v blind_v into_o destruction_n so_o christ_n jesus_n be_v set_v before_o we_o as_o the_o true_a son_n of_o righteousenesse_n that_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o light_n we_o may_v be_v illumine_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o darkness_n of_o this_o world_n and_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o eternal_a life_n a._n and_o by_o what_o reason_n the_o name_n of_o light_n may_v agree_v with_o the_o law_n with_o the_o apostell_v also_o and_o with_o the_o faithful_a we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o eight_o verse_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n he_o that_o follow_v i_o c._n here_o be_v the_o exhortation_n of_o doctrine_n which_o the_o promise_n straight_o after_o add_v confirm_v for_o when_o we_o hear_v that_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o danger_n of_o err_v which_o commit_v themselves_o unto_o christ_n to_o be_v govern_v it_o be_v meet_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o follow_v whereunto_o he_o himself_o draw_v we_o as_o it_o be_v by_o reach_v out_o his_o hand_n unto_o us._n this_o large_a and_o great_a promise_n also_o ought_v very_o much_o to_o move_v we_o that_o we_o which_o direct_v our_o eye_n unto_o christ_n be_v sure_a to_o walk_v in_o the_o right_a way_n without_o err_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o darkness_n m._n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n that_o we_o may_v not_o walk_v in_o darkness_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o follow_v he_o they_z which_o turn_v themselves_o another_o way_n and_o which_o follow_v not_o this_o light_n but_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o same_o as_o they_o be_v not_o illumine_v by_o the_o beam_n thereof_o so_o necessary_o they_o walk_v in_o darkness_n neither_o be_v it_o sufficient_a to_o know_v the_o same_o that_o darkness_n may_v be_v shun_v but_o we_o must_v also_o walk_v in_o it_o for_o he_o say_v not_o he_o which_o know_v i_o walk_v not_o in_o darkness_n but_o which_o follow_v i_o he_o do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o walk_n in_o the_o light_n which_o know_v the_o light_n he_o do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o follow_v christ_n the_o light_n of_o truth_n which_o have_v receyve_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n r._n to_o follow_v christ_n in_o this_o place_n be_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n bu_n for_o by_o faith_n that_o light_n be_v receyve_v and_o christ_n be_v make_v our_o light_n shine_v in_o our_o heart_n some_o in_o this_o world_n follow_v one_o thing_n and_o some_o a_o neither_o as_o honour_n riches_n pleasure_n and_o i_o can_v tell_v how_o many_o such_o kind_n of_o vanity_n but_o those_o which_o be_v wise_a follow_v christ_n by_o who_o they_o receyve_v great_a profit_n for_o they_o which_o follow_v he_o shall_v not_o walk_v in_o darkness_n shall_v not_o wallow_v in_o wickedness_n which_o be_v call_v the_o work_n of_o darkness_n but_o shall_v have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n 4â_n john_n 6_o 4â_n r._n for_o he_o which_o beléeve_v in_o i_o say_v our_o saviour_n have_v everlasting_a life_n c._n therefore_o the_o faithful_a shall_v walk_v most_o constantlye_o until_o they_o come_v to_o the_o mark_n for_o this_o to_o they_o be_v a_o everlasting_a life_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v fear_v to_o faint_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o our_o journey_n see_v that_o he_o lead_v we_o unto_o life_n and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o there_o be_v such_o gross_a and_o palpable_a darkness_n of_o error_n and_o suspicion_n in_o the_o world_n when_o as_o there_o be_v so_o few_o which_o behold_v christ_n b._n for_o he_o which_o beléeve_v not_o in_o christ_n nor_o follow_v this_o light_n as_o he_o want_v this_o his_o spirit_n so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o walk_v in_o darkness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o follow_v carnal_a reason_n the_o bond_n servant_n of_o evil_a desire_n whereby_o he_o follow_v always_o that_o which_o be_v hurtful_a for_o what_o hurtful_a thing_n be_v it_o which_o he_o follow_v not_o god_n set_v aside_o 13._o the_o pharisee_n therefore_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o beareste_v record_n of_o thyself_o thy_o record_n be_v not_o true_a par._n the_o phariseis_n be_v swallow_v up_o of_o the_o manifest_a light_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o blind_v therewith_o neither_o feel_v nor_o see_v the_o light_n nay_o they_o renew_v the_o contention_n and_o begin_v anew_o altercation_n against_o christ_n by_o which_o notwithstanding_o the_o doctrine_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v rather_o more_o manifest_v than_o obscure_v these_o man_n fear_v jest_n the_o people_n forsake_v they_o will_v have_v follow_v jesus_n by_o which_o they_o know_v that_o their_o auchoritye_n shall_v not_o a_o little_a decay_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o can_v not_o hitherto_o by_o any_o reason_n refel_v and_o confute_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o mighty_a and_o wonderful_a deed_n they_o fall_v therefore_o now_o again_o to_o their_o wont_a caville_n to_o prove_v if_o peradventure_o they_o may_v bring_v the_o rude_a and_o simple_a people_n to_o have_v jesus_n in_o suspicion_n of_o arrogancye_n and_o vain_a boast_n c._n they_o object_v a_o common_a say_n that_o no_o man_n be_v to_o be_v trust_v in_o his_o own_o cause_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v r._n thou_o commend_v thyself_o but_o that_o commendation_n or_o testimony_n which_o a_o man_n geve_v of_o himself_o be_v of_o no_o authority_n or_o credit_n it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o arrogant_a man_n and_o not_o of_o one_o that_o speak_v the_o truth_n to_o boast_v and_o commend_v himself_o we_o believe_v not_o thy_o own_o testimony_n but_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o thou_o be_v the_o very_a same_o who_o thou_o preach_v thyself_o to_o be_v and_o we_o will_v believe_v thou_o doeste_n thou_o think_v we_o to_o be_v so_o senseless_a that_o we_o will_v by_o and_o by_o receyve_v thy_o word_n as_o divine_a we_o be_v doctor_n of_o the_o law_n wherefore_o except_o thou_o prove_v thy_o preach_n by_o the_o law_n we_o will_v not_o believe_v thou_o but_o will_v
satan_n have_v a_o wicked_a desire_n to_o hurt_v he_o insomuch_o that_o he_o go_v about_o with_o all_o his_o might_n to_o destroy_v he_o bu_n and_o work_a error_n and_o rebellion_n in_o our_o parent_n adam_n and_o eve_n he_o slay_v all_o mankind_n the_o same_o also_o within_o a_o while_n after_o arm_a cain_n to_o destroy_v his_o brother_n abel_n and_o daily_o throughout_o the_o whoale_n world_n he_o stir_v up_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n to_o murder_v for_o he_o rejoice_v in_o blood_n in_o war_n in_o theft_n and_o in_o the_o destruction_n of_o man_n and_o only_o because_o he_o envy_v the_o felicity_n and_o happiness_n of_o other_o but_o christ_n mean_v not_o here_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o creation_n as_o though_o god_n have_v endue_v the_o devil_n with_o a_o desire_n to_o hurt_v but_o he_o condemn_v the_o wickedness_n of_o satan_n nature_n which_o he_o have_v take_v to_o himself_o m._n neither_o ought_v it_o to_o seem_v absurd_a to_o any_o man_n that_o the_o devil_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o death_n when_o as_o notwithstanding_o the_o apostle_n seem_v to_o attribute_v the_o same_o to_o our_o first_o parent_n say_v as_o by_o one_o man_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n and_o by_o sin_n death_n etc._n etc._n for_o these_o two_o go_v together_o namely_o the_o temptor_n and_o the_o obayer_n of_o temptation_n satan_n be_v the_o temptor_n and_o perswador_n to_o transgression_n and_o sin_n by_o envy_n mix_v with_o the_o same_o a_o lie_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o have_v fail_v of_o his_o purpose_n if_o so_o be_v adam_n have_v not_o harckned_a to_o his_o persuasion_n and_o transgress_v god_n commandment_n therefore_o as_o touch_v that_o envy_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o root_n of_o evell_a temptation_n and_o also_o as_o touch_v the_o lie_n of_o perniciouse_a perswasyon_n it_o be_v true_o attribute_v to_o the_o devil_n that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o author_n of_o death_n again_o as_o touch_v the_o assent_n of_o adam_n and_o the_o transgression_n of_o god_n commandment_n it_o be_v right_o by_o the_o apostle_n ascribe_v to_o adam_n that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n to_o all_o his_o posterity_n insomuch_o that_o there_o be_v no_o disagréement_n at_o all_o here_o between_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n as_o for_o example_n if_o so_o be_v among_o the_o enemy_n besiege_v a_o city_n one_o of_o they_o do_v with_o sertaine_a false_a perswasyon_n persuade_v and_o entice_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a citizen_n to_o betray_v the_o city_n unto_o they_o insomuche_o that_o he_o harken_v thereunto_o whereby_o be_v boath_n betray_v his_o country_n and_o also_o make_v the_o city_n to_o be_v sack_v and_o destroy_v boath_n the_o persuade_a enemy_n and_o also_o the_o betray_a citizen_n which_o contemn_v the_o false_a persuasion_n of_o the_o enemy_n may_v have_v keep_v his_o faith_n which_o he_o do_v owe_v unto_o his_o country_n be_v right_o say_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o destruction_n euenso_fw-la the_o mortality_n of_o mankind_n be_v apt_o refer_v to_o the_o malice_n and_o envy_n of_o the_o devil_n but_o yet_o not_o without_o the_o fault_n of_o our_o parent_n and_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o truth_n c._n these_o word_n plain_o express_v a_o change_n and_o alteration_n to_o the_o worse_o and_o therefore_o satan_n be_v a_o liar_n not_o from_o the_o creation_n but_o because_o he_o fall_v from_o the_o truth_n therefore_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n it_o be_v not_o because_o he_o have_v be_v always_o by_o nature_n a_o enemy_n to_o the_o truth_n but_o because_o he_o fall_v voluntary_o from_o the_o same_o bu_n god_n make_v the_o devil_n good_a in_o the_o beginning_n for_o all_o his_o work_n be_v good_a he_o do_v set_v he_o in_o the_o truth_n from_o the_o which_o he_o can_v never_o have_v fall_v except_o he_o have_v sometime_o stand_v in_o the_o same_o of_o he_o be_v require_v by_o the_o most_o just_a god_n fayth_n or_o fidilitie_n thankfulness_n and_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o god_n the_o creator_n who_o have_v give_v he_o strength_n to_o persevere_v if_o he_o have_v will_v for_o he_o may_v have_v stand_v if_o he_o have_v will_v but_o through_o his_o own_o salt_n and_o wickedness_n he_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o purity_n in_o the_o which_o he_o be_v make_v for_o by_o infedilitie_n he_o fall_v c._n this_o description_n of_o satan_n be_v very_o profitable_a for_o we_o that_o every_o man_n may_v learn_v to_o béeware_v of_o his_o subtle_a snare_n 5.8_o 1._o pet._n 5.8_o and_o to_o resist_v he_o for_o he_o go_v about_o continual_o like_o a_o roar_a lion_n seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v and_o he_o have_v a_o thousand_o way_n to_o deceive_v aug._n we_o have_v not_o red_a that_o the_o devil_n have_v at_o any_o time_n use_v any_o external_a armour_n to_o kill_v a_o man_n neither_o that_o he_o have_v play_v the_o murderer_n with_o his_o hand_n but_o he_o have_v use_v lie_v and_o pernicious_a persuasion_n m._n this_o be_v the_o worse_o and_o most_o develishe_a kind_n of_o murder_n when_o the_o body_n be_v not_o only_o kill_v with_o the_o sword_n but_o also_o when_o both_o soul_n and_o body_n with_o a_o blasphemouse_n lie_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v make_v subject_n not_o only_o to_o temporal_a but_o also_o to_o everlasting_a death_n c._n so_o much_o the_o more_o therefore_o it_o behoove_v the_o faithful_a to_o be_v arm_v with_o spiritual_a armour_n to_o fight_v and_o to_o be_v sober_a and_o watch_n m._n therefore_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o fear_v this_o kind_n of_o murder_n say_v i_o fear_v least_o by_o any_o mean_n that_o as_o the_o serpent_n beguile_v eve_n through_o his_o subtlety_n 11.3_o 2._o cor._n 11.3_o evenso_fw-la your_o mind_n shall_v be_v corrupt_v from_o the_o singleness_n that_o be_v towards_o christ_n for_o the_o serpent_n have_v the_o false_a apostle_n minister_n of_o this_o murder_n by_o who_o diligence_n he_o seek_v to_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o mankind_n such_o false_a aposteles_a he_o have_v always_o have_v among_o the_o gentile_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o among_o the_o christian_n c._n therefore_o if_o satan_n can_v put_v of_o this_o affection_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v he_o trouble_v as_o at_o some_o new_a or_o strange_a thing_n when_o we_o see_v diverse_a error_n to_o spring_v up_o for_o satan_n send_v forth_o his_o instrument_n to_o trouble_v and_o to_o deceive_v the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_v if_o so_o be_v satan_n seek_v so_o diligent_o to_o overwhelm_v the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n for_o it_o be_v the_o only_a life_n of_o the_o soul_n therefore_o he_o use_v lie_v as_o a_o mortal_a dart_n to_o destroy_v the_o soul_n because_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o he_o c._n this_o be_v a_o confirmation_n take_v of_o the_o effect_n for_o because_o satan_n hate_v the_o truth_n and_o can_v abide_v the_o same_o but_o favore_v altogether_o of_o lie_n christ_n gather_v thereupon_o that_o he_o be_v take_v and_o quite_o turn_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n r._n neither_o be_v it_o repugnaunt_a to_o this_o sentence_n of_o christ_n 4.6_o job._n 1.10_o math._n 4.6_o when_o we_o read_v that_o satan_n have_v sometime_o speak_v the_o truth_n as_o when_o he_o say_v thou_o haste_v bless_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n and_o his_o substance_n be_v increase_v in_o the_o land_n also_o it_o be_v write_v he_o shall_v geve_v his_o aungeles_a charge_n over_o thou_o again_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n 16.17_o luk._n 4.41_o act._n 16.17_o moreover_o these_o man_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n which_o show_n unto_o we_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n these_o i_o say_v and_o such_o like_a sentence_n be_v nothing_o repugnaunt_a with_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n sometime_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o have_v the_o truth_n within_o one_o euenas_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n sometime_o to_o tell_v a_o lie_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o continual_a liar_n the_o truth_n be_v in_o they_o which_o do_v not_o only_o sometime_o speak_v that_o which_o be_v true_a but_o do_v love_v the_o truth_n and_o do_v speak_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o speak_v for_o the_o love_n which_o they_o owe_v unto_o the_o truth_n a_o man_n shall_v find_v some_o which_o speak_v the_o truth_n not_o for_o the_o love_n they_o bear_v to_o the_o truth_n but_o for_o the_o love_n either_o of_o glory_n or_o of_o gain_n or_o else_o for_o the_o hatred_n which_o they_o bear_v to_o some_o man_n of_o those_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o the_o truth_n be_v in_o they_o although_o therefore_o satan_n sometime_o speak_v
the_o truth_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o truth_n be_v never_o in_o he_o because_o he_o speak_v the_o same_o to_o no_o other_o end_n then_o to_o deceive_v and_o to_o destroy_v whereupon_o christ_n suffer_v he_o not_o to_o speak_v though_o he_o speak_v the_o truth_n 4.41_o luk._n 4.41_o paul_n also_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o spirit_n of_o southsay_v 16.17_o act._n 16.17_o though_o he_o confess_v the_o truth_n for_o that_o be_v a_o daungerouss_n truth_n which_o bring_v credit_n to_o a_o mortal_a lie_n no_o heretic_n or_o false_a apostle_n at_o any_o time_n get_v credit_n and_o favour_n among_o man_n by_o mere_a lie_n but_o in_o mingeling_n some_o truth_n with_o his_o doctrine_n he_o have_v deceive_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o simple_a when_o he_o speak_v a_o lie_n bu_n first_o this_o place_n teach_v that_o the_o salt_n of_o a_o lie_n be_v not_o to_o be_v lay_v upon_o god_n the_o author_n of_o nature_n but_o it_o come_v rather_o of_o depravation_n and_o corruption_n c_o second_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v accustom_v to_o lie_v and_o that_o he_o can_v do_v nothing_o else_o but_o deceive_v for_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o father_n of_o the._n the_o devil_n by_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v a_o liar_n not_o that_o he_o be_v so_o create_v of_o god_n but_o as_o he_o have_v by_o his_o own_o infidilitie_n get_v the_o same_o insomuch_o that_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o lie_v because_o he_o be_v alienate_v from_o god_n in_o who_o alone_a all_o truth_n abide_v and_o from_o who_o the_o same_o do_v flow_v as_o from_o a_o spring_a well_o r._n for_o satan_n be_v not_o the_o father_n of_o lie_v and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o same_o because_o god_n be_v by_o himself_o as_o martion_n dream_v but_o because_o he_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o truth_n satan_n lie_v come_v of_o satan_n for_o he_o have_v forsake_v the_o truth_n the_o lie_n succéede_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o same_o bu_n satan_n therefore_o be_v the_o wellspring_n original_a and_o beginning_n of_o lie_v of_o eror_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o all_o evell_a even_o as_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n god_n be_v the_o wellspring_n of_o all_o truth_n and_o the_o truth_n itself_o 45_o and_o because_o i_o tell_v you_o the_o truth_n therefore_o you_o believe_v i_o not_o m._n he_o return_v unto_o that_o which_o he_o object_v unto_o they_o before_o say_v why_o do_v you_o not_o know_v my_o speech_n because_o you_o can_v hear_v my_o word_n when_o therefore_o he_o have_v oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o devil_n as_o the_o teacher_n of_o truth_n he_o add_v by_o and_o by_o because_o i_o tell_v you_o the_o truth_n therefore_o you_o believe_v i_o not_o to_o declare_v that_o they_o hate_v his_o doctrine_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n than_o for_o that_o he_o speak_v the_o truth_n otherwise_o if_o he_o have_v speak_v lie_v they_o will_v have_v beléeve_v he_o bu_n this_o he_o speak_v that_o by_o the_o similitude_n and_o likeness_n of_o their_o manner_n and_o disposition_n he_o may_v prove_v the_o jew_n neither_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n nor_o the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o of_o satan_n c._n because_o see_v they_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o resist_v but_o only_o for_o that_o they_o hate_v and_o can_v not_o abide_v the_o truth_n they_o open_o declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o satan_n m_o in_o this_o place_n we_o see_v that_o the_o truth_n to_o reprobate_a man_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o unbeléefe_n which_o contrariwise_o to_o the_o elect_a be_v the_o cause_n and_o foundation_n of_o faith_n neither_o do_v christ_n simple_o upbrayde_v the_o jew_n with_o this_o that_o speak_v the_o truth_n they_o will_v not_o believe_v but_o for_o that_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v because_o he_o speak_v the_o truth_n and_o no_o lie_n so_o in_o human_a matter_n nothing_o come_v more_o often_o to_o pass_v than_o this_o that_o man_n geve_v heed_n and_o credit_n to_o such_o as_o tell_v the_o most_o false_a and_o vain_a thing_n but_o when_o they_o shall_v believe_v the_o truth_n the_o great_a part_n of_o man_n believe_v not_o and_o all_o because_o the_o truth_n be_v set_v before_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o receyve_v a_o false_a lie_n if_o so_o be_v micheas_n have_v tell_v king_n achab_n a_o lie_n the_o king_n will_v easy_o have_v beléeve_v he_o but_o because_o he_o utter_v the_o truth_n the_o king_n can_v scarce_o abide_v to_o hear_v he_o bu_n so_o that_o hear_v the_o nature_n and_o disposition_n of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v describe_v 22.8_o 3._o kin._n 22.8_o these_o be_v like_a to_o their_o father_n in_o quality_n in_o word_n and_o in_o deed_n they_o fear_v not_o god_n they_o detest_v and_o abhor_v all_o faith_n truth_n and_o purity_n they_o despise_v and_o contemn_v the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o follow_v rapine_n murder_n and_o bloodshed_n they_o be_v enemy_n to_o all_o man_n and_o good_a &_o profitable_a to_o none_o but_o to_o such_o only_o by_o who_o they_o look_v to_o have_v great_a profit_n and_o advantage_n again_o by_o hypocrisy_n they_o hide_v and_o discover_v all_o thing_n whosoever_o frame_v and_o order_v himself_o by_o this_o glass_n search_v out_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o judge_v of_o his_o own_o word_n and_o deed_n he_o shall_v thereby_o learn_v whether_o he_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n or_o the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o so_o many_o as_o have_v hate_v the_o truth_n and_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o lie_v be_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o contrariwise_o they_o which_o be_v true_a and_o which_o speak_v the_o truth_n from_o their_o hart_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o who_o hate_v not_o to_o have_v fellowship_n with_o the_o devil_n again_o who_o do_v not_o great_o esteem_v and_o desyer_n to_o have_v fellowship_n with_o god_n wherefore_o let_v we_o detest_v this_o devilish_a vice_n that_o be_v this_o aptness_n and_o readiness_n of_o lie_v and_o with_o our_o whoale_n heart_n let_v we_o love_v the_o truth_n let_v we_o consider_v that_o true_a religion_n be_v prove_v and_o declare_v by_o godliness_n and_o not_o by_o titelle_n therefore_o it_o do_v not_o profit_v we_o to_o be_v call_v in_o name_n christian_n except_o we_o be_v christian_n in_o deed_n a._n judas_n be_v advance_v to_o the_o dignity_n of_o a_o apostle_n love_v lie_v more_o than_o truth_n and_o therefore_o christ_n who_o know_v not_o how_o to_o lie_v call_v he_o a_o devil_n for_o the_o wicked_a ypocrite_n be_v more_o like_o the_o father_n of_o lie_n than_o the_o father_n of_o truth_n 46._o which_o of_o you_o do_v reproove_v i_o of_o sin_v and_o if_o i_o speak_v the_o truth_n why_o do_v you_o not_o believe_v i_o bu_n as_o hypocrisy_n be_v ever_o like_o itself_o and_o have_v always_o one_o cloak_n or_o other_o for_o itself_o so_o hear_v the_o jew_n consyder_v themselves_o think_v thus_o secret_o in_o themselves_o we_o want_v not_o lawful_a cause_n whereby_o we_o may_v refuse_v to_o béeleve_v thy_o preach_n m._n for_o in_o that_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v thou_o it_o be_v not_o because_o we_o can_v here_o the_o truth_n and_o be_v of_o the_o devil_n as_o thou_o say_v of_o we_o but_o because_o thou_o be_v a_o seducer_n not_o preach_v the_o truth_n but_o withstand_v us._n to_o this_o secret_a objection_n christ_n answer_v by_o this_o interrogation_n c._n which_o procee_v of_o faith_n and_o trust_n for_o when_o he_o know_v that_o his_o enemy_n can_v reproach_n he_o with_o nothing_o he_o triumph_v over_o they_o as_o victor_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o he_o be_v free_a from_o their_o slander_n for_o although_o they_o have_v no_o occasion_n to_o speak_v evell_a yet_o nevertheless_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o rail_v on_o christ_n but_o he_o know_v that_o he_o have_v not_o deserve_v the_o same_o and_o the_o gréeke_n word_n elegcheim_n sygnifi_v to_o convince_v which_o be_v when_o a_o man_n be_v not_o only_o reproove_v of_o some_o salt_n but_o also_o plain_o convince_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o but_o this_o defence_n be_v not_o refer_v to_o the_o perfect_a innocence_n of_o life_n by_o which_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o excel_v all_o other_o man_n but_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o circomstaunce_n of_o the_o place_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o no_o man_n can_v object_v any_o matter_n against_o he_o to_o prove_v he_o not_o to_o be_v a_o faithful_a minister_n of_o god_n 4._o i._o cor_n 4._o even_o as_o the_o apostle_n also_o boast_v that_o he_o know_v naught_o by_o himself_o for_o this_o appollogy_n or_o defence_n be_v not_o extend_v to_o to_o the_o whoale_n life_n but_o be_v a_o defence_n of_o
his_o doctrine_n only_o and_o apostleship_n euenso_fw-la christ_n here_o defend_v rather_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o doctrine_n then_o of_o his_o person_n a._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o in_o all_o my_o office_n i_o show_v myself_o a_o faithful_a minister_n of_o god_n you_o have_v nothing_o to_o cloak_n your_o incredulytie_n with_o all_o and_o to_o excuse_v the_o same_o for_o i_o teach_v true_o i_o show_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n unto_o you_o no_o terrestrial_a or_o human_a thing_n can_v be_v find_v in_o my_o doctrine_n therefore_o you_o can_v convince_v the_o same_o of_o a_o lie_n wherefore_o if_o i_o tell_v you_o the_o truth_n why_o do_v you_o not_o beeleve_v i_o if_o so_o be_v you_o can_v juste_o speak_v evell_a of_o my_o doctrine_n why_o do_v you_o refuse_v to_o believe_v the_o same_o r._n by_o this_o place_n we_o learn_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v he_o that_o speak_v the_o truth_n without_o all_o contradiction_n certain_a of_o the_o jew_n refuse_v to_o hear_v christ_n because_o he_o preach_v without_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n othersome_a because_o none_o of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr and_o ruler_n heléeve_v on_o he_o many_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o hear_v he_o because_o he_o be_v a_o galilean_a and_o the_o rest_n can_v not_o away_o with_o his_o doctrine_n because_o he_o regard_v not_o the_o decree_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o father_n but_o the_o lord_n the_o author_n of_o truth_n urge_v against_o all_o these_o thing_n show_v that_o he_o know_v no_o reason_n that_o shall_v stay_v any_o man_n from_o beléeve_v the_o truth_n wherefore_o then_o do_v not_o man_n in_o our_o time_n seek_v the_o truth_n to_o what_o purpose_n do_v they_o seek_v for_o so_o many_o excuse_n if_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o true_a which_o the_o minister_n do_v teach_v let_v they_o be_v confute_v by_o evident_a argument_n if_o they_o be_v true_a why_o be_v they_o not_o quiet_o receyve_v one_o say_v this_o doctrine_n be_v new_a another_o say_v that_o it_o be_v scismaticall_a another_o say_v that_o it_o appertain_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o refourme_v doctrine_n others_z object_n the_o father_n other_o the_o counsel_n other_o ecclesiastical_a ordinance_n and_o some_o seek_v to_o set_v custom_n against_o the_o gospel_n but_o what_o need_v these_o delay_n let_v they_o say_v simp_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o true_a but_o let_v they_o prove_v it_o also_o if_o they_o be_v not_o able_a so_o to_o do_v why_o do_v they_o not_o subscribe_v unto_o the_o truth_n you_o shall_v hear_v the_o cause_n 47._o he_o that_o be_v of_o god_n hear_v god_n word_n you_o therefore_o hear_v they_o not_o because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n b._n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o which_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n he_o which_o be_v elect_v of_o god_n he_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o receyve_v the_o same_o by_o faith_n c._n now_o christ_n more_o vehement_o invey_v against_o the_o jew_n be_v assure_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o doctrine_n for_o their_o impiety_n be_v not_o obscure_a when_o they_o be_v so_o obstinate_a in_o reject_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o have_v show_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v object_v unto_o he_o which_o he_o have_v not_o teach_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n he_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o they_o have_v no_o felloweshippe_n with_o god_n because_o they_o hear_v not_o r_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v therefore_o you_o do_v not_o believe_v because_o you_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o the_o child_n of_o lie_a satan_n the_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o merueile_v if_o you_o receive_v not_o my_o word_n which_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o he_o which_o be_v of_o god_n hear_v god_n word_n 44._o 1._o cor._n 44._o but_o he_o which_o be_v of_o satan_n contemn_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n bu_n there_o be_v therefore_o no_o other_o cause_n why_o you_o hear_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o i_o speak_v neither_o receive_v nor_o believe_v they_o than_o this_o because_o you_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o god_n but_o of_o the_o devil_n m._n to_o be_v of_o god_n in_o this_o place_n be_v not_o to_o be_v bear_v or_o regenerate_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o word_n of_o god_n but_o to_o be_v elect_v and_o predestinate_a to_o life_n before_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n â_o act_n â3_n â_o whereupon_o also_o the_o christian_n faith_n be_v call_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v beléeve_v so_o many_o as_o be_v foreordayn_v unto_o life_n so_o that_o although_o they_o be_v by_o nature_n blind_a and_o the_o child_n of_o wrath_n yet_o notwithstanding_o when_o the_o time_n of_o their_o call_n come_v they_o receyve_v that_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o some_o call_v the_o prevent_a spyrite_n and_o their_o heart_n be_v open_v that_o they_o may_v receyve_v the_o seed_n of_o god_n word_n through_o the_o which_o be_v apprehend_v by_o faith_n they_o be_v iustify_v and_o regenerate_v example_n of_o this_o we_o have_v in_o the_o maid_n that_o wrought_v purple_a of_o who_o luke_n testify_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n c._n by_o this_o place_n therefore_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o manifest_a sign_n of_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n than_o when_o a_o man_n can_v bear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n although_o otherwise_o in_o the_o show_n he_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o angel_n whereas_o if_o so_o be_v we_o willing_o embrace_v the_o same_o we_o have_v as_o it_o be_v a_o visyble_a sign_n of_o our_o election_n for_o he_o which_o have_v the_o word_n have_v god_n himself_o but_o he_o which_o reject_v the_o same_o deprive_v himself_o both_o of_o life_n and_o also_o if_o righteousness_n wherefore_o we_o ought_v to_o fear_v nothing_o more_o than_o lest_o we_o fall_v into_o this_o horrible_a judgement_n a._n for_o it_o be_v no_o light_a commination_n where_o with_o christ_n threaten_v the_o jew_n say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o you_o 21.43_o mat._n 21.43_o and_o give_v to_o a_o nation_n that_o will_v bring_v forth_o better_a fruit_n of_o the_o same_o 48._o then_o answer_v the_o jew_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o say_n we_o not_o well_o that_o thou_o be_v a_o samaritane_n and_o have_v the_o devil_n m._n this_o answer_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n scribe_n and_o phariseis_n contain_v a_o impudent_a &_o malicious_a slander_v c._n more_o and_o more_o they_o bewray_v how_o that_o they_o be_v bewitch_v of_o satan_n who_o be_v plain_o convince_v yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o rush_v forth_o even_o through_o the_o midst_n of_o desperation_n b._n thus_o be_v convict_v impiety_n wont_a to_o fare_v when_o it_o be_v not_o able_a to_o answer_v to_o the_o truth_n than_o it_o fall_v to_o rail_v and_o slander_v they_o be_v manifest_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n therefore_o they_o reply_v again_o without_o any_o show_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o samaritane_n and_o have_v the_o devil_n mean_v by_o this_o double_a slander_v to_o declare_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o detestable_a man_n and_o lead_v with_o a_o evyll_n spyrite_n because_o the_o jew_n account_v the_o samaritan_n for_o apostatas_fw-la and_o corrupter_n of_o the_o law_n so_o often_o as_o they_o intend_v to_o defame_v any_o man_n they_o will_v call_v he_o a_o samaritane_n now_o therefore_o because_o they_o have_v no_o great_a crime_n wherewithal_o they_o may_v defame_v christ_n they_o rashlye_a and_o without_o judgement_n use_v that_o common_a reproach_n r._n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v what_o dare_v thou_o defend_v the_o truth_n of_o thy_o doctrine_n before_o we_o see_v thou_o be_v worse_o than_o any_o heretic_n or_o apostata_fw-la for_o thy_o doctrine_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o satan_n and_o not_o to_o god_n thou_o speak_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o not_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n for_o we_o be_v holy_a people_n a_o priestlye_o stock_n a_o holy_a nation_n and_o such_o a_o nation_n to_o who_o god_n have_v whoal_o give_v himself_o but_o thou_o according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o samaritan_n pronounce_v we_o not_o to_o be_v of_o god_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v therefore_o that_o thy_o false_a doctrine_n be_v of_o satan_n bu_n the_o like_a reproach_n and_o sclaunder_n they_o cast_v forth_o at_o this_o day_n who_o be_v gréeve_v at_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n for_o they_o call_v the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n apostate_n seditious_a personne_n schismatic_n worker_n by_o develle_n seducer_n and_o such_o like_a r._n lest_o the_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a may_v seem_v to_o have_v no_o cause_n of_o their_o unbeléefe_n 49._o jesus_n answer_v i_o have_v not_o the_o devil_n but_o i_o honour_v my_o father_n and_o
cause_n and_o they_o allege_v that_o of_o the_o which_o we_o speak_v even_o now_o and_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o ashamed_a at_o this_o day_n to_o maintain_v in_o their_o sinagoge_n such_o a_o foul_a error_n for_o a_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a oracle_n by_o the_o which_o example_n we_o be_v teach_v diligent_o to_o take_v heed_n lest_o if_o we_o pass_v the_o bond_n of_o sobriety_n in_o search_v out_o the_o judgemente_n of_o god_n the_o wander_a error_n of_o the_o mind_n do_v carry_v and_o cast_v we_o into_o horrible_a confusion_n 137_o psal_n 119_o 137_o let_v we_o rather_o say_v thus_o thou_o o_o lord_n be_v just_o and_o thy_o judgemente_n be_v true_a although_o we_o can_v comprehend_v they_o m._n furthermore_o the_o disciple_n have_v hear_v the_o lord_n say_v unto_o the_o lame_a man_n i4_n john_n 5_o i4_n behold_v thou_o be_v make_v whoale_n see_v thou_o sin_v no_o more_o lest_o a_o worse_a thing_n happen_v to_o thou_o for_o where_o do_v they_o learn_v to_o ascribe_v such_o grevouse_n disease_n of_o siner_n to_o their_o desert_n and_o they_o seem_v here_o to_o have_v the_o same_o opinion_n of_o this_o man_n or_o of_o his_o parent_n c._n 20_o ezee._n i8_n 20_o for_o although_o the_o innocent_a child_n be_v not_o punish_v for_o the_o father_n offence_n but_o the_o soul_n which_o have_v sin_v shall_v dye_v yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o denunciation_n be_v not_o void_a when_o the_o lord_n cast_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o parent_n upon_o the_o child_n back_n and_o take_v vengeance_n unto_o the_o third_o and_o four_o generation_n 20_o exod._n 20_o therefore_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n rest_v often_o time_n upon_o one_o family_n many_o age_n and_o as_o he_o bless_v the_o posterity_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o their_o sake_n so_o he_o reject_v the_o wicked_a offspring_n by_o his_o just_a judgement_n cast_v boath_n the_o father_n and_o their_o child_n together_o into_o like_a destruction_n neither_o can_v any_o man_n by_o this_o mean_n complain_v that_o he_o be_v unjust_o punish_v for_o another_o man_n sin_n because_o where_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spiryte_n be_v want_v from_o evel_a bird_n evel_a egg_n must_v needs_o come_v this_o make_v the_o apostle_n to_o doubt_n whether_o the_o lord_n have_v punish_v you_o or_o no_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o parent_n upon_o their_o son_n 3._o jesus_n answer_v neither_o have_v this_o man_n sin_v nor_o yet_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n but_o that_o the_o work_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v show_v on_o he_o r._n what_o do_v not_o the_o blind_a man_n sin_n when_o as_o he_o be_v conceive_v in_o sin_n and_o see_v no_o man_n living_n shall_v be_v justefied_a in_o his_o sight_n do_v not_o his_o parent_n sin_n who_o notwithstanding_o beleve_v not_o in_o christ_n question_v the_o scripture_n say_v all_o have_v go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n all_o be_v become_v unprofitable_a there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o m_o i_o answer_v answer_v answer_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o this_o answer_n of_o christ_n depend_v upon_o the_o disciple_n demand_v which_o do_v not_o symp_o ask_v whether_o that_o blind_a man_n or_o his_o parent_n have_v sin_v but_o whether_o this_o blind_a man_n have_v not_o by_o his_o own_o sin_n before_o he_o be_v bear_v deserve_a to_o be_v blind_a boath_n which_o to_o have_v speak_v have_v be_v very_o absurd_a but_o the_o lord_n declare_v unto_o they_o the_o true_a cause_n wherefore_o this_o man_n be_v bear_v blind_a c._n neither_o do_v he_o symp_o deliver_v he_o and_o his_o parent_n from_o all_o blame_n but_o only_o deny_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o blindness_n to_o be_v seek_v in_o the_o sin_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o special_a cause_n why_o this_o man_n be_v bear_v blind_a be_v that_o occasion_n may_v be_v give_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o not_o either_o his_o sin_n or_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o parent_n m._n for_o this_o man_n be_v appoint_v from_o everlasting_a to_o minister_v occasion_n by_o his_o blindness_n to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o manifest_v the_o work_n of_o his_o father_n the_o which_o manifestation_n appertain_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n r._n christ_n therefore_o teach_v that_o although_o all_o man_n be_v sinner_n yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o affliction_n come_v not_o by_o the_o merit_n and_o desert_n of_o sin_n for_o god_n afflict_v man_n for_o diverse_a respect_n sometime_o he_o punish_v they_o for_o their_o sin_n and_o sometime_o he_o afflict_v they_o for_o his_o glory_n i30_n psal_n i30_n if_o he_o have_v respect_n to_o sin_n and_o to_o the_o desert_n of_o iniquity_n there_o be_v no_o punishment_n so_o great_a with_o the_o which_o we_o be_v not_o just_o afflict_v so_o many_o of_o we_o as_o have_v have_v our_o original_n from_o adam_n for_o if_o the_o lord_n be_v extreme_a to_o mark_v what_o be_v do_v amiss_o who_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o abide_v it_o but_o if_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o his_o glory_n he_o afflict_v not_o for_o sin_n but_o to_o the_o set_v forth_o of_o his_o glory_n so_o he_o afflict_a joseph_n and_o the_o israelite_n in_o egypt_n that_o he_o may_v be_v honour_v in_o affliction_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o god_n may_v be_v open_o know_v to_o be_v a_o helper_n and_o deliverer_n in_o trybulation_n c._n so_o that_o when_o we_o know_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o affliction_n we_o must_v not_o be_v to_o curiouse_a least_o we_o be_v boath_n iniuriouse_a unto_o god_n and_o also_o towards_o our_o brother_n r._n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_n that_o calamity_n do_v not_o happen_v unto_o we_o by_o chance_n but_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o at_o the_o length_n he_o may_v be_v glorify_v wherefore_o he_o which_o reject_v the_o cross_n through_o impatience_n reject_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o that_o the_o work_n of_o god._n c._n he_o do_v not_o say_v one_o work_n but_o work_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n for_o so_o long_o as_o this_o blind_a man_n be_v blind_a god_n severity_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o he_o whereby_o other_o may_v learn_v to_o fear_n and_o to_o humble_v themselves_o afterward_o follow_v the_o benefit_n of_o deliveraunce_n in_o the_o which_o the_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n do_v appear_v wherefore_o christ_n by_o these_o word_n go_v about_o to_o make_v his_o disciple_n to_o hope_v for_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o miracle_n but_o yet_o he_o admonish_v they_o general_o that_o this_o cause_n ought_v to_o seem_v just_a and_o lawful_a enough_o in_o this_o world_n when_o god_n set_v forth_o his_o name_n and_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o man_n shall_v dispute_v with_o god_n see_v he_o have_v make_v they_o instrument_n of_o his_o glory_n either_o way_n whether_o he_o be_v merciful_a or_o severe_a 4._o i_o must_v work_v the_o work_n of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o while_o it_o be_v day_n the_o night_n come_v when_o no_o man_n can_v work_v b._n he_o call_v the_o present_a time_n the_o day_n and_o that_o right_o for_o he_o be_v that_o bright_a son_n of_o righteousness_n which_o shine_v with_o the_o bright_a beam_n of_o doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o work_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o he_o call_v that_o time_n in_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v by_o his_o father_n decree_n cease_v from_o such_o work_n and_o doctrine_n the_o night_n that_o night_n come_v to_o the_o jew_n when_o they_o be_v forsake_v both_o of_o he_o and_o also_o of_o his_o apostle_n c._n he_o borrow_v therefore_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o common_a custom_n of_o life_n for_o when_o the_o sun_n rise_v man_n also_o arise_v to_o his_o labour_n and_o short_o after_o go_v to_o his_o rest_n again_o as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o the_o psalm_n 104.22_o psa_fw-la 104.22_o and_o hereuppon_o also_o we_o may_v gather_v a_o general_a rule_n name_o that_o the_o race_n and_o course_n of_o everye_o man_n life_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o day_n wherefore_o as_o the_o shortness_n of_o the_o light_n do_v provoke_v the_o labourer_n to_o diligence_n and_o industrye_n lest_o the_o night_n shall_v overtake_v they_o before_o they_o finish_v their_o work_n evenso_fw-la when_o we_o behold_v that_o we_o have_v a_o short_a time_n of_o life_n give_v unto_o we_o we_o shall_v he_o ashamed_a of_o idleness_n to_o be_v short_a so_o soon_o as_o god_n shine_v by_o vocation_n that_o be_v so_o soon_o as_o god_n begin_v to_o call_v we_o must_v not_o delay_v the_o time_n least_o opportunity_n fail_v us._n i0_n gala._n 6_o i0_n a._n while_o we_o have_v time_n say_v the_o apostle_n let_v we_o do_v good_a also_o christ_n say_v 35_o john_n i2_n 35_o while_o you_o have_v light_v walk_v in_o the_o light_n lest_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v you_o r._n for_o so_o long_o we_o have_v the_o day_n as_o the_o word_n be_v present_o preach_v unto_o
synagogue_n e._n we_o ought_v rather_o to_o rejoice_v and_o be_v glad_a because_o we_o be_v not_o forsake_v of_o christ_n hold_v fast_o the_o hope_n of_o everlasting_a life_n 23._o then_o again_o call_v they_o the_o man_n that_o be_v blind_a and_o say_v unto_o he_o geve_v god_n the_o praise_n we_o know_v that_o this_o man_n be_v a_o sinner_n e._n the_o phariseis_n be_v very_o careful_a and_o dilligente_a to_o obscure_v and_o hynder_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n for_o as_o satan_n never_o rest_v but_o always_o go_v seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v so_o the_o wicked_a be_v the_o instrument_n of_o satan_n do_v continual_o seek_v to_o hynder_n the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o hurt_v the_o godly_a m._n these_o jew_n have_v labour_v in_o vain_a in_o call_v and_o in_o examyne_v the_o parent_n of_o the_o blind_a man_n for_o they_o fail_v so_o much_o of_o their_o purpose_n that_o they_o more_o confirm_v this_o miracle_n than_o they_o obscure_v the_o same_o wherefore_o they_o return_v to_o the_o former_a practice_n subtillye_o seek_v to_o defame_v the_o author_n of_o this_o miracle_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n they_o call_v before_o they_o again_o the_o man_n which_o have_v be_v blind_a after_o they_o have_v send_v away_o his_o parent_n c._n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o be_v ashamed_a call_v the_o blind_a man_n who_o at_o the_o first_o they_o find_v to_o firm_a and_o constant_a thus_o the_o more_o vehement_o they_o strive_v against_o god_n the_o more_o they_o entangle_v and_o ensnare_v themselves_o bu_n they_o seek_v now_o by_o another_o way_n to_o draw_v this_o man_n from_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o fair_a speech_n and_o by_o the_o pretence_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n c._n for_o they_o exhort_v he_o by_o a_o special_a preface_n to_o geve_v the_o glory_n unto_o god_n but_o by_o &_o by_o they_o forbid_v he_o imperious_o that_o he_o answer_v according_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o own_o mind_n geve_v god_n the_o praise_n r._n they_o use_v this_o solemn_a form_n of_o speech_n when_o they_o require_v any_o man_n to_o swear_v as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o nineteen_o chapter_n of_o the_o seven_o book_n of_o josephus_n r._n by_o these_o word_n they_o give_v he_o to_o understand_v that_o no_o small_a dishonour_n be_v do_v unto_o god_n if_o so_o be_v any_o man_n by_o his_o name_n go_v about_o to_o deceyve_v and_o verilye_o so_o often_o as_o any_o of_o we_o shall_v swear_v this_o preface_n ought_v to_o come_v into_o our_o mind_n that_o the_o truth_n may_v be_v no_o less_o precious_a unto_o we_o than_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o we_o see_v that_o hypocrite_n when_o they_o pretend_v the_o great_a reverence_n of_o god_n they_o do_v not_o only_o dissemble_v but_o also_o impudentlye_o deceive_v for_o wicked_o they_o go_v about_o to_o make_v the_o blind_a man_n to_o swear_v upon_o their_o word_n to_o the_o manifest_a dishonour_n of_o god_n b._n for_o by_o the_o name_n of_o sinner_n they_o mean_v that_o the_o lord_n seek_v to_o transgress_v the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o be_v a_o dishonest_a and_o wicked_a person_n m._n and_o they_o speak_v upon_o their_o authority_n when_o they_o say_v we_o know_v as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v otherwise_o than_o we_o think_v which_o have_v skill_n and_o knowledge_n of_o all_o thing_n let_v it_o therefore_o satisfy_v thou_o that_o we_o so_o think_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n also_o at_o this_o day_n our_o bishop_n and_o phariseis_n take_v upon_o they_o the_o authority_n of_o magistrate_n do_v bold_o pronounce_v what_o they_o lust_n as_o though_o they_o have_v the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n aught_o to_o be_v beléeve_v whatsoever_o they_o speak_v as_o when_o they_o say_v we_o know_v that_o this_o doctrine_n savour_v of_o heresy_n we_o know_v that_o these_o and_o these_o man_n be_v heretic_n c._n thus_o god_n reveal_v the_o wicked_a counsel_n of_o the_o wicked_a howsoever_o they_o go_v about_o with_o diverse_a colour_n and_o feign_a shadow_n to_o cover_v the_o same_o 25._o he_o answer_v and_o say_v whether_o he_o be_v a_o sinner_n or_o no_o i_o can_v tell_v one_o thing_n i_o be_o sure_a of_o that_o whereas_o i_o be_v blind_a now_o i_o see_v m._n the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o in_o vain_a use_n so_o great_a diligence_n in_o put_v down_o unto_o we_o in_o write_v the_o answer_n of_o this_o blind_a man_n for_o they_o be_v such_o that_o no_o man_n can_v choose_v but_o marvel_n more_o at_o the_o light_n and_o sight_n of_o the_o internal_a man_n than_o of_o the_o external_a man_n the_o phariseis_n have_v say_v we_o know_v that_o this_o man_n be_v a_o sinner_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o wicked_a and_o lewd_a person_n what_o therefore_o say_v thou_o geve_v the_o glory_n unto_o god_n confess_v the_o truth_n to_o these_o word_n the_o blind_a man_n answer_v whether_o he_o be_v a_o sinner_n or_o no._n c._n the_o which_o word_n ought_v to_o be_v expound_v ironice_n that_o be_v to_o say_v mean_v that_o he_o be_v just_a that_o he_o may_v more_o sharp_o gall_v they_o a_o little_a before_o he_o have_v confess_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n when_o he_o see_v he_o profit_v nothing_o suspend_v his_o judgement_n of_o the_o person_n he_o propound_v the_o matter_n itself_o for_o he_o will_v not_o swerve_v one_o whit_n from_o the_o true_a testimony_n concern_v he_o therefore_o this_o grant_v unto_o they_o do_v not_o want_v a_o scorn_n and_o mock_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v bu_n whether_o jesus_n be_v a_o wicked_a man_n or_o no_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n unto_o i_o it_o be_v not_o my_o part_n to_o judge_v he_o this_o one_o thing_n i_o can_v trulye_o testify_v the_o which_o also_o i_o have_v find_v true_a by_o experience_n that_o whereas_o before_o i_o be_v blind_a i_o now_o see_v m._n wherefore_o that_o which_o you_o require_v at_o my_o hand_n to_o be_v do_v i_o can_v do_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n by_o which_o i_o be_o constrain_v to_o think_v of_o he_o as_o of_o a_o notable_a prophet_n and_o not_o as_o of_o a_o sinner_n and_o a_o enemy_n to_o god_n and_o as_o i_o be_o constrain_v to_o think_v of_o he_o so_o also_o i_o will_v judge_v and_o speak_v of_o he_o this_o blind_a man_n be_v move_v nether_a with_o threaten_n nor_o with_o fair_a word_n but_o do_v constant_o and_o boulde_o proclaim_v that_o which_o gréeve_v the_o adversary_n and_o which_o they_o will_v if_o they_o have_v can_v have_v take_v out_o of_o the_o heart_n and_o mouth_n of_o all_o man_n m._n therefore_o this_o man_n although_o he_o be_v a_o lie_v man_n and_o unlern_v can_v not_o abide_v unwise_o rash_o to_o subscribe_v and_o agree_v against_o his_o own_o conscience_n to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o rabbin_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr bu_n thus_o the_o simple_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o imbecillytie_n and_o weakness_n overcom_v the_o strong_a &_o mighty_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n 26._o then_o say_v they_o to_o he_o again_o what_o do_v he_o to_o thou_o how_o open_v he_o thy_o eye_n m._n now_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr return_n to_o the_o straight_a examination_n of_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o which_o they_o begin_v at_o the_o first_o and_o because_o they_o think_v they_o have_v get_v a_o simple_a man_n and_o a_o idiot_n before_o they_o who_o they_o may_v easy_o beguile_v with_o their_o craft_n and_o subtlety_n they_o examine_v he_o by_o certain_a short_a interrogatory_n that_o he_o answer_v the_o less_o circumspect_o may_v be_v by_o they_o entrap_v and_o that_o they_o may_v thereby_o get_v occasion_n to_o blame_v and_o reprehend_v the_o fact_n of_o christ_n whereby_o they_o may_v deprive_v he_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o miracle_n c._n verilye_o see_v we_o see_v the_o wicked_a to_o be_v so_o busy_a &_o careful_a to_o bring_v their_o wicked_a action_n about_o we_o may_v be_v ashamed_a of_o our_o sloth_n and_o negligence_n in_o handle_n the_o work_n of_o christ_n so_o negligentlye_o 27._o he_o answer_v they_o i_o tell_v you_o year_n while_n and_o you_o do_v not_o hear_v wherefore_o will_v you_o hear_v it_o again_o will_v you_o also_o be_v his_o disciple_n c._n see_v the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n seek_v occasion_n by_o all_o mean_n to_o speak_v evil_a of_o he_o and_o to_o darcken_v and_o obcure_v the_o miracle_n the_o lord_n do_v notable_o frustrate_v their_o devise_n without_o the_o quayl_v of_o the_o blind_a man_n constancy_n for_o he_o do_v only_o persist_v in_o his_o constancy_n but_o do_v also_o free_o and_o severe_o reprehend_v they_o for_o that_o they_o seek_v to_o overwhelm_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v
sufficient_o know_v unto_o they_o for_o he_o cast_v in_o their_o tooth_n their_o péevishe_a hatred_n of_o christ_n bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o declare_v to_o you_o even_o now_o the_o act_n and_o the_o manner_n also_o most_o truelye_o how_o the_o fame_n be_v do_v the_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v and_o no_o doubt_n do_v understande_v the_o same_o to_o what_o end_n then_o shall_v i_o now_o repeat_v the_o same_o again_o except_o you_o therefore_o make_v such_o diligent_a enquiry_n that_o when_o you_o exactlye_o know_v the_o matter_n you_o also_o will_v be_v his_o disciple_n the_o which_o he_o speak_v ironice_n scorn_v the_o madness_n of_o the_o blind_a doctor_n c._n for_o by_o these_o word_n he_o mean_v that_o although_o they_o be_v convict_v a_o hundred_o time_n they_o be_v so_o malicious_a that_o they_o will_v never_o give_v place_n this_o very_o be_v great_a boldness_n that_o a_o contemptitible_a and_o base_a man_n yea_o a_o very_a beggar_n dare_v take_v upon_o he_o so_o careless_o to_o provoke_v against_o he_o the_o wrath_n and_o displeasure_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n if_o so_o small_a a_o begin_n of_o faith_n only_o when_o it_o be_v come_v to_o the_o battle_n make_v he_o so_o bold_o what_o excuse_n shall_v they_o have_v which_o be_v great_a preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n hold_v their_o peace_n and_o be_v stark_o dumb_a be_v out_o of_o all_o danger_n and_o peril_n 28_o then_o rate_v they_o he_o and_o say_v be_v thou_o his_o disciple_n we_o be_v moses_n disciple_n bu_n the_o pharisées_fw-fr being_n great_o move_v and_o displease_v with_o the_o boldness_n of_o the_o beggar_n answer_v nothing_o but_o only_o rate_v and_o reproove_v he_o the_o euanngeliste_n do_v not_o express_v and_o name_v the_o reproach_n and_o taunt_n which_o these_o holy_a man_n use_v against_o this_o blind_a man_n m._n but_o it_o be_v like_a that_o whatsoever_o the_o furious_a madness_n of_o anger_n may_v move_v they_o to_o speak_v that_o they_o utter_v against_o he_o in_o great_a displeasure_n and_o among_o many_o this_o be_v one_o that_o they_o call_v he_o a_o forsaker_n of_o the_o law_n for_o in_o their_o judgement_n he_o can_v not_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o must_v forsake_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n set_v these_o two_o as_o one_o repugnaunt_a to_o the_o other_o c._n even_o as_o do_v the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n who_o let_v not_o to_o oppose_v and_o set_v the_o mother_n church_n against_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n i7_n 2._o cor._n 3_o i7_n a._n thus_o hypocrite_n be_v wont_v to_o rent_n and_o tear_n god_n when_o they_o collerable_o pretend_v his_o name_n if_o so_o be_v christ_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o law_n as_o paul_n teach_v what_o shall_v the_o law_n be_v be_v separate_v from_o he_o but_o a_o dead_a body_n by_o this_o example_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o god_n be_v not_o true_o hear_v of_o any_o man_n but_o of_o he_o which_o geve_v attentive_a heed_n unto_o his_o voice_n and_o understand_v what_o he_o speak_v and_o what_o he_o mean_v r._n wherefore_o we_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o wicked_a hypocrisy_n very_o well_o depaynt_v to_o we_o in_o these_o word_n for_o hypocrisy_n boast_v of_o god_n boast_v of_o the_o father_n observe_v nothing_o less_o than_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o father_n so_o also_o the_o phariseis_n profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o moses_n and_o yet_o beléeve_v not_o the_o word_n of_o moses_n i5_n deu._n i8_n i5_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v a_o prophet_n will_v i_o raise_v up_o from_o among_o your_o brother_n m._n see_v therefore_o moses_n be_v only_o a_o scoolmayster_n direct_v his_o disciple_n unto_o christ_n if_o so_o be_v they_o have_v be_v his_o very_a discipl_n they_o will_v have_v now_o forsake_v moses_n and_o cleave_v unto_o christ_n but_o they_o will_v neither_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o moses_n nor_o yet_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n 29._o we_o be_v sure_a that_o god_n speak_v unto_o moses_n as_o for_o this_o fellow_n we_o know_v not_o from_o whence_o he_o be_v as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v make_v he_o our_o master_n moses_n be_v our_o master_n and_o teach_v we_o who_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o god_n have_v send_v approve_v the_o same_o by_o many_o and_o sundry_a sign_n but_o from_o whence_o this_o fellow_n be_v come_v we_o know_v not_o nay_o see_v he_o be_v lewd_a and_o wicked_a we_o conjecture_v and_o gather_v that_o he_o be_v not_o send_v of_o god_n at_o all_o c._n this_o therefore_o which_o they_o say_v that_o they_o know_v not_o christ_n from_o whence_o he_o be_v be_v not_o refer_v to_o his_o country_n or_o native_a place_n but_o to_o the_o prophetical_a office_n for_o they_o allege_v that_o they_o have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o this_o vocation_n that_o they_o may_v receyve_v he_o as_o a_o prophet_n send_v of_o god_n m._n they_o boast_v that_o they_o know_v how_o that_o god_n speak_v unto_o moses_n but_o it_o be_v also_o require_v that_o they_o shall_v know_v what_o god_n speak_v unto_o moses_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o only_o know_v it_o but_o also_o shall_v embrace_v it_o with_o faith_n and_o obedience_n and_o shall_v embrace_v not_o such_o part_n thereof_o as_o please_v they_o but_o everye_o whit_n of_o it_o and_o shall_v interpret_v the_o fame_n not_o after_o their_o own_o scence_n and_o imagination_n but_o according_a to_o the_o true_a scence_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o they_o have_v do_v these_o thing_n they_o have_v not_o reject_v christ_n let_v they_o note_n and_o mark_v this_o clause_n which_o grant_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o boath_n testament_n have_v the_o aucthorytie_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o do_v little_a regard_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o except_o it_o be_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o serve_v for_o their_o turn_n that_o which_o nicodemus_n speak_v differ_v far_o from_o this_o say_n of_o the_o phariseis_n which_o affirm_v that_o they_o know_v not_o from_o whence_o the_o lord_n come_v for_o he_o say_v we_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o teacher_n send_v from_o god_n for_o no_o man_n can_v do_v these_o sign_n which_o thou_o do_v except_v god_n be_v with_o he_o 30._o the_o man_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o this_o be_v a_o marvellous_a thing_n that_o you_o wot_v not_o from_o whence_o he_o be_v and_o yet_o he_o have_v open_v my_o eye_n bu_n as_o they_o dispute_v the_o faith_n of_o this_o beggar_n increase_v god_n increase_v grace_n in_o his_o heart_n whereby_o he_o boulde_o contemn_v all_o his_o adversary_n and_o despise_v all_o peril_n as_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v wont_a to_o do_v publikelye_o take_v upon_o he_o when_o the_o matter_n so_o require_v to_o defend_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o confute_v the_o corrupt_a toy_n and_o trifle_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr m._n concern_v moses_n he_o answer_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o they_o make_v mention_v of_o he_o beside_o the_o purpose_n but_o he_o answer_v to_o those_o thing_n where_o they_o say_v that_o they_o know_v not_o from_o whence_o jesus_n be_v and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o sinner_n c._n therefore_o he_o overthwartlye_o rob_v they_o for_o that_o they_o be_v nothing_o move_v with_o so_o notable_a a_o miracle_n fain_o that_o the_o call_n of_o christ_n be_v unknown_a unto_o they_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o so_o notable_a a_o proof_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n shall_v be_v nothing_o regard_v and_o that_o the_o vocation_n of_o christ_n so_o confirm_v and_o approve_a shall_v notwithstanding_o have_v no_o credit_n with_o they_o bu_n i_o marvel_v say_v he_o that_o you_o know_v not_o from_o whence_o jesus_n i_o illuminator_fw-la come_v r_o i_o can_v hardly_o be_v persuade_v to_o believe_v that_o you_o know_v not_o from_o whence_o he_o be_v when_o his_o work_n declare_v that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o god_n c._n also_o the_o more_o he_o urge_v their_o gross_a dulness_n and_o malice_n the_o more_o he_o reason_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n 31._o for_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o god_n hear_v not_o sinner_n but_o if_o any_o man_n be_v a_o worshipper_n of_o god_n and_o obedient_a unto_o his_o will_n he_o hear_v he_o bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v even_o now_o you_o object_v unto_o i_o that_o jesus_n be_v a_o wicked_a and_o lewd_a person_n tell_v i_o i_o pray_v you_o whether_o god_n hear_v godly_a or_o ungodlye_a and_o wicked_a man_n all_o man_n say_v that_o god_n hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o refuse_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o wicked_a the_o godly_a by_o faith_n know_v god_n by_o faith_n they_o call_v upon_o god_n and_o by_o
appear_v in_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o gospel_n be_v blind_a not_o only_o because_o their_o foolishness_n be_v uncover_v which_o before_o lay_v hide_v under_o the_o darckenes_n of_o infidelity_n but_o also_o because_o they_o be_v plunge_v by_o the_o just_a vengeance_n of_o god_n in_o deep_a darkness_n do_v loose_v that_o little_a light_n which_o be_v leave_v unto_o they_o we_o be_v all_o bear_v blind_a but_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o in_o the_o darkness_n of_o corrupt_a &_o defile_a nature_n there_o appear_v still_o sertain_a spark_n that_o man_n may_v differ_v from_o brute_n beast_n now_o if_o proud_a reason_n be_v puff_v up_o with_o trust_n and_o confydence_n of_o itself_o do_v refuse_v to_o submit_v itself_o unto_o god_n it_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v wise_a without_o christ_n but_o the_o bryghtnes_n of_o christ_n at_o the_o length_n shall_v make_v the_o same_o foolishness_n because_o then_o the_o vanity_n of_o man_n mind_n do_v begin_v to_o appear_v when_o heavenly_a wisdom_n do_v reveal_v itself_o but_o our_o savioure_n christ_n have_v a_o far_a matter_n to_o express_v in_o these_o word_n for_o ypocrite_n be_v before_o christ_n do_v shine_v do_v not_o so_o obstinate_o resist_v and_o withstand_v god_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o light_n do_v shine_v more_o near_o they_o do_v make_v open_a war_n against_o god_n this_o wickedness_n and_o ingratitude_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o their_o blindness_n be_v double_v and_o that_o god_n which_o before_o have_v but_o take_v away_o the_o light_n from_o their_o eye_n do_v now_o thrust_v they_o out_o altogether_o now_o let_v we_o note_n the_o sum_n of_o this_o place_n which_o be_v that_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o illuminate_v the_o blind_a to_o bring_v those_o quite_o and_o clean_o out_o of_o their_o wit_n which_o seem_v wise_a in_o their_o own_o conceit_n m._n it_o be_v no_o merueile_v therefore_o if_o the_o phariseis_n see_v not_o that_o which_o this_o blind_a man_n see_v when_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v of_o god_n who_o the_o blind_a man_n and_o simple_a idiot_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n know_v to_o come_v from_o god_n because_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n those_o wise_a man_n be_v blind_v by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o those_o which_o see_v not_o of_o blind_a be_v make_v to_o see_v c._n and_o in_o the_o former_a place_n christ_n make_v mention_v of_o illumination_n because_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a cause_n of_o his_o come_n for_o he_o come_v not_o to_o judge_v the_o world_n but_o rather_o that_o the_o world_n may_v be_v save_v by_o he_o 3.17_o joh._n 3.17_o also_o this_o vengeance_n or_o judgement_n be_v not_o restrain_v to_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n as_o though_o he_o do_v not_o daily_o bring_v this_o to_o pass_v by_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n we_o ought_v to_o take_v the_o more_o heed_n lest_o any_o of_o we_o by_o our_o vain_a and_o mad_a opinion_n bring_v this_o horrible_a punishment_n upon_o us._n but_o experience_n do_v teach_v how_o true_o christ_n have_v utter_v this_o sentence_n for_o we_o do_v see_v that_o many_o be_v strike_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o giddiness_n and_o madness_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o only_o for_o that_o they_o can_v abide_v the_o rise_a son_n of_o righteousness_n the_o wicked_a in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n receive_v this_o punishment_n for_o the_o prophet_n be_v send_v to_o blind_v the_o people_n 6.9_o esay_n 6.9_o that_o see_v they_o may_v not_o see_v 40._o and_o some_o of_o the_o phariseis_n which_o be_v with_o he_o hear_v these_o word_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o be_v we_o blind_v also_o bu_n this_o beggar_n be_v make_v a_o example_n for_o they_o which_o in_o deed_n be_v stark_o blind_a notwithstanding_o they_o acknowledge_v their_o blindness_n and_o ignorance_n and_o be_v illuminate_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o phariseis_n be_v make_v a_o example_n which_o think_v themselves_o just_a and_o holy_a seem_v in_o their_o own_o conceit_n wise_a enough_o and_o therefore_o they_o come_v not_o unto_o christ_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n they_o abide_v in_o blindness_n and_o in_o the_o darkness_n of_o error_n and_o sin_n even_o as_o the_o evangelist_n show_v afterward_o in_o plain_a word_n c._n they_o perceyve_v that_o they_o be_v wound_v by_o that_o say_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v of_o the_o worst_a because_o the_o open_a and_o swear_v enemy_n of_o christ_n do_v so_o abhor_v christ_n that_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o join_v themselves_o unto_o he_o but_o these_o can_v abide_v to_o hear_v christ_n but_o yet_o without_o profit_n because_o no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o near_a disciple_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o which_o forsake_v himself_o from_o the_o which_o these_o man_n be_v very_o far_o m._n they_o will_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v blind_a though_o they_o be_v stark_o blind_a for_o they_o will_v neither_o be_v reckon_v among_o they_o who_o be_v blind_a the_o lord_n make_v to_o see_v nor_o amongst_o other_o which_o see_v who_o the_o lord_n make_v blind_a wherefore_o because_o they_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o pride_n they_o think_v that_o they_o shall_v receive_v great_a injury_n if_o so_o be_v they_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o blind_a burst_v forth_o and_o say_v be_v we_o blind_v also_o c._n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v can_v thou_o not_o make_v thyself_o famous_a but_o by_o our_o reproach_n be_v this_o to_o be_v suffer_v that_o thou_o shall_v get_v honour_n to_o thyself_o by_o our_o contumely_n and_o whereas_o thou_o do_v promise_v light_n to_o the_o blind_a get_v thou_o hence_o and_o avaunt_v with_o thy_o goodness_n for_o we_o will_v not_o be_v illuminate_v of_o thou_o upon_o this_o condition_n that_o we_o shall_v grant_v unto_o thou_o that_o we_o have_v be_v hitherto_o blind_a m._n do_v thou_o think_v no_o better_o of_o we_o than_o thou_o do_v of_o the_o common_a unlearned_a sort_n of_o people_n do_v thou_o think_v we_o to_o be_v blind_a man_n like_v unto_o other_o unskilful_a person_n see_v we_o have_v the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o be_v the_o master_n and_o teacher_n of_o other_o man_n thou_o come_v to_o geve_v sight_n thou_o say_v unto_o the_o blind_a but_o thou_o be_v a_o seducer_n of_o the_o blind_a thou_o seduce_v the_o blind_a unlearned_a multitude_n but_o thou_o can_v not_o so_o deceive_v we_o which_o be_v not_o blind_a hereby_o we_o may_v see_v that_o hypocrisy_n be_v always_o proud_a and_o spiteful_a it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o pride_n that_o they_o stand_v in_o their_o own_o conceit_n will_v have_v no_o part_n of_o their_o estimation_n deminish_v and_o it_o be_v a_o token_n of_o spite_n that_o when_o their_o disease_n be_v discover_v they_o be_v more_o offend_v at_o christ_n even_o as_o if_o he_o have_v more_o deep_o wound_v they_o hereof_o come_v the_o contempt_n boath_n of_o christ_n and_o also_o of_o his_o grace_n which_o he_o offer_v in_o this_o word_n also_o there_o be_v contain_v we_o a_o great_a emphasis_n and_o force_n thereby_o declare_v that_o although_o all_o other_o be_v blind_a yet_o they_o take_v it_o in_o evell_a part_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v reckon_v among_o the_o common_a sort_n this_o be_v a_o fault_n to_o common_a in_o those_o which_o excel_v other_o who_o be_v drunken_a with_o disdain_n do_v almost_o forget_v themselves_o that_o they_o be_v man_n 41._o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o if_o you_o be_v blind_a he_o shall_v have_v no_o sin_n but_o now_o you_o say_v we_o see_v therefore_o your_o sin_n remain_v m._n the_o lord_n do_v so_o beat_v the_o phariseis_n with_o their_o own_o rod_n that_o he_o condemn_v upon_o they_o their_o own_o mouth_n and_o prove_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o he_o have_v speak_v c._n howbeit_o these_o word_n have_v a_o double_a meaning_n and_o understand_v either_o that_o ignorance_n do_v somewhat_o mitigate_v their_o fault_n except_o they_o be_v plain_o convince_a do_v seek_v to_o resist_v the_o truth_n or_o else_o that_o the_o disease_n of_o ignorance_n be_v curable_a in_o they_o if_o so_o be_v they_o do_v acknowledge_v he_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n hereafter_o confirm_v the_o former_a sentence_n where_o christ_n say_v 22_o john_n i5_n 22_o if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o they_o have_v have_v no_o sin_n âª_o etc._n etc._n but_o because_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n but_o now_o they_o say_v that_o they_o see_v this_o seem_v better_a to_o agree_v if_o we_o say_v that_o he_o be_v blind_a who_o know_v his_o own_o blindness_n seek_v remedy_n for_o the_o disease_n and_o then_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o sum_n if_o you_o know_v your_o evel_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v altogether_o incurable_a but_o now_o because_o you_o think_v
his_o doctrine_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a fault_n and_o blame_n of_o ignorance_n rest_v in_o they_o which_o be_v negligent_a and_o disobedient_a and_o withal_o he_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o messiah_n and_o show_v the_o cause_n unto_o the_o jew_n why_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o same_o c._n christ_n do_v not_o make_v semblaunt_o as_o though_o he_o be_v christ_n neither_o yet_o do_v he_o teach_v they_o as_o though_o they_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v teach_v but_o do_v rather_o cast_v their_o malice_n in_o their_o tooth_n in_o the_o which_o they_o be_v obstinate_a because_o hitherto_o they_o have_v profit_v nothing_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o word_n and_o work_n of_o god_n he_o impute_v it_o therefore_o unto_o their_o fault_n that_o he_o be_v not_o know_v of_o they_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v my_o doctrine_n of_o itself_o be_v easy_a enough_o to_o be_v understand_v but_o the_o fault_n be_v in_o you_o because_o you_o do_v malicious_o withstand_v god_n by_o who_o word_n only_a man_n be_v teach_v that_o i_o be_o christ_n wherefore_o see_v you_o only_o behold_v my_o contemptible_a show_n and_o base_a condition_n because_o i_o come_v not_o in_o kingly_a pomp_n as_o you_o look_v for_o it_o can_v be_v that_o you_o shall_v believe_v my_o word_n but_o go_v to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o my_o personne_fw-fr as_o the_o law_n command_v that_o no_o man_n person_n shall_v be_v know_v in_o judgement_n and_o take_v hold_n of_o my_o word_n and_o judge_v according_a to_o my_o word_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o outward_a show_n and_o then_o it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o you_o shall_v believe_v the_o work_n that_o i_o do_v c._n he_o speak_v of_o work_n also_o that_o he_o may_v convince_v they_o of_o double_a obstinacye_n for_o beside_o his_o doctrine_n they_o have_v evident_a testimony_n in_o miracle_n if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v to_o unthankful_a unto_o god_n when_o he_o add_v in_o my_o father_n name_n m._n he_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v also_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n and_o to_o reject_v christ_n be_v to_o reject_v the_o father_n bu_n the_o same_o argument_n also_o he_o use_v in_o the_o fifte_a chapter_n go_v before_o 26._o but_o you_o believe_v not_o because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o my_o sheep_n as_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o m._n secondlye_o he_o say_v you_o believe_v not_o for_o unbeléefe_n be_v reprehensible_a when_o man_n believe_v not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o most_o excellent_a shepherd_n the_o which_o in_o the_o word_n go_v before_o he_o object_v unto_o they_o and_o this_o incredulity_n be_v inexcusable_a when_o man_n believe_v not_o the_o work_n of_o god_n even_o as_o he_o himself_o will_v declare_v hereafter_o in_o plain_a word_n say_v i5_n joh._n i5_n if_o so_o be_v i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o have_v not_o speak_v unto_o they_o they_o have_v have_v no_o sin_n etc._n etc._n but_o now_o he_o allege_v a_o far_a cause_n why_o they_o beléeve_v neither_o his_o miracle_n nor_o his_o doctrine_n name_o because_o they_o be_v reprobate_n and_o we_o must_v note_n the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n for_o because_o they_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n lest_o their_o unbeléefe_n shall_v derogate_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o gospel_n he_o pronounce_v that_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n be_v special_a and_o very_o to_o the_o end_n man_n may_v know_v god_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o first_o of_o all_o know_v themselves_o 4.9_o galat._n 4.9_o as_o say_v the_o apostle_n paul_n also_o they_o to_o who_o god_n have_v no_o respect_n must_v needs_o be_v always_o far_o from_o he_o m._n whereby_o we_o gather_v that_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v christ_n i.i._n titu_fw-la i.i._n which_o pertain_v not_o unto_o christ_n therefore_o the_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o faith_n of_o goat_n of_o dog_n or_o of_o swine_n but_o of_o sheep_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o elect_a as_o say_v the_o apostle_n bu_n the_o reprobate_n have_v no_o simple_a disposition_n and_o apt_a to_o be_v teach_v but_o a_o hard_a variable_a wanton_a corrupt_a and_o perverse_a disposition_n because_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v purge_v and_o restore_v r._n they_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n which_z hear_v christ_n voice_n the_o phariseis_n hear_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n for_o they_o know_v his_o person_n but_o not_o his_o word_n therefore_o they_o neither_o be_v his_o sheep_n neither_o believe_v nor_o be_v save_v c._n if_o any_o man_n shall_v murmuringlye_o object_n and_o say_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o unbeléefe_n rest_v in_o god_n because_o it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n only_o to_o make_v sheep_n we_o must_v answer_v that_o he_o be_v free_a from_o all_o blame_n see_v man_n by_o their_o own_o voluntarye_a wickedness_n reject_v his_o grace_n god_n get_v so_o much_o faith_n unto_o himself_o as_o suffice_v but_o the_o wild_a beast_n be_v never_o tame_a untyll_o such_o time_n as_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o be_v turn_v into_o sheep_n they_z which_o be_v such_o shall_v seek_v in_o vain_a to_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o their_o madness_n upon_o god_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o their_o own_o nature_n to_o be_v short_a christ_n geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o so_o be_v he_o have_v few_o that_o embrace_v his_o gospel_n because_o so_o many_o as_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n be_v untamed_a and_o wild_a beast_n wherefore_o it_o be_v much_o more_o unméete_a and_o absurd_a that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v depend_v upon_o the_o faith_n of_o man_n but_o rather_o let_v the_o faithful_a way_n and_o consider_v how_o much_o more_o they_o be_v bind_v unto_o god_n than_o they_o which_o be_v blind_a when_o as_o they_o themselves_o by_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v draw_v unto_o christ_n m._n hereby_o also_o we_o see_v that_o we_o must_v not_o by_o and_o by_o conceal_v the_o truth_n before_o those_o which_o believe_v not_o for_o although_o the_o unbeléeving_n be_v unworthy_a to_o hear_v the_o same_o and_o be_v none_o of_o the_o elect_v yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v so_o appoint_v by_o god_n that_o the_o gospel_n of_o grace_n shall_v also_o be_v preach_v to_o the_o reprobate_n and_o unbeléeving_a not_o because_o there_o be_v any_o hope_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v but_o because_o it_o be_v so_o meet_a that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n shall_v above_o all_o other_o thing_n shine_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n as_o do_v this_o visible_a son_n and_o also_o take_v from_o they_o all_o excuse_n that_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n may_v be_v just_a by_o which_o the_o unbelieve_a shall_v be_v damn_v last_o of_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v here_o wherewithal_o to_o comfort_v themselves_o if_o so_o be_v their_o labour_n be_v not_o profitable_a to_o all_o man_n 27._o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o i_o know_v they_o and_o they_o follow_v i_o m._n christ_n do_v not_o in_o vain_a repeat_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o of_o the_o pastor_n for_o this_o be_v a_o great_a consolation_n in_o adversitye_n that_o christ_n be_v our_o sheaphearde_n and_o that_o we_o be_v his_o sheep_n c._n now_o therefore_o he_o prove_v by_o the_o contrary_n that_o they_o be_v none_o of_o his_o sheep_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n for_o those_o who_o god_n have_v elect_v he_o effectual_o call_v and_o so_o by_o faith_n the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n be_v prove_v and_o therefore_o the_o name_n of_o sheep_n be_v give_v to_o the_o faithful_a because_o they_o submit_v themselves_o to_o be_v govern_v under_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o most_o mighty_a sheaphearde_n and_o forsake_v their_o former_a brutish_a wildenesse_n do_v show_v themselves_o tractable_a and_o obedient_a b._n by_o these_o word_n christ_n plain_o teach_v that_o all_o thing_n depend_v upon_o the_o divine_a election_n and_o that_o they_o to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v to_o be_v sheep_n can_v never_o perish_v for_o in_o this_o place_n we_o do_v hear_v that_o they_o only_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v do_v receyve_v the_o same_o by_o faith_n which_o be_v sheep_n now_o whereof_o shall_v it_o come_v that_o some_o be_v sheep_n that_o be_v to_o say_v capable_a of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o other_o not_o no_o doubt_n because_o the_o one_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o other_o not_o so_o for_o the_o apostle_n paul_n do_v attribute_v the_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n i4_n i_o cor._n 2_o i4_n to_o such_o as_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n
meet_v christ_n that_o she_o may_v secret_o entertain_v he_o because_o he_o have_v but_o late_o escape_v out_o of_o peril_n and_o the_o fury_n of_o his_o enemy_n be_v scarce_o appease_v which_o be_v a_o little_a mitigate_v by_o his_o departure_n into_o galilee_n by_o the_o hear_n of_o his_o return_n again_o may_v have_v more_o violent_o burst_v forth_o but_o mary_n sit_v still_o in_o the_o house_n m_o mary_n know_v not_o of_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o if_o she_o have_v no_o doubt_n she_o will_v have_v go_v forth_o with_o her_o sister_n to_o meet_v he_o 21._o then_o say_v martha_n unto_o jesus_n lord_n if_o thou_o have_v be_v here_o my_o brother_n have_v not_o dye_v m._n it_o beseem_v he_o which_o receive_v and_o entertain_v a_o guest_n to_o use_v frendlye_a word_n in_o salute_v and_o welcom_v that_o so_o he_o may_v declare_v his_o good_a will_n and_o fren_z hart_n so_o martha_n here_o speak_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o she_o begin_v with_o a_o complaint_n howbeit_o by_o this_o mean_v she_o do_v modest_o declare_v her_o mind_n as_o if_o she_o shall_v say_v thou_o lord_n by_o thy_o presence_n can_v have_v deliver_v my_o brother_n from_o death_n yea_o thou_o can_v do_v it_o yet_o because_o god_n will_v deny_v thou_o nothing_o and_o speak_v thus_o she_o do_v rather_o follow_v her_o affection_n then_o keep_v she_o under_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n for_o these_o word_n partly_o proceed_v from_o faith_n but_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v mix_v therewith_o which_o carry_v she_o yond_o her_o bond_n for_o in_o that_o she_o persuade_v herself_o that_o her_o brother_n shall_v not_o have_v dye_v if_o so_o be_v christ_n have_v be_v present_a where_o learn_v she_o so_o to_o believe_v very_o it_o be_v not_o conceive_v of_o any_o promise_n of_o christ_n it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o she_o rather_o fulfil_v she_o own_o desire_n than_o obay_v christ_n it_o proceed_v of_o faith_n that_o she_o attribute_v unto_o christ_n power_n and_o great_a goodness_n but_o in_o that_o she_o persuade_v herself_o of_o more_o than_o she_o have_v receive_v or_o hear_v of_o christ_n she_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o faith_n for_o we_o must_v always_o observe_v the_o mutual_a consent_n and_o agreement_n between_o the_o word_n and_o faith_n lest_o a_o man_n persuade_v himself_o of_o any_o thing_n without_o the_o warrant_v of_o god_n word_n moreover_o it_o may_v be_v that_o martha_n lean_v to_o much_o to_o the_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n therefore_o the_o faith_n of_o martha_n be_v mix_v with_o immoderate_a desire_n and_o not_o altogether_o free_a from_o superstition_n can_v not_o perfect_o shine_v only_o the_o spark_n thereof_o appear_v in_o these_o word_n she_o reckon_v christ_n among_o the_o man_n of_o god_n who_o prayer_n be_v hear_v and_o who_o obtain_v many_o thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n for_o if_o so_o be_v she_o have_v have_v the_o true_a understanding_n of_o his_o power_n she_o will_v rather_o have_v say_v i_o know_v that_o nothing_o be_v impossible_a unto_o thou_o but_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o this_o imperfection_n of_o faith_n in_o martha_n and_o in_o other_o neither_o do_v he_o severe_o reject_v the_o same_o but_o bear_v patient_o with_o it_o and_o when_o he_o see_v convenient_a time_n increase_v the_o same_o this_o méeknesse_n and_o patience_n the_o apostle_n set_v before_o we_o to_o follow_v say_v he_o that_o be_v week_n in_o the_o faith_n receive_v 23._o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o thy_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o m._n the_o lord_n make_v no_o answer_n to_o martha_n complain_v of_o his_o absence_n for_o he_o rather_o desyered_a to_o show_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o absence_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o raise_n up_o the_o dead_a man_n than_o by_o his_o word_n c._n but_o the_o clemency_n of_o christ_n be_v wonderful_a who_o bear_v with_o the_o infirmity_n of_o martha_n in_o those_o thing_n aforesaid_a of_o himself_o promise_v more_o unto_o she_o than_o she_o herself_o dare_v open_o and_o preciselye_o ask_v m._n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v be_v of_o good_a cheer_n i_o know_v what_o thou_o will_v have_v thou_o shall_v have_v thy_o desyer_n thou_o shall_v receive_v thy_o brother_n bu_n thou_o do_v believe_v that_o i_o be_v a_o good_a man_n and_o one_o in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n can_v easy_o obtain_v at_o his_o hand_n what_o i_o will_v yea_o if_o it_o be_v life_n for_o thy_o bury_a brother_n but_o i_o promise_v now_o unto_o thou_o that_o thy_o brother_n shall_v arise_v again_o by_o the_o power_n of_o i_o which_o i_o have_v of_o the_o father_n m._n all_o they_o have_v to_o note_n this_o word_n of_o consolation_n which_o be_v sorrowful_a for_o the_o departure_n of_o their_o friend_n out_o of_o this_o life_n let_v they_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o hear_v this_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n thy_o father_n shall_v rise_v again_o thy_o son_n shall_v rise_v again_o thy_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o and_o thy_o friend_n shall_v rise_v again_o moreover_o in_o that_o he_o say_v not_o plain_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o but_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o it_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o modesty_n and_o humility_n which_o the_o lord_n teach_v every_o where_n 24._o martha_n say_v unto_o he_o i_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o in_o the_o resurrection_n at_o the_o last_o day_n again_o martha_n bewray_v the_o weakness_n of_o her_o faith_n for_o a_o weak_a faith_n look_v for_o nothing_o but_o common_a chance_n and_o fortune_n but_o true_a faith_n have_v not_o respect_n unto_o common_a course_n but_o to_o god_n promise_n c._n here_o therefore_o the_o exceed_a fearfulness_n of_o martha_n bewray_v itself_o in_o that_o she_o do_v extenuate_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n we_o say_v a_o lit_o before_o that_o she_o go_v far_o than_o be_v meet_v when_o by_o she_o own_o fantasy_n she_o imagine_v a_o sertaine_a hope_n to_o herself_o and_o now_o she_o be_v slipte_v into_o the_o contrary_a vice_n who_o when_o christ_n reched_a forth_o his_o hand_n unto_o she_o stand_v still_o tremble_v wherefore_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n unto_o ourselves_o lest_o we_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n ground_n our_o hope_n upon_o this_o or_o that_o when_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n and_o again_o lest_o the_o lord_n open_v his_o mouth_n shall_v find_v our_o heart_n to_o close_v and_o straight_o shut_v a._n but_o we_o see_v that_o when_o christ_n teach_v martha_n she_o hear_v he_o not_o without_o some_o fruit_n m._n worldling_n faith_n of_o the_o resurrection_n deride_v by_o worldling_n for_o first_o of_o all_o she_o beléeve_v that_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v one_o day_n come_v this_o faith_n the_o child_n of_o this_o world_n do_v deride_v and_o mock_v who_o think_v that_o this_o world_n will_v continue_v and_o abide_v for_o ever_o second_o she_o beléeve_v that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v in_o the_o last_o day_n this_o faith_n the_o saduceis_n do_v not_o alow_o neither_o can_v human_a reason_n comprehend_v the_o same_o and_o she_o do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v but_o i_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o in_o the_o last_o day_n so_o job_n speak_v i_o know_v that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v and_o that_o i_o shall_v rise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o last_o day_n m._n and_o of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n of_o all_o man_n she_o take_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o special_a resurrection_n of_o her_o brother_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n also_o let_v we_o gather_v all_o man_n shall_v rise_v again_o therefore_o i_o also_o shall_v rise_v again_o they_o shall_v rise_v again_o to_o everlasting_a life_n which_o believe_v in_o christ_n therefore_o i_o also_o shall_v rise_v again_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n do_v pardon_n and_o forgeve_v the_o penytent_n and_o beléeve_a therefore_o also_o he_o will_v pardon_v and_o forgeve_v i_o god_n will_v not_o forsake_v those_o that_o trust_v in_o he_o therefore_o he_o will_v not_o forsake_v i_o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a therefore_o he_o will_v resist_v the_o pride_n of_o antichrist_n c._n by_o this_o answer_n martha_n will_v have_v speak_v more_o than_o she_o dare_v hope_n for_o by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o if_o she_o shall_v say_v if_o so_o be_v thou_o speak_v and_o mean_v of_o the_o last_o resurrection_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o my_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o in_o the_o last_o day_n and_o upon_o trust_n hereof_o i_o comfort_v myself_o but_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o thou_o give_v i_o to_o understande_v some_o great_a matter_n yea_o or_o no._n 25._o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o yea_o
jesus_n therefore_o see_v she_o weep_v and_o the_o jew_n also_o weep_v which_o come_v with_o she_o he_o groan_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o be_v trouble_v in_o himself_o bu_n the_o lord_n answer_v nothing_o to_o the_o complaint_n of_o mary_n for_o he_o have_v reason_v the_o matter_n sufficient_o with_o martha_n to_o who_o he_o have_v promise_v notable_a thing_n as_o that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o lazarus_n shall_v be_v raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n again_o wherefore_o the_o time_n and_o occasion_n be_v now_o come_v not_o to_o dispute_v far_o of_o the_o resurrection_n but_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o he_o have_v promise_v b._n furthermore_o when_o he_o see_v marye_n altogether_o in_o morning_n and_o the_o jew_n to_o mourn_v and_o weep_v with_o she_o also_o the_o present_a weep_a so_o move_v he_o that_o he_o himself_o weep_v also_o b._n thus_o he_o do_v sorrow_n with_o those_o that_o sorrow_v and_o declare_v himself_o both_o to_o be_v a_o very_a man_n and_o also_o endue_v with_o true_a love_n the_o cause_n of_o such_o affection_n the_o evangelist_n express_v when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o weep_v when_o he_o see_v mary_n &_o the_o rest_n weep_v howbeit_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o have_v a_o far_a respect_n name_o to_o the_o common_a misery_n of_o mankind_n for_o he_o remember_v the_o charge_n commit_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n and_o wherefore_o he_o be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n name_o that_o he_o may_v deliver_v we_o from_o all_o evyll_n this_o as_o he_o do_v in_o very_a deed_n so_o he_o will_v show_v that_o he_o do_v the_o same_o with_o the_o serious_a affection_n of_o the_o mind_n therefore_o he_o go_v about_o to_o raise_v up_o lazarus_n mankind_n christ_n lament_v the_o misery_n of_o mankind_n testify_v with_o groan_v in_o the_o spirit_n with_o grief_n and_o with_o tear_n that_o he_o be_v no_o less_o affect_v and_o grieve_v for_o our_o misery_n than_o if_o he_o have_v be_v in_o the_o same_o himself_o for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n 4._o heb._n 4._o will_v also_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n take_v upon_o he_o our_o affection_n that_o he_o may_v differre_fw-la nothing_o from_o his_o brethren_n but_o in_o sin_n only_o and_o herein_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v our_o brother_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o we_o have_v such_o a_o mediator_n as_o know_v easy_o how_o to_o have_v compassion_n upon_o our_o infirmity_n he_o himself_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o the_o same_o in_o his_o flesh_n if_o any_o man_n object_n and_o say_v question_v see_v the_o passion_n of_o man_n be_v vicious_a it_o be_v not_o convenient_a that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o they_o with_o we_o we_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o christ_n and_o us._n aunsware_v aunsware_v for_o therefore_o our_o affection_n be_v vicious_a because_o they_o exceed_v and_o have_v no_o measure_n but_o the_o affection_n in_o christ_n because_o they_o tend_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o god_n and_o do_v not_o exceed_v be_v without_o blame_n or_o fault_n for_o if_o so_o be_v thou_o compare_v his_o passion_n with_o we_o thou_o shall_v find_v so_o great_a difference_n between_o they_o as_o there_o be_v between_o fair_a spring_a water_n and_o foul_a dyrtye_n puddle_n christ_n great_o trouble_v himself_o and_o be_v much_o move_v but_o so_o notwithstanding_o that_o he_o keep_v he_o self_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o his_o father_n will_n bu_n to_o be_v short_a when_o saint_n john_n say_v that_o jesus_n groan_v in_o his_o spirit_n he_o mean_v that_o he_o be_v so_o move_v in_o the_o bowel_n of_o mercy_n that_o for_o the_o time_n he_o can_v not_o speak_v this_o motion_n always_o go_v before_o tear_n in_o such_o as_o be_v vehement_o affect_v for_o the_o like_a also_o we_o read_v of_o joseph_n 43.30_o ge._n 43.30_o who_o be_v move_v with_o compassion_n towards_o his_o brother_n seek_v where_o to_o weep_v 34._o and_o say_v where_o have_v you_o lay_v he_o they_o say_v lord_n come_v and_o see_v m._n this_o be_v not_o to_o so_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o christ_n know_v not_o in_o what_o place_n lazarus_n be_v bury_v for_o he_o who_o be_v so_o far_o of_o know_v without_o any_o man_n report_n that_o he_o be_v dead_a how_o can_v he_o also_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o place_n of_o his_o burial_n god_n forbid_v we_o shall_v suspect_v this_o in_o christ_n from_o who_o no_o man_n can_v keep_v himself_o how_o secréete_o soever_o he_o be_v hide_v he_o demand_v therefore_o this_o question_n not_o to_o learn_v but_o to_o avoid_v the_o wicked_a suspicion_n of_o the_o jew_n lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n fradulentlye_o in_o this_o matter_n 35._o and_o jesus_n weep_v m._n these_o tear_n come_v in_o very_o good_a order_n and_o time_n before_o the_o miracle_n that_o the_o infirmitye_n of_o the_o flesh_n may_v be_v join_v in_o this_o work_n with_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o if_o so_o be_v the_o divine_a majesty_n show_v in_o the_o raise_n uppe_o of_o lazarus_n shall_v discourage_v any_o from_o come_v to_o christ_n his_o weep_n pity_v and_o compassion_n may_v draw_v they_o back_o again_o and_o also_o that_o if_o so_o be_v any_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o infirmity_n of_o weep_v he_o may_v be_v move_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o his_o power_n in_o raise_v up_o lazarus_n 36._o then_o say_v the_o jew_n behold_v how_o he_o love_v he_o 37._o and_o some_o of_o they_o say_v can_v not_o he_o which_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a have_v make_v that_o this_o man_n also_o shall_v not_o have_v dye_v r._n parte_fw-la construe_v the_o tear_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o best_a and_o part_n to_o the_o worst_a c._n and_o saint_n john_n describe_v unto_o we_o a_o double_a judgement_n concern_v christ_n for_o these_o former_a sort_n which_o say_v behold_v how_o he_o love_v he_o although_o they_o think_v not_o so_o honourable_o of_o christ_n as_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v as_o attribute_v nothing_o unto_o he_o but_o that_o which_o be_v human_a do_v notwithstanding_o speak_v more_o indifferent_o and_o modest_o of_o he_o than_o the_o other_o who_o malicious_o murmur_v against_o he_o for_o that_o he_o do_v not_o save_v and_o keep_v lazarus_n from_o death_n for_o although_o they_o do_v commend_v the_o power_n of_o christ_n concern_v the_o which_o the_o other_o say_v nothing_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v not_o the_o same_o without_o a_o certain_a reproach_n hereby_o it_o do_v evidentlye_o enough_o appear_v that_o the_o miracle_n which_o christ_n have_v already_o wrought_v be_v very_o well_o know_v unto_o they_o but_o the_o more_o filthy_a be_v their_o ingratitude_n that_o they_o let_v not_o to_o make_v exclamation_n against_o he_o because_o in_o one_o part_n he_o cease_v and_o satisfy_v not_o their_o expectation_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n man_n have_v be_v always_o unthankful_a unto_o god_n &_o be_v unthankful_a still_o except_o he_o satisfy_v our_o desire_n in_o every_o point_n we_o fall_v by_o and_o by_o to_o murmur_a and_o grudge_v say_v see_v he_o have_v be_v always_o hitherto_o wont_a to_o help_v why_o do_v he_o now_o fail_v i_o so_o we_o read_v of_o the_o israelite_n when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n can_v god_n also_o geve_v meat_n unto_o his_o people_n in_o the_o wilderness_n behold_v he_o stroke_v the_o roche_n so_o that_o water_n gush_v out_o withal_o and_o can_v he_o geve_v bread_n also_o but_o this_o their_o murmur_a provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o anger_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v if_o we_o read_v the_o three_o score_n and_o eighteen_o psalm_n begin_v at_o the_o ninetéen_a verse_n 38._o jesus_n therefore_o again_o groan_v in_o himself_o and_o come_v to_o the_o grave_n it_o be_v a_o cave_n and_o a_o stone_n lay_v upon_o it_o c._n because_o christ_n come_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n not_o as_o a_o idle_a looker_n on_o but_o as_o a_o wrestler_n which_o prepare_v himself_o to_o try_v mastery_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o he_o groan_v again_o for_o the_o violent_a tyranny_n of_o death_n which_o he_o go_v about_o to_o overcome_v be_v before_o his_o eye_n m._n there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v that_o this_o groan_v proceed_v of_o disdain_n and_o displeasure_n because_o the_o unbelief_n of_o the_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v do_v offend_v he_o but_o the_o former_a reason_n seem_v to_o be_v more_o apt_a name_o because_o he_o have_v more_o regard_n to_o the_o matter_n itself_o than_o to_o man_n m._n we_o must_v also_o note_v here_o a_o example_n of_o patience_n he_o answer_v not_o the_o wicked_a one_o as_o he_o may_v have_v do_v and_o as_o they_o deserve_v neither_o do_v he_o cease_v from_o finish_v the_o work_n which_o he_o have_v
she_o have_v be_v void_a of_o faith_n upon_o just_a cause_n therefore_o he_o say_v not_o if_o thou_o believe_v thy_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o but_o thou_o shall_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n c_o and_o that_o not_o only_o because_o faith_n do_v open_v our_o eye_n that_o we_o may_v behold_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n shine_v in_o his_o work_n but_o because_o our_o faith_n make_v away_o for_o the_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o offer_v itself_o unto_o we_o as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o four_o score_n and_o one_o psalm_n begin_v at_o the_o eleven_o verse_n so_o again_o unbelief_n stop_v the_o access_n unto_o god_n and_o do_v as_o it_o be_v keep_v his_o hand_n fast_o shut_v for_o the_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v say_v in_o another_o place_n jesus_n can_v show_v no_o sign_n there_o 13.58_o mat._n 13.58_o because_o of_o their_o unbelief_n not_o that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o because_o they_o which_o do_v withstand_v the_o same_o by_o their_o wickedness_n so_o much_o as_o they_o can_v be_v unworthy_a to_o have_v he_o reveal_v unto_o they_o m._n he_o say_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n when_o he_o may_v have_v say_v my_o glory_n for_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o son_n also_o shall_v be_v gloryfy_v by_o this_o miracle_n as_o be_v say_v before_o but_o christ_n think_v it_o better_a to_o use_v this_o modesty_n that_o he_o may_v seem_v rather_o to_o seek_v his_o father_n glory_n than_o his_o own_o although_o his_o father_n glory_n and_o he_o be_v always_o join_v together_o 41._o then_o they_o take_v away_o the_o stone_n from_o the_o place_n where_o the_o dead_a be_v lay_v and_o jesus_n lyfte_v up_o his_o eye_n and_o say_v father_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v hear_v i_o then_o they_o take_v c._n now_o martha_n be_v content_v with_o this_o second_o say_n suffer_v the_o stone_n to_o be_v move_v she_o see_v nothing_o as_o yet_o but_o because_o she_o hear_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v not_o command_v the_o same_o in_o vain_a she_o willing_o obey_v he_o where_o the_o dead_a be_v lay_v m._n the_o evangelist_n think_v that_o he_o can_v not_o sufficient_o inculcate_v the_o death_n of_o lazarus_n that_o thereby_o he_o may_v make_v the_o glory_n oâ_n the_o power_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v boath_n the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n the_o more_o manifest_a and_o jesus_n lift_v up_o his_o eye_n christ_n talk_v with_o his_o father_n before_o he_o command_v the_o dead_a man_n and_o that_o he_o may_v declare_v that_o he_o talk_v with_o the_o father_n he_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n towards_o heaven_n bu_n to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o the_o very_a gesture_n of_o his_o body_n he_o may_v declare_v to_o the_o stander_n about_o he_o that_o the_o same_o which_o he_o do_v be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n who_o be_v the_o author_n and_o gever_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n c._n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o a_o good_a mind_n dispose_v to_o pray_v for_o if_o so_o be_v a_o man_n will_v true_o call_v upon_o god_n he_o must_v be_v join_v with_o he_o the_o which_o can_v be_v except_o he_o be_v lyft_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n and_o ascend_v above_o the_o heaven_n the_o which_o a_o man_n can_v do_v by_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n only_o for_o the_o hypocrite_n also_o do_v the_o like_a who_o be_v overwhelm_v in_o the_o fylthynesse_n of_o the_o flesh_n do_v seem_v by_o lift_v up_o of_o their_o eye_n and_o by_o wrthe_v of_o their_o face_n to_o draw_v heaven_n unto_o they_o but_o that_o which_o they_o do_v hipocritical_o the_o child_n of_o god_n must_v do_v sincere_o notwithstanding_o he_o which_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n toward_o heaven_n aught_o by_o his_o cogitation_n to_o include_v god_n there_o who_o be_v in_o every_o place_n fulfil_v both_o heaven_n and_o earth_n but_o because_o man_n mind_n can_v be_v free_a from_o groase_a imagination_n but_o that_o they_o will_v imagine_v some_o groase_n and_o base_a thing_n to_o be_v in_o god_n except_o it_o be_v when_o they_o be_v lyft_v up_o above_o the_o world_n the_o scripture_n call_v we_o thither_o and_o testify_v that_o the_o heaven_n be_v god_n seat_n i_o esay_n 66_o i_o but_o this_o lyft_a up_o of_o the_o eye_n be_v not_o such_o a_o ceremonye_n that_o true_a prayer_n shall_v not_o be_v acceptable_a without_o the_o same_o for_o the_o publican_n no_o doubt_n which_o look_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n do_v nevertheless_o by_o his_o faith_n pierce_v the_o heaven_n and_o yet_o this_o gesture_n be_v profitable_a for_o it_o styr_v up_o man_n to_o seek_v god_n and_o move_v the_o affection_n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o christ_n when_o he_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n towards_o heaven_n be_v rapte_v thither_o with_o great_a vehemency_n father_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v hear_v i_o bu_n the_o son_n be_v not_o so_o hear_v of_o the_o father_n as_o we_o be_v hear_v but_o after_o a_o more_o certain_a special_a manner_n for_o the_o father_n hear_v the_o son_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o will_n and_o power_n that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o son_n wyll_v not_o any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o his_o father_n neither_o stand_v he_o in_o need_n of_o any_o other_o foreign_a or_o external_a help_n c._n now_o therefore_o he_o begin_v with_o thankesgeve_a when_o as_o he_o have_v ask_v nothing_o but_o although_o the_o evangelist_n make_v no_o mention_v that_o he_o pray_v yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o first_o make_v his_o petition_n for_o otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o be_v hear_v and_o it_o be_v very_o credible_a that_o among_o those_o groaninge_n of_o the_o which_o the_o evangelist_n speak_v he_o pray_v now_o have_v obtain_v lazarus_n life_n he_o geve_v thanks_n to_o the_o father_n and_o in_o that_o he_o arrogate_v not_o this_o power_n to_o himself_o but_o attribute_v the_o same_o to_o his_o father_n as_o receive_v from_o he_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o father_n for_o to_o frame_v himself_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o man_n one_o while_o he_o prove_v and_o confirm_v his_o divinitye_n challenge_v unto_o himself_o whatsoever_o belong_v unto_o god_n another_o while_n be_v content_v with_o the_o personne_fw-fr of_o a_o man_n he_o geve_v the_o whole_a glory_n of_o the_o divinitye_n to_o the_o father_n 42._o howbeit_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o hear_v i_o always_o but_o because_o of_o the_o people_n which_o stand_v by_o i_o say_v it_o that_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o b._n he_o be_v sure_a already_o that_o his_o father_n will_v at_o his_o request_n restore_v lazarus_n to_o life_n therefore_o that_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n he_o give_v he_o thanks_n c._n and_o when_o he_o add_v that_o he_o know_v the_o same_o before_o he_o so_o do_v lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o be_v in_o so_o small_a favour_n with_o the_o father_n that_o he_o can_v not_o do_v what_o miracle_n he_o will_v at_o the_o first_o without_o stay_n therefore_o he_o declare_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o consent_n between_o he_o and_o the_o father_n that_o nothing_o be_v deny_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o he_o need_v not_o to_o have_v pray_v see_v he_o do_v that_o thing_n only_o which_o he_o know_v be_v command_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n but_o to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v the_o more_o evident_o appear_v unto_o man_n that_o this_o be_v a_o divine_a work_n in_o deed_n he_o therefore_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n b._n to_o be_v short_a he_o geve_v thanks_n unto_o the_o father_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o people_n testify_v that_o he_o wrought_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o father_n that_o he_o be_v always_o hear_v of_o the_o father_n and_o that_o his_o will_n and_o the_o father_n will_v be_v all_o one_o c._n if_o any_o man_n object_n and_o say_v why_o then_o do_v he_o not_o raise_v up_o all_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a we_o answer_v that_o god_n by_o his_o wisdom_n and_o counsel_n appoint_v so_o many_o miracle_n to_o be_v wrought_v and_o no_o more_o than_o shall_v serve_v for_o the_o approbation_n &_o confirmation_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o may_v believe_v b._n let_v we_o know_v that_o all_o the_o word_n and_o deed_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n belong_v to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n they_z which_o stóode_v by_o may_v in_o some_o sort_n know_v the_o father_n and_o yet_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o son_n therefore_o he_o pray_v before_o they_o that_o they_o may_v know_v
rest_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o begin_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o of_o so_o notable_a a_o miracle_n but_o when_o they_o have_v see_v the_o very_a same_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o beléeve_v that_o because_o of_o they_o they_o go_v about_o to_o betray_v he_o c._n in_o the_o which_o appear_v detestable_a ingratitude_n or_o rather_o horrible_a madness_n whereby_o we_o gather_v how_o blind_a impiety_n be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o lazarus_n shall_v have_v mollify_v their_o stoany_a heart_n but_o there_o be_v no_o work_n of_o god_n which_o the_o impiety_n of_o their_o poison_n do_v not_o infect_a and_o corrupt_a with_o bitterness_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n man_n may_v profit_v by_o the_o miracle_n of_o god_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o their_o heart_n be_v purge_v for_o whosoever_o have_v not_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n although_o they_o see_v heaven_n and_o earth_n confound_v together_o will_v not_o cease_v by_o ingratitude_n to_o reject_v wholesome_a doctrine_n so_o a_o man_n may_v see_v at_o this_o day_n many_o of_o the_o frantic_a enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o fight_v against_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n require_v notwithstanding_o miracle_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n but_o to_o no_o other_o end_n than_o by_o obstinate_a resist_a to_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v monster_n of_o man_n m._n a_o man_n shall_v find_v also_o many_o who_o after_o the_o ensample_n of_o these_o wicked_a one_o be_v either_o stir_v up_o by_o envy_n or_o else_o move_v to_o please_v other_o do_v report_n those_o thing_n which_o in_o themselves_o be_v good_a and_o can_v not_o be_v blame_v to_o wicked_a man_n that_o they_o may_v provoke_v they_o more_o and_o more_o to_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o good_a man_n c._n and_o they_o bring_v news_n of_o the_o miracle_n unto_o the_o pharise_n because_o they_o be_v bitter_a enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n r._n they_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o satan_n to_o who_o christ_n be_v the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n the_o stomble_a stone_n and_o the_o rock_n of_o offence_n 47._o then_o gather_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o pharisee_n a_o counsel_n and_o say_v what_o do_v we_o for_o this_o man_n do_v many_o miracle_n m._n the_o chief_a priest_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr be_v in_o outward_a show_n the_o prelate_n and_o chief_a pillar_n of_o the_o jewishe_a religion_n hear_v of_o so_o notable_a and_o wonderful_a a_o miracle_n and_o have_v regard_n to_o their_o name_n dignity_n and_o estimation_n seek_v mean_n and_o way_n to_o hynder_n the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o defend_v their_o lordship_n and_o government_n which_o they_o have_v over_o the_o people_n of_o god_n c._n verylye_n if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v more_o senseless_a than_o brute_n beast_n they_o will_v have_v give_v some_o reverence_n toward_o christ_n after_o so_o notable_a a_o declaration_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n but_o now_o they_o gather_v themselves_o together_o and_o take_v counsel_n how_o they_o may_v overthrow_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o sight_n whereof_o ought_v to_o have_v make_v they_o abash_v what_o do_v we_o bu_n as_o the_o wicked_a in_o all_o their_o affair_n be_v uncertain_a what_o to_o do_v amaze_v and_o confound_v even_o so_o their_o counsel_n be_v not_o without_o great_a care_n and_o trouble_v c._n in_o these_o word_n they_o seem_v to_o accuse_v their_o own_o sleuth_n and_o negligence_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o christ_n by_o their_o forbearaunce_n have_v more_o fame_n and_o glory_n whereas_o it_o lie_v in_o they_o to_o hinder_v the_o same_o this_o be_v the_o confidence_n and_o trust_n of_o the_o wicked_a by_o which_o they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n as_o though_o it_o be_v in_o their_o hand_n to_o do_v what_o they_o listen_v for_o this_o man_n do_v many_o miracle_n b._n behold_v here_o how_o monsterouse_a mad_a impiety_n be_v they_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o do_v such_o sign_n and_o wonder_n that_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o he_o have_v power_n over_o life_n and_o death_n and_o yet_o they_o consider_v not_o that_o if_o they_o withstand_v he_o they_o shall_v labour_n in_o vain_a therefore_o very_o obstinate_o and_o wilful_o they_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o oppress_v the_o glory_n and_o power_n of_o god_n which_o shine_v in_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n but_o god_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v not_o a_o sleep_n for_o although_o he_o let_v they_o alone_o for_o a_o time_n &_o laugh_v their_o foolish_a arrogancy_n to_o scorn_n yet_o notwithstanding_o at_o the_o length_n he_o pour_v upon_o they_o the_o full_a measure_n of_o his_o wrath_n as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o twelve_o verse_n of_o the_o second_o psalm_n m._n but_o what_o need_v they_o to_o gather_v a_o counsel_n when_o as_o they_o have_v already_o not_o only_o among_o themselves_o but_o also_o by_o a_o public_a edict_n 9.22_o john_n 9.22_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o impiety_n though_o it_o be_v overcome_v a_o hoonder_v time_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o will_v not_o geve_v place_n unto_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n 48_o if_o we_o let_v he_o escape_v thus_o all_o man_n will_v believe_v on_o he_o and_o the_o roman_n shall_v come_v and_o take_v away_o boath_n our_o room_n and_o the_o people_n m._n these_o man_n think_v that_o it_o be_v by_o their_o permission_n that_o christ_n wrought_v so_o many_o miracle_n and_o that_o it_o lie_v in_o their_o hand_n to_o stay_v he_o from_o work_v the_o same_o c._n if_o so_o be_v christ_n have_v be_v a_o deceiver_n their_o office_n have_v be_v to_o withstand_v he_o lest_o she_o shall_v draw_v away_o the_o sheep_n from_o the_o lord_n fold_n but_o in_o confess_v his_o miracle_n they_o plain_o enough_o declare_v that_o they_o care_v not_o for_o god_n who_o power_n they_o so_o secure_o and_o disdainfullye_o contemn_v all_o man_n will_v believe_v on_o he_o r._n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v if_o so_o be_v we_o wink_v at_o his_o do_n all_o jewry_n will_v account_v he_o for_o a_o king_n and_o the_o messiah_n m._n be_v faith_n then_o such_o a_o matter_n that_o it_o require_v the_o high_a priest_n &_o magistrate_n to_o favour_v the_o same_o nay_o very_o for_o although_o you_o shall_v go_v about_o by_o violence_n to_o constrain_v man_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n yet_o nevertheless_o all_o man_n will_v not_o believe_v in_o he_o faith_n in_o christ_n depend_v upon_o election_n &_o god_n call_v which_o no_o mortal_a man_n can_v restrain_v o_o you_o blind_a guide_v call_v faith_n depend_v on_o election_n and_o god_n call_v all_o man_n be_v not_o elect_v to_o this_o faith_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v fear_v that_o although_o you_o do_v so_o suffer_v christ_n all_o man_n will_v believe_v on_o he_o and_o the_o roman_n shall_v come_v c._n these_o man_n to_o cover_v and_o cleake_v their_o wickedness_n pretend_v a_o love_n and_o care_n to_o ward_n the_o common_a wealth_n and_o profit_n of_o their_o country_n but_o they_o special_o fear_v lest_o their_o cruel_a government_n shall_v decay_v yet_o they_o feign_v to_o be_v careful_a for_o the_o temple_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n for_o their_o country_n and_o for_o the_o state_n of_o the_o people_n before_o they_o confess_v that_o christ_n wrought_v many_o miracle_n and_o now_o they_o be_v afeard_a of_o the_o roman_n as_o though_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o their_o safety_n which_o plain_o declare_v itself_o in_o those_o miracle_n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o consultation_n be_v the_o peril_n which_o be_v at_o hand_n b._n and_o this_o pretence_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n have_v some_o show_n of_o truth_n because_o they_o have_v suffer_v already_o many_o thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o diverse_a sedition_n and_o rebellion_n therefore_o they_o will_v have_v it_o seem_v that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o all_o the_o people_n will_v believe_v on_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o receive_v he_o for_o christ_n and_o the_o mesias_n and_o make_v he_o a_o king_n &_o that_o then_o the_o roman_n will_v come_v and_o beséege_v the_o city_n and_o carry_v away_o the_o people_n captive_a thus_o impyetie_n always_o find_v somewhat_o that_o have_v some_o show_n of_o profit_n to_o beguile_v the_o simple_a withal_o c_o but_o that_o be_v a_o untoward_a consultation_n to_o avoid_v peril_n which_o can_v be_v shun_v unless_o we_o forsake_v the_o right_a course_n first_o we_o must_v seek_v what_o the_o lord_n command_v and_o what_o he_o will_v have_v do_v this_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v what_o success_n soever_o we_o have_v but_o these_o man_n seek_v to_o destroy_v christ_n lest_o any_o inconvenience_n happen_v if_o so_o
to_o so_o great_a obstinacy_n not_o by_o erroure_n and_o foolishness_n but_o by_o brutish_a dogged_a malice_n insomuch_o that_o they_o be_v not_o afeard_a to_o war_n against_o god_n r._n for_o admit_v that_o christ_n break_v the_o sabbath_n day_n make_v himself_o equal_a with_o god_n and_o have_v cause_v sedytyon_n what_o fault_n have_v lazarus_n commit_v that_o he_o shall_v dye_v he_o be_v raise_v from_o death_n but_o be_v it_o a_o fault_n to_o receive_v a_o benefit_n m._n what_o do_v lazarus_n save_v that_o he_o be_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n live_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n his_o qickener_n this_o the_o high_a priest_n think_v suficient_a cause_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n what_o other_o thing_n do_v they_o at_o this_o day_n which_o do_v not_o only_o seek_v to_o extinguish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o to_o kill_v those_o who_o by_o the_o same_o be_v raise_v and_o quicken_v as_o it_o be_v from_o death_n 11._o because_o that_o for_o his_o sake_n many_o of_o the_o jew_n go_v away_o and_o believe_v on_o jesus_n bu_n christ_n have_v wrought_v many_o myracl_n but_o neither_o the_o restoar_n of_o the_o half_a to_o his_o limb_n nor_o the_o geve_v of_o sight_n to_o the_o blind_a nor_o any_o other_o miracle_n make_v they_o so_o mad_a as_o do_v this_o for_o this_o be_v by_o nature_n more_o wonderful_a and_o do_v after_o many_o other_o and_o very_o it_o be_v wonderful_a to_o see_v and_o hear_v a_o man_n which_o have_v be_v dead_a four_o day_n to_o speak_v and_o walk_v furthermore_o when_o he_o have_v give_v sight_n to_o the_o blind_a man_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v break_v the_o sabbath_n but_o see_v they_o have_v here_o no_o such_o occasion_n to_o complain_v they_o be_v provoke_v against_o he_o that_o be_v heal_v moreover_o the_o blind_a man_n be_v a_o beggar_n but_o as_o for_o lazarus_n he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o wealth_n the_o which_o may_v be_v gather_v hereby_o for_o that_o many_o of_o the_o jew_n come_v out_o of_o the_o city_n to_o comfort_v his_o sister_n and_o because_o the_o miracle_n be_v do_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o many_o with_o admiration_n of_o all_o man_n therefore_o many_o come_v to_o christ_n to_o bethanie_n m._n and_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v not_o offend_v so_o much_o that_o many_o beléeve_v in_o christ_n as_o they_o be_v that_o they_o go_v away_o for_o this_o vex_v they_o for_o this_o go_v away_o be_v a_o clean_a forsake_v of_o the_o phariseis_n for_o they_o which_o beléeve_v in_o christ_n cast_v of_o their_o yoke_n at_o this_o day_n also_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n will_v easy_o be_v content_v to_o suffer_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o so_o be_v man_n by_o the_o same_o be_v not_o draw_v unto_o christ_n but_o unto_o they_o a._n but_o no_o man_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o number_n of_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n which_o will_v not_o follow_v his_o teacher_n for_o christ_n sheep_n hear_v his_o voice_n and_o follow_v therefore_o that_o we_o may_v hold_v fast_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v reject_v the_o whoale_n doctrine_n of_o antechrist_n and_o forsake_v his_o wicked_a ceremony_n 27_o joh._n i0_n 27_o for_o what_o felloweshippe_n be_v there_o between_o righteousenesse_n and_o unrighteousenesse_n what_o communion_n between_o light_n and_o darkness_n what_o agreement_n with_o christ_n and_o belial_n or_o what_o part_n have_v a_o faithful_a man_n with_o a_o infidel_n or_o how_o agree_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n with_o image_n 4_z 2_z cor_n 6_o 4_z c._n moreover_o see_v satan_n whole_o bend_v himself_o to_o overthrow_v the_o work_n of_o god_n or_o at_o least_o to_o obscure_v they_o it_o be_v our_o part_n continual_o to_o think_v upon_o they_o 12._o on_o the_o next_o day_n much_o people_n that_o be_v come_v to_o the_o feast_n when_o they_o hear_v that_o jesus_n shall_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n bu_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n increase_v more_o and_o more_o the_o jew_n his_o enemy_n fret_v and_o fume_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n at_o the_o same_o concern_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o two_o next_o verse_n follow_v read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n begin_v at_o the_o five_o and_o eight_o verse_n 16._o these_o thing_n understand_v not_o his_o diciple_n at_o the_o first_o but_o when_o jesus_n be_v glorify_v then_o remember_v they_o that_o such_o thing_n be_v wrighten_a of_o he_o and_o that_o such_o thing_n they_o have_v do_v unto_o he_o c._n even_o as_o the_o seed_n do_v not_o springe_n by_o and_o by_o after_o it_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o ground_n so_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n do_v not_o straight_o way_n appear_v the_o apostle_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o fulfil_v the_o prophesy_v but_o what_o they_o do_v they_o understand_v not_o they_o hear_v the_o cry_n of_o the_o multitude_n and_o that_o no_o confuse_a cry_n but_o such_o a_o cry_n as_o proclaim_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o king_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o know_v not_o to_o what_o end_n nor_o what_o it_o mean_v it_o be_v therefore_o unto_o they_o a_o dumb_a and_o vain_a show_n until_o the_o lord_n open_v their_o eye_n m._n here_o also_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o obey_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n although_o we_o understand_v not_o by_o and_o by_o to_o what_o end_n they_o tend_v then_o they_o remember_v c._n here_o the_o cause_n of_o that_o gross_a ignorance_n be_v noated_a which_o go_v before_o knowledge_n because_o they_o have_v not_o then_o the_o scripture_n their_o guide_n and_o scoolemaistris_n to_o directe_v their_o mind_n to_o right_a and_o pure_a consideration_n for_o we_o without_o we_o have_v first_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v stark_o blind_a neither_o yet_o be_v it_o sufficient_a that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v shine_v unto_o we_o except_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v illuminate_v our_o eye_n this_o grace_n christ_n give_v unto_o his_o disciple_n after_o his_o resurrection_n because_o as_o yet_o the_o full_a time_n be_v not_o come_v in_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v pour_v forth_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o ample_a manner_n until_o he_o be_v receive_v up_o into_o heavenly_a glory_n and_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o example_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o judge_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o pertain_v unto_o christ_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o after_o the_o scence_n of_o our_o own_o flesh_n also_o let_v we_o consider_v that_o this_o be_v a_o special_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v instruct_v by_o the_o same_o in_o continuance_n of_o time_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v without_o sense_n and_o understanding_n when_o we_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o work_n of_o god_n 17._o the_o people_n that_o be_v with_o he_o when_o he_o call_v lazarus_n out_o of_o his_o grave_n and_o raise_v he_o from_o death_n bare_a record_n m._n the_o euangeliste_n can_v forget_v the_o miracle_n of_o the_o raise_n up_o of_o lrzarus_n c._n therefore_o he_o repeat_v again_o that_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v before_o that_o a_o great_a many_o be_v move_v by_o the_o fame_n of_o the_o miracle_n go_v forth_o to_o mete_v christ_n for_o therefore_o they_o go_v forth_o by_o heap_n because_o every_o where_o the_o rumour_n concern_v the_o raise_n up_o of_o lazarus_n be_v spread_v abroad_o these_o man_n therefore_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o attribute_v the_o honour_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o son_n of_o marye_n see_v they_o have_v such_o knowledge_n of_o his_o wonderful_a power_n m._n and_o thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o more_o the_o wicked_a desyer_n to_o have_v the_o truth_n bury_v the_o more_o god_n do_v open_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o godly_a to_o the_o manifestation_n and_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o same_o and_o geve_v unto_o they_o such_o courage_n that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o speak_v that_o which_o they_o know_v to_o be_v true_a but_o do_v constant_o maintain_v the_o same_o 19_o the_o phariseis_n therefore_o say_v among_o themselves_o perceive_v you_o how_o you_o prevail_v nothing_o behold_v all_o the_o whoal_n world_n go_v after_o he_o bu_n the_o more_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n increase_v the_o more_o the_o anger_n wrath_n and_o fury_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n also_o be_v inflame_v notwithstanding_o they_o be_v convince_v and_o overwhelm_v with_o the_o huge_a heap_n of_o christ_n gloriouse_a act_n and_o by_o his_o evident_a preach_n insomuch_o that_o as_o mad_a man_n and_o man_n want_v counsel_n they_o be_v constrain_v almost_o to_o despair_v for_o they_o cry_v with_o great_a fury_n and_o outrage_n perceive_v you_o how_o you_o prevail_v nothing_o c._n by_o which_o word_n they_o provoke_v themselves_o to_o great_a madness_n for_o it_o be_v a_o sertaine_a exprobration_n and_o reprehension_n of_o their_o negligence_n as_o if_o
have_v foresee_v &_o appoint_v but_o we_o must_v note_n that_o the_o simple_a and_o bare_a forknewledge_n of_o god_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o these_o thing_n howbeit_o here_o we_o must_v not_o have_v so_o much_o consideration_n of_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n as_o of_o judgement_n and_o vengeance_n neither_o do_v god_n look_v down_o &_o consider_v from_o heaven_n what_o man_n will_v do_v but_o he_o pronounce_v what_o he_o himself_o will_v do_v name_o that_o he_o will_v strike_v the_o wicked_a with_o blindness_n &_o giddiness_n that_o he_o may_v take_v vengeance_n upon_o their_o wickedness_n for_o here_o the_o inferior_a cause_n be_v noated_a why_o god_n will_v have_v his_o word_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v whoalsome_n to_o be_v perilous_a and_o deadly_a to_o the_o jew_n name_o for_o that_o they_o have_v so_o deserve_v by_o their_o wickedness_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o shun_v this_o punishment_n when_o god_n have_v once_o determine_v to_o cast_v they_o into_o a_o reprobate_a scence_n and_o to_o turn_v the_o light_n of_o his_o word_n into_o darkness_n for_o this_o latter_a prophesy_n be_v unlyke_a to_o the_o first_o in_o this_o because_o there_o the_o prophet_n affirm_v that_o no_o other_o do_v believe_v than_o those_o who_o god_n do_v illuminate_v according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n the_o cause_n whereof_o do_v not_o appear_v for_o see_v of_o right_a and_o equity_n all_o man_n be_v lose_v and_o damn_a god_n may_v according_o to_o his_o goodness_n save_o who_o he_o will_v from_o among_o the_o rest_n but_o here_o he_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o obduration_n by_o which_o god_n take_v vengeance_n upon_o the_o wickedness_n of_o a_o unthankful_a people_n who_o so_o do_v not_o observe_v and_o consider_v these_o degree_n do_v confound_v amiss_o dyvers_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o we_o have_v expound_v this_o place_n of_o esaias_n in_o our_o exposition_n upon_o the_o thirtéene_a chapter_n of_o mathewe_n begin_v at_o the_o fowretéene_a verse_n 41._o such_o thing_n say_v esaias_n when_o he_o see_v his_o glory_n and_o speak_v of_o he_o m._n this_o the_o evangelist_n add_v least_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v to_o what_o purpose_n do_v thou_o allege_v this_o place_n the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o the_o man_n in_o his_o time_n and_o therefore_o they_o serve_v nothing_o to_o this_o purpose_n c._n this_o cogitation_n john_n prevent_v plain_o show_v that_o the_o prophet_n be_v send_v to_o be_v a_o teacher_n not_o for_o one_o age_n but_o rather_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n be_v show_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o witness_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v under_o his_o reign_n and_o kingdom_n for_o to_o what_o end_n do_v the_o prophetical_a revelation_n serve_v but_o only_o to_o delyver_v as_o it_o be_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n to_o other_o that_o which_o they_o have_v receyve_v from_o god_n and_o the_o evangelist_n take_v this_o as_o grant_v unto_o he_o that_o esaias_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n whereupon_o he_o gather_v that_o he_o apply_v his_o doctrine_n to_o the_o state_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o be_v to_o come_v a._n as_o touch_v the_o time_n in_o the_o which_o the_o prophet_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n some_o refer_v it_o to_o that_o time_n in_o the_o which_o vzias_n the_o king_n die_v 6.1_o esay_n 6.1_o for_o then_o the_o prophet_n see_v the_o lord_n sit_v upon_o a_o high_a throne_n and_o the_o skyrte_n of_o his_o clothing_n fill_v the_o temple_n the_o seraphin_n stand_v upon_o it_o everye_o one_o have_v six_o wing_n with_o twain_o he_o cover_v his_o face_n and_o with_o twain_o he_o cover_v his_o foot_n and_o with_o twain_o he_o do_v flee_v and_o one_o cry_v to_o another_o and_o say_v holy_a holy_a holy_a be_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o whoale_n world_n be_v full_a of_o his_o glory_n by_o this_o vision_n the_o purpose_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v to_o show_v a_o view_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n m._n but_o this_o also_o may_v be_v refer_v to_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o three_o and_o fiftye_a chapter_n of_o esai_n for_o then_o the_o prophet_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o spirit_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n 42._o nevertheless_o among_o the_o chief_a ruler_n also_o many_o beleve_v on_o he_o but_o because_o of_o the_o pharisee_n they_o do_v not_o confess_v he_o jest_n they_o shall_v be_v excomunicate_a b._n because_o the_o evangelist_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v on_o the_o lord_n he_o do_v very_o well_o add_v this_o by_o which_o he_o do_v show_v that_o all_o be_v not_o so_o reject_v but_o that_o many_o of_o the_o ruler_n also_o beléeve_v one_o the_o lord_n how_o be_v it_o they_o be_v but_o weak_a as_o yet_o and_o lover_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n c._n a_o worthy_a example_n very_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o impiety_n have_v once_o get_v the_o upper_a hand_n be_v a_o certain_a general_a plague_n which_o by_o the_o contagion_n thereof_o infect_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o singular_a gift_n of_o god_n when_o some_o remain_v sincere_a among_o a_o corrupt_a people_n howbeit_o the_o same_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v see_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o world_n for_o although_o impiety_n and_o the_o contempt_n of_o god_n do_v abound_v and_o although_o a_o great_a number_n go_v about_o to_o banish_v away_o quite_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n notwithstanding_o it_o shall_v find_v some_o sanctuary_n and_o receiver_n and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o faith_n have_v certain_a rest_a place_n least_o it_o shall_v be_v quite_o drive_v out_o of_o the_o world_n world_n faith_n can_v be_v baniâââ_n out_o of_o ãâã_d world_n m._n so_o in_o the_o time_n of_o elias_n there_o seem_v to_o be_v almost_o none_o which_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n so_o that_o elias_n be_v think_v to_o remain_v alone_a when_o as_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v seven_o thousand_o man_n in_o israel_n which_o have_v not_o bow_v their_o knee_n before_o baal_n 19_o 1._o king_n 19_o c._n this_o word_n also_o betoken_v a_o emphasys_n and_o vehemency_n for_o prince_n and_o ruler_n for_o the_o most_o part_n wear_v such_o deadly_a enemy_n and_o hater_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o be_v incredible_a that_o some_o one_o among_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v find_v faithful_a the_o more_o wonderful_a therefore_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o pierce_v in_o thither_o whether_o nothing_o else_o can_v come_v howbeit_o this_o be_v not_o the_o wickedness_n of_o one_o age_n only_o that_o the_o rulars_n be_v obstinate_a and_o rebellious_a against_o christ_n for_o honour_n riches_n and_o dignity_n have_v always_o pride_n their_o handmaid_n wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o be_v humble_a and_o lowlye_o in_o their_o own_o eye_n who_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o pride_n and_o arrogancye_n scarcelye_a know_v themselves_o to_o be_v man_n whatsoever_o he_o be_v that_o excel_v other_o in_o this_o world_n will_v not_o if_o he_o be_v wise_a trust_v unto_o his_o mightiness_n lest_o the_o same_o be_v a_o let_v unto_o he_o a._n 1.10_o jam._n 1.10_o let_v he_o that_o be_v rich_a say_v saint_n james_n rejoice_v that_o he_o be_v bring_v low_o for_o he_o shall_v pass_v away_o as_o a_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n when_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v many_o we_o must_v not_o so_o understand_v the_o same_o as_o though_o the_o one_o half_a or_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o ruler_n beléeve_v for_o they_o be_v compare_v to_o other_o of_o who_o there_o be_v a_o great_a multitude_n they_o be_v but_o a_o few_o but_o those_o same_o be_v a_o great_a many_o if_o they_o be_v consider_v in_o themselves_o but_o because_o of_o the_o phariseis_n this_o the_o evangelist_n mislike_v in_o they_o for_o that_o they_o do_v not_o bold_o confess_v their_o faith_n c._n and_o therewithal_o noat_v how_o great_a the_o imbecility_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o they_o who_o be_v luke_o warm_a or_o rather_o key_n can_v for_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n can_v be_v divide_v from_o confession_n 10.10_o faith_n and_o confession_n link_v together_o rom._n 10.10_o for_o with_o the_o heart_n we_o beeléeve_v to_o righteousenesse_n and_o with_o the_o mouth_n we_o confess_v to_o salvation_n and_o it_o can_v be_v that_o faith_n be_v once_o kindle_v in_o the_o hart_n shall_v not_o burn_v &_o cast_v forth_o his_o flame_n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n geve_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o these_o prince_n embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o know_v the_o same_o to_o be_v come_v from_o god_n but_o yet_o that_o
this_o faith_n be_v not_o lively_a in_o they_o and_o not_o so_o virtuous_a as_o it_o beecame_v the_o same_o because_o christ_n geve_v not_o unto_o his_o disciple_n the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o constancy_n insomuche_o that_o they_o dare_v bold_o confess_v that_o which_o they_o have_v learn_v of_o he_o and_o although_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o these_o man_n be_v quite_o dumb_a yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o they_o make_v no_o true_a confession_n the_o evangelist_n simple_o deni_v that_o they_o profess_v their_o faith_n for_o this_o have_v be_v true_a and_o lawful_a confession_n to_o have_v open_o give_v their_o name_n and_o profess_a christ_n wherefore_o let_v no_o man_n flatter_v himself_o which_o in_o any_o part_n hyde_v and_o dissemble_v his_o faith_n least_o he_o shall_v incur_v the_o displeasure_n and_o hatred_n of_o man_n for_o although_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v odiouse_a that_o fear_n be_v not_o excusable_a which_o make_v we_o slide_v from_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o name_n though_o but_o the_o breadth_n of_o a_o hair_n bu_n a_o great_a number_n at_o this_o day_n have_v the_o very_a same_o disease_n that_o these_o ruler_n have_v for_o they_o understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n they_o know_v the_o lawful_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o papistry_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o in_o the_o papacy_n the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o minister_v accord_v to_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o these_o thing_n they_o see_v and_o know_v but_o yet_o nevertheless_o for_o fear_n and_o the_o love_n of_o temporal_a thing_n they_o communicate_v with_o the_o very_a same_o they_o halt_v on_o both_o side_n and_o do_v not_o bold_o confess_v the_o truth_n all_o these_o man_n very_o do_v great_o offend_v and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v confirm_v in_o their_o error_n to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o so_o be_v they_o retain_v that_o which_o be_v true_a in_o their_o heart_n and_o do_v think_v well_o in_o their_o mind_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n have_v a_o like_n of_o these_o abomination_n institute_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o come_v unto_o the_o mass_n not_o as_o to_o the_o mass_n but_o as_o unto_o the_o lord_n supper_n god_n hate_v that_o hypocritical_a dissimulation_n and_o love_v truth_n and_o sincerity_n concern_v excommunication_n read_v the_o nine_o chapter_n go_v before_o beginning_n at_o the_o .22_o verse_n 43._o for_o they_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n r._n thou_o may_v see_v in_o this_o place_n the_o cause_n why_o few_o of_o the_o ruler_n mighty_a man_n and_o wise_a man_n do_v not_o sincerelye_o confess_v the_o gospel_n because_o the_o gospel_n bring_v with_o it_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o forsake_v of_o earthly_a good_n now_o see_v the_o ruler_n can_v not_o abide_v to_o forsake_v their_o tyranny_n and_o see_v it_o seem_v foolish_a to_o the_o wise_a man_n to_o resign_v the_o wisdom_n of_o reason_n to_o the_o bare_a and_o weak_a word_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o have_v ever_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o very_o few_o mighty_a and_o wise_a man_n true_o confess_v christ_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o sainte_n paul_n behold_v your_o call_a brother_n how_o that_o not_o many_o wise_a man_n after_o the_o flesh_n not_o many_o mighty_a not_o many_o of_o high_a degree_n be_v call_v but_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a c._n the_o evangelist_n lay_v no_o superstition_n to_o these_o mean_v charge_n but_o only_o say_v that_o they_o seek_v to_o avoid_v the_o reproach_n and_o dispraise_n of_o man_n for_o if_o so_o be_v ambition_n prevayl_v more_o with_o they_o than_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v delyver_v by_o a_o certain_a light_a fear_n of_o conscience_n now_o let_v the_o reader_n note_n how_o great_o god_n mislike_v and_o condemn_v their_o fear_n who_o dissemble_v their_o faith_n before_o man_n for_o fear_n of_o displeasure_n what_o worse_a thing_n can_v there_o be_v yea_o what_o can_v be_v more_o beastly_a than_o to_o prefer_v the_o vain_a like_n and_o commendation_n of_o man_n before_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o he_o pronounce_v all_o those_o to_o be_v such_o who_o forsake_v the_o displeasure_n of_o man_n when_o they_o shall_v confess_v a_o pure_a &_o true_a faith_n and_o that_o just_o for_o the_o apostell_n commend_v the_o invinsyble_a constancy_n of_o moses_n 27._o heb._n âi_fw-la 27._o say_v that_o he_o endure_v even_o as_o though_o he_o have_v see_v he_o which_o be_v invisible_a by_o which_o word_n he_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o when_o a_o man_n fasten_v his_o eye_n upon_o god_n his_o heart_n will_v be_v invincible_a &_o more_o fast_a than_o a_o adamant_n stoan_n herupon_o therefore_o come_v that_o cowardliness_n which_o make_v we_o to_o fall_v to_o false_a dissimulation_n because_o we_o have_v whole_o respect_n unto_o this_o world_n for_o the_o sincere_a aspect_n and_o behold_v of_o god_n do_v drive_v away_o all_o smoke_n and_o vanity_n of_o riches_n and_o honour_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o a_o small_a and_o venial_a offence_n as_o some_o imagine_v to_o deny_v christ_n see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o this_o place_n say_v that_o those_o ruler_n which_o confess_v not_o christ_n love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n bu_n and_o christ_n himself_o say_v he_o which_o deni_v i_o before_o man_n shall_v be_v deny_v of_o i_o before_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 10.33_o mat._n 10.33_o c._n to_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n in_o this_o place_n signify_v to_o desire_v to_o be_v in_o estimation_n and_o favour_n among_o man_n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n mean_v that_o these_o ruler_n be_v so_o addict_v unto_o the_o world_n that_o they_o rather_o desire_v to_o please_v man_n then_o god_n r._n the_o praise_n of_o man_n be_v to_o be_v count_v honest_a good_a and_o wise_a the_o glory_n and_o praise_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v object_v contemn_v scorn_a crucify_a and_o to_o be_v cruel_o slay_v for_o by_o these_o mean_v christ_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n and_o the_o father_n by_o they_o be_v glorify_v in_o the_o world_n he_o therefore_o which_o prefer_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n before_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v vain_a and_o miserable_a see_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n tend_v to_o reproache_v and_o shame_n but_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n bring_v to_o everlasting_a life_n 44._o jesus_n cry_v and_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o believe_v not_o on_o i_o but_o on_o he_o that_o send_v i_o m._n all_o this_o place_n contain_v a_o serious_a and_o summarie_a declaration_n by_o which_o the_o lord_n make_v plain_a protestation_n concern_v himself_o and_o his_o dispensation_n as_o that_o he_o do_v not_o defend_v his_o own_o cause_n that_o he_o come_v not_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n but_o that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n that_o he_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n send_v to_o do_v good_a and_o not_o harm_n that_o he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o himself_o and_o therefore_o that_o they_o which_o believe_v in_o he_o beeleéue_a not_o in_o he_o but_o in_o the_o father_n which_o send_v he_o and_o that_o he_o judge_v not_o the_o unbelieved_a but_o that_o they_o must_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o word_n which_o he_o have_v preach_v and_o by_o this_o his_o serious_a contestation_n his_o purpose_n be_v in_o plain_a word_n to_o gyve_v his_o last_o farewell_n to_o this_o blind_a and_o obstinate_a people_n to_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o unbelefe_n upon_o their_o own_o head_n and_o manifestlye_o to_o testefie_v of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o innocence_n and_o this_o he_o do_v not_o symp_o and_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o one_o or_o two_o but_o free_o and_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n which_o the_o evangelist_n noat_v by_o these_o word_n jesus_n cry_v and_o say_v so_o do_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n in_o old_a time_n protest_v before_o the_o people_n show_v that_o they_o have_v omit_v nothing_o 20.33_o deut_n 32_o 1._o josua_n 23.4_o king_n 12_o 3._o act._n 20.33_o which_o pertain_v to_o the_o office_n commit_v unto_o they_o as_o moses_n josua_n samuel_n and_o paul_n b._n also_o the_o purpose_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v by_o his_o example_n speak_v of_o himself_o with_o so_o loud_a a_o voice_n than_o the_o which_o nothing_o greve_v more_o the_o pharise_n to_o incourag_n those_o fearful_a ruler_n which_o believe_v on_o he_o that_o with_o he_o they_o may_v despise_v the_o pharise_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o may_v do_v this_o he_o bring_v a_o most_o urgent_a and_o strong_a reason_n affirminge_v that_o
in_o that_o he_o make_v small_a account_n of_o the_o benefit_n already_o receive_v for_o he_o speak_v as_o though_o he_o have_v receive_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o no_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o here_o also_o he_o be_v just_o reprehend_v of_o christ_n for_o he_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v bestow_v upon_o he_o before_o howbeit_o under_o the_o person_n of_o one_o man_n he_o also_o admonish_v all_o his_o disciple_n that_o be_v mindful_a of_o the_o grace_n receyve_v they_o do_v consider_v what_o be_v needful_a for_o they_o as_o yet_o in_o time_n to_o come_v first_o of_o all_o he_o say_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v wholye_a clean_o not_o that_o they_o be_v clean_o through_o every_o part_n so_o that_o they_o shall_v no_o more_o have_v any_o spot_n in_o they_o but_o because_o they_o be_v cleanse_v in_o the_o special_a part_n the_o kingdom_n be_v take_v from_o sin_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n may_v have_v the_o right_a pre-eminence_n even_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v sound_o because_o it_o be_v infect_v with_o no_o general_a disease_n therefore_o we_o must_v declare_v ourselves_o to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n by_o newness_n of_o life_n see_v he_o preach_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o purity_n in_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n moreover_o this_o other_o similitude_n also_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o present_a matter_n lest_o the_o wash_n of_o foot_n shall_v be_v reject_v of_o peter_n as_o vain_a and_o absurd_a for_o as_o christ_n wash_v from_o the_o head_n to_o the_o foot_n those_o who_o he_o make_v his_o disciple_n evenso_fw-la in_o those_o who_o he_o have_v cleanse_v the_o low_a part_n must_v be_v daily_o purge_v for_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v not_o whole_o regenerate_v the_o first_o day_n that_o they_o shall_v desire_v nothing_o but_o heavenly_a life_n but_o have_v rather_o the_o relic_n of_o flesh_n abide_v in_o they_o with_o the_o which_o all_o their_o life_n time_n they_o have_v a_o contynuall_a battle_n therefore_o all_o the_o affection_n and_o care_n of_o this_o life_n be_v metophoricallye_o call_v foot_n for_o if_o so_o be_v the_o spirit_n possess_v all_o the_o part_n of_o man_n we_o shall_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v any_o more_o with_o the_o spot_v of_o this_o world_n 4.22_o ecles_n 3_o 5._o ephe._n 4.22_o a._n but_o christ_n shall_v always_o find_v matter_n in_o we_o to_o purge_v for_o the_o which_o cause_n we_o be_v command_v to_o mortifye_v our_o member_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o put_v of_o the_o old_a man_n untyll_o such_o time_n as_o we_o be_v thorough_o cleanse_v c._n here_o therefore_o christ_n speak_v not_o of_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o of_o renovation_n the_o which_o christ_n by_o little_a and_o little_a and_o by_o continual_a degree_n deliver_v those_o that_o be_v he_o quite_o and_o clean_o from_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o you_o be_v clean_o but_o not_o all_o c._n this_o proposition_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o minor_a in_o the_o silogisme_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o wash_n of_o foot_n proper_o become_v they_o r._n but_o how_o be_v they_o clean_a which_o a_o little_a after_o deny_a christ_n we_o say_v even_o now_o that_o this_o must_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n verilye_o those_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v elect_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v always_o clean_o 1.7_o â_o joh._n 1.7_o for_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v make_v we_o clean_o from_o all_o sin_n but_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v sinner_n ronneawaye_n and_o apostatas_fw-la au._n for_o the_o very_a humane_a affection_n without_o the_o which_o we_o live_v not_o in_o this_o mortal_a life_n be_v as_o it_o be_v foot_n when_o we_o be_v affect_v with_o human_a thing_n and_o we_o be_v so_o affect_v that_o if_o so_o be_v we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o us._n therefore_o he_o do_v daily_o wash_v our_o foot_n who_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o and_o we_o daily_o confess_v in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n when_o we_o say_v forgeve_v we_o our_o dette_n as_o we_o forgeve_v our_o debtor_n that_o we_o have_v need_n to_o wash_v our_o foot_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o direct_v the_o way_n of_o our_o spiritual_a treadinge_n but_o not_o all_o c._n this_o exception_n be_v add_v to_o the_o end_n everye_o man_n may_v examine_v himself_o if_o peradventure_o judas_n may_v be_v touch_v with_o affection_n to_o repent_v howbeit_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o confirm_v and_o stay_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o disciple_n aforehand_o lest_o the_o cruel_a fact_n which_o shall_v afterward_o appear_v shall_v trouble_v they_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v conceyve_v in_o a_o heavenlye_a heart_n endue_v with_o grace_n notwithstanding_o upon_o wise_a consideration_n he_o name_v no_o man_n lest_o he_o shall_v take_v away_o all_o occasion_n of_o repentance_n from_o he_o but_o see_v in_o deed_n he_o be_v past_o all_o hope_n of_o recoverye_n this_o admonition_fw-la serve_v only_o to_o increase_v his_o fault_n but_o it_o profit_v the_o disciple_n very_o much_o because_o thereby_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o better_a know_v unto_o they_o furthermore_o they_o understand_v that_o purity_n be_v not_o a_o common_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bu_n wonderful_a therefore_o be_v the_o méekenesse_n and_o gentleness_n of_o christ_n jesus_n who_o neither_o bewray_v to_o other_o the_o know_a traitor_n nor_o yet_o seclude_v she_o from_o the_o wash_n of_o his_o foot_n nor_o from_o the_o holy_a supper_n nor_o yet_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n only_o he_o prick_v his_o wicked_a conscience_n that_o so_o he_o may_v repent_v after_o he_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o his_o treason_n 11._o for_o he_o know_v who_o it_o be_v that_o shall_v betray_v he_o therefore_o say_v he_o you_o be_v not_o all_o clean_a m._n the_o evangelist_n say_v not_o for_o he_o know_v who_o it_o be_v which_o beléeve_v on_o he_o but_o who_o it_o be_v that_o shall_v betray_v he_o therefore_o this_o treason_n by_o which_o judas_n bytray_v his_o lord_n be_v so_o filthy_a and_o unclean_a that_o it_o can_v be_v in_o those_o which_o have_v be_v once_o wash_v he_z which_o be_v once_o wash_v of_o christ_n although_o he_o have_v never_o so_o foul_a foot_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v never_o so_o impure_a as_o to_o betray_v christ_n his_o purifyer_n therefore_o so_o many_o as_o for_o money_n and_o filthy_a gain_n sell_v christ_n in_o the_o church_n whether_o they_o be_v apostle_n or_o apostolical_a whether_o they_o be_v pope_n or_o pontifical_a priest_n they_o be_v not_o of_o that_o number_n which_o have_v be_v once_o wash_v and_o be_v cleanse_v thorough_o but_o be_v whole_o unclean_a with_o judas_n the_o traitor_n a._n concern_v far_o matter_n which_o appertainech_n to_o this_o place_n read_v the_o seventye_a verse_n of_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n go_v before_o 12_o so_o after_o he_o have_v wash_v their_o foot_n and_o receive_v bis_fw-la clothes_n and_o be_v set_v down_o again_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o wot_v you_o what_o i_o have_v do_v to_o you_o m._n the_o ceremony_n which_o christ_n use_v before_o his_o disciple_n have_v be_v to_o small_a purpose_n if_o so_o be_v he_o have_v join_v doctrine_n to_o the_o same_o c._n wherefore_o he_o now_o declare_v to_o what_o end_n he_o wash_v his_o disciple_n foot_n now_o therefore_o he_o show_v a_o reason_n of_o his_o do_v and_o when_o he_o say_v wot_v you_o what_o i_o have_v do_v unto_o you_o m._n he_o ask_v not_o the_o same_o as_o doubtful_a c._n but_o show_v that_o he_o hide_v the_o same_o from_o his_o disciple_n for_o a_o time_n that_o prove_v their_o obedience_n he_o may_v in_o time_n reveal_v that_o unto_o they_o which_o afore_o be_v unméete_a to_o be_v know_v neither_o do_v he_o stay_v till_o they_o demand_v the_o meaning_n of_o his_o deed_n but_o he_o prevent_v they_o himself_o the_o like_a shall_v happen_v unto_o we_o if_o so_o be_v we_o suffer_v he_o to_o lead_v we_o by_o the_o hand_n through_o unknown_a way_n 13._o you_o call_v i_o master_n and_o lord_n and_o you_o say_v well_o for_o so_o be_o i_o m._n the_o lord_n take_v a_o argument_n of_o his_o disciple_n word_n so_o teach_v they_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v that_o they_o can_v deny_v the_o same_o except_o they_o will_v deny_v that_o which_o they_o have_v speak_v before_o they_o have_v always_o in_o their_o mouth_n master_n lord_n lord_n but_o they_o little_o consider_v how_o to_o behave_v themselves_o in_o their_o conversation_n as_o his_o disciple_n according_a to_o those_o
brother_n thou_o know_v not_o whether_o christ_n be_v a_o master_n or_o no._n but_o see_v a_o great_a many_o love_n their_o brethren_n very_o could_o but_o none_o so_o effectual_o as_o they_o ought_v we_o may_v thereby_o perceive_v how_o far_o we_o be_v yet_o from_o the_o perfect_a light_n of_o faith_n m._n moreover_o this_o place_n may_v special_o be_v object_v unto_o they_o who_o when_o they_o bear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n say_v who_o know_v not_o these_o thing_n therefore_o let_v it_o be_v say_v unto_o they_o if_o you_o know_v these_o thing_n bless_v be_v you_o if_o you_o do_v they_o a._n contrariwise_o if_o you_o know_v these_o thing_n and_o do_v they_o not_o you_o be_v accurse_v and_o miserable_a 17_o jam._n 4_o 17_o for_o to_o he_o that_o know_v how_o to_o do_v good_a and_o do_v it_o not_o to_o he_o it_o be_v sin_n 12.47_o luk._n 12.47_o and_o the_o servant_n that_o know_v his_o master_n will_n and_o do_v it_o not_o shall_v be_v beat_v with_o many_o stripe_n 18._o i_o speak_v not_o of_o you_o all_o i_o know_v who_o i_o have_v choose_v but_o that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v he_o that_o eat_v bread_n with_o i_o have_v lift_v uppe_o his_o heel_n against_o i_o c._n again_o he_o show_v that_o there_o be_v one_o among_o his_o disciple_n which_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n nothing_o less_o than_o a_o disciple_n and_o this_o he_o do_v partly_o for_o judas_n sake_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v make_v he_o the_o more_o inexcusable_a and_o partly_o for_o the_o other_o disciple_n sake_n lest_o the_o false_a judas_n shall_v make_v any_o of_o they_o to_o slide_v back_o and_o he_o do_v not_o only_o animate_v they_o to_o persist_v in_o their_o vocation_n notwithstanding_o the_o fall_n of_o judas_n but_o also_o because_o the_o felicity_n of_o the_o which_o he_o speak_v pertain_v not_o to_o all_o man_n he_o teach_v that_o the_o same_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o more_o earnest_o seek_v for_o of_o all_o man_n and_o when_o they_o have_v find_v it_o with_o the_o great_a constancy_n to_o abide_v in_o the_o same_o and_o now_o this_o their_o steadfast_a stand_n he_o attribute_v to_o their_o election_n for_o as_o the_o strength_n of_o man_n be_v weak_a and_o frail_a so_o it_o stagger_v at_o every_o small_a puff_n of_o wind_n and_o fall_v with_o the_o least_o thrust_v if_o so_o be_v the_o lord_n stay_v not_o up_o the_o same_o with_o his_o hand_n but_o because_o be_v govern_v those_o who_o he_o have_v choose_v how_o subtle_o soever_o satan_n seek_v to_o work_v their_o destruction_n he_o shall_v profit_v nothing_o at_o all_o but_o with_o firm_a constancy_n they_o shall_v persevere_v unto_o the_o end_n and_o not_o only_a perseveraunce_n be_v here_o attribute_v to_o election_n but_o also_o the_o beginning_n of_o piety_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o one_o love_v the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o than_o another_o sure_o because_o he_o be_v elect_v piety_n election_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o piety_n again_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o the_o same_o go_v on_o still_o in_o godliness_n of_o life_n but_o only_o because_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n be_v sure_o which_o perfit_v that_o work_n which_o he_o have_v begone_v furthermore_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a difference_n between_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o the_o unbeléeving_a that_o the_o one_o be_v draw_v to_o salvation_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n and_o the_o other_o by_o their_o unbrideled_a and_o lasciviouse_a flesh_n to_o damnation_n otherwise_o christ_n may_v have_v say_v i_o know_v what_o every_o one_o of_o you_o shall_v be_v but_o least_o they_o shall_v arrogate_v any_o thing_n unto_o themselves_o but_o may_v know_v rather_o that_o they_o differ_v from_o judas_n by_o grace_n only_o and_o not_o by_o their_o own_o power_n he_o set_v before_o they_o the_o free_a election_n upon_o the_o which_o they_o be_v build_v wherefore_o let_v we_o hereby_o learn_v to_o way_n and_o consider_v all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o salvation_n 6.70_o john_n 6.70_o and_o whereas_o in_o another_o place_n he_o reckn_v up_o judas_n among_o the_o elect_v it_o be_v another_o manner_n of_o speak_v and_o not_o a_o contrary_a for_o there_o the_o temporal_a election_n be_v note_v by_o which_o god_n do_v appoint_v we_o to_o some_o certain_a and_o special_a work_n as_o saul_n who_o be_v choose_v to_o be_v a_o king_n notwithstanding_o that_o he_o be_v a_o reprobate_a but_o now_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o eternal_a election_n by_o which_o we_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o by_o which_o god_n have_v predestinate_v we_o to_o life_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v also_o sometime_o god_n do_v adourne_v the_o reprobate_n with_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o execute_v that_o office_n which_o he_o commit_v unto_o they_o so_o there_o shine_v in_o king_n saul_n princely_a virtue_n for_o a_o time_n so_o judas_n also_o have_v notable_a gift_n beseem_v a_o apostle_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n which_o god_n geve_v only_o to_o his_o childeren_n be_v another_o manner_n of_o spirit_n for_o he_o renu_v they_o by_o the_o same_o in_o mind_n and_o heart_n that_o they_o may_v be_v in_o his_o sight_n holy_a and_o irreprehensible_a also_o they_o have_v in_o they_o a_o lively_a root_n which_o can_v be_v pluck_v up_o at_o any_o time_n because_o the_o adoption_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n that_o be_v to_o say_v god_n never_o fail_v those_o who_o he_o have_v choose_v notwithstanding_o this_o abide_v firm_a that_o it_o belong_v unto_o the_o divine_a election_n that_o we_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n do_v also_o attain_v life_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a cause_n of_o our_o blessedness_n by_o which_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o reprobate_n that_o they_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n come_v to_o destruction_n but_o we_o have_v christ_n our_o watchman_n who_o govern_v we_o with_o his_o hand_n and_o defend_v we_o by_o his_o power_n m._n we_o see_v also_o here_o how_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v only_o the_o good_a be_v common_o also_o speak_v unto_o they_o among_o who_o evell_a personne_n also_o be_v mix_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v unto_o his_o disciple_n to_o instruct_v they_o he_o so_o speak_v unto_o they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v pertain_v unto_o all_o when_o as_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o all_o evenas_fw-la he_o in_o this_o place_n plain_o testify_v therefore_o let_v no_o man_n in_o the_o church_n be_v offend_v if_o so_o be_v he_o hear_v christian_n among_o who_o as_o yet_o there_o be_v many_o wicked_a &_o profane_a person_n to_o be_v call_v godly_a and_o holy_a man_n if_o so_o be_v he_o hear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o life_n common_o preach_v to_o all_o man_n when_o as_o faith_n and_o piety_n belong_v not_o to_o all_o if_o so_o be_v he_o hear_v all_o christian_n genera_o reprehend_v of_o sin_n when_o as_o notwithstanding_o all_o be_v not_o culpable_a evena_n we_o see_v that_o the_o apostle_n reprehend_v the_o corinthian_n let_v he_o always_o consider_v and_o say_v within_o himself_o xi_o i_o cor._n i_o xi_o these_o thing_n pertain_v not_o to_o all_o furthermore_o christ_n here_o geve_v evident_a testimony_n of_o his_o divinity_n first_o of_o all_o when_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o do_v not_o judge_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n second_o when_o he_o make_v himself_o the_o authoure_n of_o election_n for_o this_o knowledge_n of_o the_o which_o he_o speak_v in_o this_o place_n be_v proper_a only_o unto_o god_n but_o this_o other_o be_v more_o effectual_a when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v elect_v of_o he_o before_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o this_o so_o notable_a a_o declaration_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n aught_o to_o move_v we_o more_o then_o if_o the_o scripture_n do_v call_v he_o god_n a_o hoondered_a time_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v c._n it_o may_v seem_v very_o absurd_a that_o he_o which_o be_v choose_v to_o so_o honourable_a a_o office_n be_v not_o also_o endue_v with_o true_a godliness_n for_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v object_v why_o do_v christ_n choose_v one_o to_o be_v a_o apostle_n which_o shall_v fall_v from_o his_o apostelship_n and_o why_o do_v he_o create_v he_o a_o apostle_n who_o he_o know_v shall_v be_v such_o a_o wicked_a and_o naughty_a person_n to_o this_o therefore_o christ_n answer_v that_o necesary_o it_o be_v so_o because_o it_o be_v forshew_v and_o know_v also_o aforhand_o to_o the_o prophet_n david_n for_o some_o think_v that_o the_o prophesy_v be_v cite_v which_o proper_o belong_v unto_o christ_n othersome_a think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o simple_a comparison_n that_o like_a as_o david_n
will_v increase_v that_o which_o he_o have_v begin_v in_o us._n and_o we_o must_v creep_v béefore_o we_o have_v strength_n give_v to_o we_o to_o run_v swift_o and_o as_o christ_n do_v bear_v with_o we_o in_o our_o imperfection_n evenso_fw-la let_v we_o learn_v not_o to_o cast_v of_o our_o weak_a brother_n which_o as_o yet_o be_v far_o from_o the_o mark_n it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o all_o do_v run_v with_o good_a courage_n but_o if_o any_o do_v run_v slow_o so_o that_o he_o keep_v the_o way_n let_v we_o hope_v well_o cyr._n some_o think_v that_o by_o these_o word_n it_o be_v mean_v that_o péete_a after_o the_o ascension_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v crucefy_v but_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n what_o kind_n of_o death_n the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n suffer_v 37._o peter_n say_v unto_o he_o lord_n why_o can_v i_o follow_v thou_o now_o i_o will_v jeopard_v my_o life_n for_o thy_o sake_n c._n péete_a by_o these_o word_n declare_v that_o he_o be_v gréeve_v at_o the_o answer_n of_o christ_n he_o understand_v that_o he_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o his_o own_o infirmity_n whereby_o he_o gather_v that_o his_o own_o fault_n be_v a_o let_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o present_o follow_v christ_n but_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o full_o persuade_v of_o this_o for_o by_o nature_n mankind_n be_v puff_v up_o with_o trust_n of_o his_o own_o strength_n m._n he_o do_v not_o demand_n and_o say_v when_o shall_v i_o follow_v thou_o if_o i_o can_v follow_v thou_o now_o but_o he_o say_v why_o can_v i_o follw_v the_o now_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v r_n do_v thou_o think_v that_o i_o have_v receive_v so_o many_o benefit_n of_o the_o will_v be_v so_o unthankful_a that_o i_o will_v forsake_v thou_o thou_o have_v choose_v i_o to_o be_v a_o apostle_n i_o have_v taste_v of_o the_o heavenly_a joy_n upon_o mount_n thabor_n i_o have_v wrought_v miracle_n in_o thy_o name_n and_o what_o benefit_n be_v it_o that_o i_o have_v not_o receive_v of_o thou_o how_o then_o can_v i_o forsake_v thou_o be_v in_o great_a peril_n of_o thy_o life_n i_o will_v venturâ_n my_o life_n for_o thou_o yea_o i_o will_v dye_v for_o thou_o so_o far_o be_o i_o from_o forsake_v thou_o c._n these_o word_n of_o peter_n show_v what_o a_o opinion_n we_o have_v conceive_v of_o ourselves_o and_o how_o we_o trust_v to_o our_o own_o strength_n where_o upon_o it_o come_v that_o we_o dare_v do_v any_o thing_n without_o call_n for_o the_o help_n of_o god_n when_o as_o notwithstanding_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o but_o concern_v this_o read_v more_o in_o the_o twenty_o six_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n in_o the_o thirty_o three_o verse_n 38._o jesus_n answer_v he_o will_v thou_o jeopard_v thy_o life_n for_o my_o sake_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o the_o cock_n shall_v not_o crow_v till_o thou_o have_v deny_v i_o thrice_o m._n peter_n seem_v to_o prove_v christ_n a_o liar_n in_o deny_v that_o so_o bold_o which_o the_o lord_n declare_v unto_o he_o therefore_o christ_n seek_v more_o and_o more_o to_o beat_v down_o the_o arrogancy_n of_o peter_n least_o he_o be_v puff_v up_o above_o measure_n shall_v be_v to_o proud_a of_o his_o own_o strength_n and_o christ_n will_v not_o contend_v with_o he_o but_o think_v it_o better_a to_o let_v he_o have_v experience_n of_o his_o own_o strength_n evenas_a fool_n be_v serve_v who_o be_v never_o wise_a but_o when_o they_o be_v punish_v peter_n promise_v invincible_a constancy_n and_o he_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o sincere_a affection_n of_o his_o mind_n but_o it_o be_v blind_a and_o presumptuouse_a boldness_n because_o he_o consider_v not_o what_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o therefore_o the_o lord_n correct_v that_o rashness_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v r._n what_o be_v that_o i_o hear_v will_v thou_o péete_a dye_v for_o i_o who_o come_v to_o dye_v for_o thou_o m._n but_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v be_v so_o afeard_a and_o discourage_v that_o thou_o shall_v not_o only_o forsake_v i_o with_o the_o rest_n but_o shall_v also_o deny_v i_o even_o as_o if_o thou_o have_v never_o know_v i_o and_o that_o not_o once_o but_o twice_o yea_o thrice_o and_o with_o such_o speed_n that_o thou_o shall_v deny_v i_o before_o the_o cock_n crow_n but_o because_o this_o example_n pertain_v unto_o we_o let_v all_o man_n learn_v to_o way_n and_o consider_v their_o own_o infirmity_n and_o imperfection_n least_o they_o be_v to_o proud_a upon_o vain_a confidence_n we_o can_v presume_v to_o much_o upon_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o here_o the_o secure_a presumption_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v reprehend_v see_v that_o faith_n bring_v forth_o rather_o fear_n and_o carefulness_n he_o suffer_v the_o due_a and_o condinge_a punishment_n of_o his_o arrogancy_n wherefore_o that_o god_n may_v stay_v we_o up_o by_o his_o power_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o forsake_v our_o own_o strength_n and_o to_o flee_v to_o he_o in_o time_n â§_o the_o xiiij_o chapter_n 1._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o his_o disciple_n let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v trouble_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v trouble_v this_o whoale_n chapeter_n be_v mix_v with_o consolation_n with_o doctrine_n witht_z exhortation_n and_o with_o promise_n the_o lord_n comfort_v his_o sorrowefull_a and_o trouble_a disciple_n instruct_v they_o concern_v the_o father_n exhort_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o to_o love_v he_o to_o keep_v his_o say_n promise_v they_o place_n in_o heaven_n the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o hear_n of_o their_o prayer_n his_o return_n unto_o they_o again_o the_o love_n and_o grace_n of_o his_o father_n and_o last_o of_o all_o his_o peace_n and_o he_o do_v not_o without_o cause_n use_v so_o many_o word_n to_o confirm_v his_o disciple_n who_o have_v so_o daungerouse_a and_o fearful_a a_o battle_n prepare_v for_o they_o for_o this_o be_v no_o small_a temptation_n that_o which_o in_o a_o little_a while_n after_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n in_o the_o which_o sight_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v see_v but_o matter_n of_o utter_a desperation_n see_v the_o hour_n of_o so_o great_a trouble_n be_v at_o hand_n he_o show_v they_o a_o remedy_n lest_o they_o be_v overcome_v shall_v quail_v m._n in_o he_o we_o see_v the_o image_n of_o that_o priest_n 4.15_o heb._n 4.15_o who_o be_v himself_o tempt_v in_o all_o thing_n can_v have_v compassion_n upon_o all_o those_o that_o be_v tempt_v evena_n the_o apostle_n describe_v he_o unto_o us._n he_o know_v that_o his_o disciple_n be_v man_n and_o be_v easy_o trouble_v with_o sorrowful_a thing_n i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o they_o which_o be_v of_o some_o estimation_n in_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o affect_v towards_o the_o weak_a evenas_a christ_n be_v affect_v towards_o he_o who_o he_o will_v not_o to_o be_v trouble_v c._n we_o must_v always_o consider_v the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n in_o that_o christ_n will_v have_v his_o disciple_n to_o stand_v strong_a and_o without_o fear_n when_o all_o thing_n may_v seem_v to_o bring_v present_a death_n and_o desperation_n m._n for_o he_o know_v that_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n shall_v hurt_v he_o how_o dangerous_a and_o mortal_a soever_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v therefore_o we_o must_v always_o use_v this_o buckler_n to_o withstand_v such_o conflict_n it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v feel_v diverse_a motion_n but_o we_o must_v be_v so_o afeard_a and_o trouble_a that_o we_o do_v not_o fall_v the_o faithful_a therefore_o be_v say_v not_o to_o be_v trouble_v because_o they_o lean_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n although_o they_o be_v oppress_v with_o great_a trouble_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o constant_o go_v forward_o you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o c._n christ_n do_v not_o only_o encourage_v his_o disciple_n by_o exhort_v they_o unto_o constancy_n but_o do_v also_o teach_v from_o whence_o they_o must_v seek_v for_o their_o strength_n nam_o from_o faith_n by_o which_o he_o be_v acknoweledged_a to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v able_a enough_o of_o himself_o to_o defend_v those_o that_o be_v he_o this_o be_v the_o true_a way_n to_o stand_v if_o so_o be_v our_o faith_n be_v repose_v in_o christ_n and_o if_o so_o be_v it_o do_v behold_v he_o when_o he_o help_v we_o even_o as_o if_o he_o be_v present_a for_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o which_o as_o say_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v be_v trouble_v for_o my_o departure_n bu_n for_o if_o so_o be_v you_o have_v ground_v your_o faith_n upon_o god_n he_o shall_v save_v you_o and_o i_o also_o will_v save_v you_o evenas_a i_o have_v promise_v oftenne_n time_n heretofore_o for_o
of_o faith_n the_o world_n say_v he_o can_v receive_v the_o spirit_n because_o it_o know_v not_o the_o same_o but_o you_o know_v it_o because_o it_o abide_v with_o you_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n only_o which_o dwell_v in_o we_o offer_v itself_o to_o be_v know_v whereas_o to_o other_o it_o be_v unknown_a and_o incomprehensible_a r._n and_o by_o the_o name_n of_o world_n all_o the_o most_o wise_a holy_a mighty_a and_o rich_a of_o the_o same_o be_v understand_v for_o these_o be_v call_v the_o pillar_n of_o the_o world_n who_o the_o world_n only_a receivith_n and_o have_v in_o admiration_n wherefore_o the_o spirit_n be_v never_o les_fw-fr find_v than_o among_o the_o most_o mighty_a of_o this_o world_n for_o they_o love_v lie_v and_o hypocrisy_n they_o be_v blind_v with_o their_o gift_n they_o can_v therefore_o abide_v the_o spirit_n reprove_v they_o of_o lie_n and_o draw_v they_o from_o their_o gift_n unto_o the_o gever_n m._n by_o this_o place_n we_o be_v also_o teach_v that_o the_o world_n be_v altogether_o wicked_a &_o a_o enemy_n unto_o god_n &_o subject_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_n and_o this_o be_v the_o fountain_n from_o whence_o so_o many_o heresy_n error_n false_a worshippyng_n &_o such_o like_a do_v come_v into_o the_o world_n it_o be_v much_o that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n can_v be_v receive_v of_o this_o world_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o sobriety_n here_o the_o world_n be_v the_o welspringe_n of_o here_o can_v be_v receive_v of_o droonkard_n the_o spirit_n of_o humilytie_n of_o proud_a man_n nor_o the_o spirit_n of_o shamefastness_n of_o impudent_a person_n for_o this_o world_n be_v so_o blind_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_v that_o it_o can_v neither_o see_v nor_o understand_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n final_o we_o must_v note_n that_o the_o faithful_a be_v therefore_o call_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o in_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v true_o dwell_v and_o abide_v 18._o i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_o but_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o m._n some_o understande_v this_o of_o the_o return_n of_o christ_n unto_o his_o disciple_n after_o his_o resurrection_n a._n but_o other_o some_o a_o great_a deal_n better_o refer_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bu_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v you_o shall_v think_v when_o i_o be_o go_v from_o you_o in_o my_o bodily_a presence_n that_o you_o be_v orphan_n without_o a_o father_n but_o if_o you_o consider_v the_o matter_n well_o i_o will_v never_o leave_v you_o r._n for_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o consolation_n which_o shall_v help_v you_o with_o fatherly_a affection_n in_o all_o adversity_n so_o beneficial_a shall_v my_o departure_n be_v unto_o you_o so_o great_a profit_n shall_v my_o death_n bring_v unto_o you_o c._n this_o place_n teach_v what_o man_n be_v and_o what_o they_o can_v do_v be_v without_o the_o spirit_n of_o consolation_n they_o be_v orphan_n which_o be_v ready_a to_o suffer_v all_o deceit_n and_o injure_v unméete_a to_o govern_v themselves_o and_o apt_a of_o themselves_o to_o do_v nothing_o the_o only_a remedy_n hereof_o be_v for_o christ_n to_o govern_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n the_o which_o he_o promise_v he_o will_v do_v first_o of_o all_o therefore_o the_o disciple_n be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o their_o own_o imbecility_n to_o the_o end_n they_o distrust_v themselves_o may_v depend_v upon_o the_o defence_n of_o christ_n alone_o second_o he_o promise_v unto_o they_o a_o remedy_n put_v they_o in_o good_a comfort_n because_o he_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v not_o leave_v they_o 19_o yet_o a_o little_a while_n and_o the_o world_n shall_v see_v i_o no_o more_o but_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o because_o i_o live_v and_o you_o shall_v live_v also_o m._n by_o this_o threaten_a christ_n declare_v that_o the_o unbeleving_fw-mi be_v unworthy_a to_o enjoy_v his_o sight_n any_o more_o c._n &_o withal_o prosecute_v the_o commendation_n of_o his_o special_a grace_n which_o ought_v to_o suffice_v the_o disciple_n to_o ease_v they_o and_o to_o take_v away_o their_o sorrow_n when_o say_v he_o i_o shall_v go_v out_o of_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n i_o will_v nevertheless_o be_v with_o you_o r._n for_o short_o after_o my_o death_n i_o will_v go_v out_o of_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n that_o it_o shall_v see_v i_o no_o more_o but_o i_o will_v be_v always_o present_a with_o you_o bu_n by_o the_o world_n he_o mean_v carnal_a man_n and_o such_o as_o be_v not_o regenerate_v which_o be_v unbeléeving_a and_o live_v in_o the_o world_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o world_n also_o this_o word_n shall_v see_v be_v by_o a_o metaphor_n transfer_v from_o the_o body_n to_o the_o mind_n therefore_o carnal_a man_n and_o unbeléever_n do_v not_o see_v do_v not_o understand_v nor_o believe_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o very_a man_n who_o by_o his_o death_n bring_v to_o life_n and_o redéeme_v all_o mankind_n from_o damnation_n c._n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v enjoy_v the_o secret_a behold_v of_o christ_n we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o his_o presence_n and_o absence_n according_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o we_o must_v behold_v his_o power_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o thus_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o faithful_a do_v always_o behold_v and_o have_v present_a with_o they_o christ_n in_o spirit_n though_o he_o be_v far_o from_o they_o in_o body_n because_o i_o live_v and_o you_o c._n these_o word_n may_v be_v construe_v two_o way_n either_o that_o this_o sentence_n be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o or_o else_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v red_a several_o as_o that_o therefore_o the_o faithful_a shall_v live_v because_o christ_n love_v but_o the_o former_a scence_n seem_v best_a to_o agree_v out_o of_o the_o which_o we_o may_v gather_v this_o doctrine_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o life_n m._n for_o we_o be_v dead_a and_o our_o life_n be_v hide_v with_o christ_n in_o god_n 3._o colos_n 3_z 3._o in_o the_o beginning_n he_o noat_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o will_v be_v see_v of_o his_o disciple_n and_o not_o of_o the_o world_n because_o christ_n can_v be_v see_v but_o according_a to_o the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o the_o which_o the_o world_n be_v quite_o void_a the_o world_n see_v not_o christ_n and_o no_o marvel_n for_o death_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o blindness_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o begin_v to_o live_v in_o spirit_n it_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v christ_n 20._o that_o day_n shall_v you_o know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o r._n many_o by_o this_o daye_n of_o the_o which_o christ_n speak_v hear_v understande_v the_o feast_n of_o penticoste_n c._n but_o he_o rather_o understand_v all_o that_o time_n from_o the_o first_o declaration_n of_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n unto_o the_o last_o resurrection_n for_o than_o they_o begin_v to_o know_v but_o it_o be_v a_o sertaine_a sciend_a instruction_n because_o as_o yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v not_o so_o effectual_o wrought_v in_o they_o for_o to_o this_o effect_n his_o word_n tend_v that_o it_o can_v be_v know_v by_o a_o certain_a trifle_a speculation_n and_o vain_a curiosity_n what_o the_o sacred_a and_o mystical_a union_n betwixt_o he_o and_o we_o be_v and_o again_o what_o manner_n of_o union_n be_v betwixt_o he_o and_o his_o father_n but_o rather_o that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o know_v he_o when_o he_o pour_v into_o we_o his_o life_n by_o the_o secret_a efficacy_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o that_o be_v the_o experiment_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o which_o we_o speak_v a_o little_a before_o bu_n but_o the_o son_n after_o one_o manner_n be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o after_o another_o manner_n in_o us._n for_o by_o nature_n he_o be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o in_o we_o by_o participation_n by_o grace_n or_o by_o the_o felloweship_n of_o the_o spirit_n concern_v beath_n we_o have_v speak_v before_o in_o the_o sixth_o and_o ten_o chapter_n and_o sainte_n john_n in_o the_o epistle_n say_v hereby_o we_o know_v that_o we_o abide_v in_o he_o 1â_n i._o yoh_n 4_z 1â_n and_o he_o in_o we_o because_o he_o have_v give_v to_o we_o of_o his_o spirit_n c._n therefore_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o he_o because_o we_o be_v graff_v into_o his_o body_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o righteousenesse_n and_o of_o all_o goodness_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o we_o because_o he_o declare_v by_o the_o efficacye_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o he_o be_v the_o cause_n and_o authoure_n
word_n that_o christ_n require_v of_o his_o disciple_n mutual_a love_n but_o othersome_a much_o better_a who_o take_v and_o understande_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n active_o for_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o enjoy_v for_o ever_o the_o love_n wherewith_o he_o have_v love_v we_o and_o therefore_o he_o will_v we_o to_o take_v heed_n lest_o we_o deprive_v ourselves_o of_o the_o same_o for_o many_o do_v reject_v the_o grace_n offer_v unto_o they_o and_o many_o cast_v away_o that_o which_o they_o have_v in_o their_o hand_n so_o soon_o therefore_o as_o we_o be_v once_o receive_v into_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n least_o through_o our_o own_o fault_n we_o fall_v from_o the_o same_o m._n he_o be_v the_o vine_n and_o he_o pour_v his_o nature_n and_o goodness_n into_o the_o branch_n so_o long_o as_o they_o abide_v in_o the_o stock_n that_o they_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lively_a blood_n and_o juice_n of_o the_o same_o whoso_o abide_v not_o in_o he_o they_o perish_v not_o through_o he_o but_o by_o their_o own_o fault_n c._n notwistanding_n whereas_o some_o infer_v upon_o these_o word_n that_o there_o be_v no_o efficacy_n in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n except_o the_o same_o be_v holpen_v by_o our_o constancy_n it_o be_v but_o vain_a for_o we_o do_v not_o grant_n that_o the_o spirit_n do_v only_o require_v of_o we_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o our_o power_n but_o do_v also_o show_v what_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v that_o if_o so_o be_v we_o lack_v strength_n we_o may_v seek_v for_o the_o same_o from_o he_o euenas_n when_o christ_n exhort_v we_o here_o to_o perseverance_n we_o must_v not_o leave_v to_o our_o own_o industerye_n and_o strength_n but_o we_o must_v pray_v he_o which_o command_v that_o he_o will_v confirm_v we_o in_o his_o love_n 10._o if_o you_o keep_v my_o commandment_n you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n even_o as_o i_o have_v keapt_v my_o father_n commandment_n and_o abide_v in_o his_o love_n a._n least_o any_o man_n shall_v abuse_v this_o place_n we_o must_v note_n that_o christ_n say_v not_o if_o you_o keep_v my_o commandment_n you_o shall_v deserve_v my_o love_n but_o you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n m._n for_o the_o obedience_n and_o keep_v of_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o we_o be_v love_v but_o rather_o the_o conceruation_n of_o his_o grace_n which_o happen_v even_o to_o the_o unworthy_a he_o do_v not_o therefore_o begin_v to_o love_v we_o love_n merit_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n love_n because_o we_o have_v keep_v his_o commandment_n neither_o have_v he_o choose_v we_o because_o we_o deserve_v the_o same_o but_o he_o have_v both_o love_v and_o choose_v we_o free_o and_o without_o all_o manner_n of_o desert_n on_o our_o part_n that_o we_o may_v abide_v in_o this_o grace_n he_o require_v at_o our_o hand_n that_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n c._n for_o this_o be_v the_o best_a manner_n of_o perseverance_n to_o follow_v he_o whether_o he_o call_v us._n 8.1_o rom._n 8.1_o for_o they_o which_o be_v in_o christ_n walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n for_o these_o be_v always_o join_v together_o faith_n which_o apprehend_v the_o free_a love_n of_o christ_n a_o good_a conscience_n and_o newene_n of_o life_n and_o in_o deed_n christ_n do_v not_o reconcile_v the_o faithful_a unto_o the_o father_n that_o they_o may_v do_v what_o they_o list_v but_o to_o the_o end_n he_o guide_v they_o with_o his_o spirit_n may_v keep_v they_o under_o his_o father_n hand_n and_o subjection_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o do_v reject_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n which_o prove_v not_o themselves_o by_o true_a obedience_n to_o be_v his_o disciple_n but_o it_o seem_v a_o very_a straight_o and_o hard_a matter_n that_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v require_v at_o our_o hand_n in_o the_o which_o be_v contain_v the_o exact_v perfection_n of_o righteousenesse_n which_o be_v more_o than_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v for_o thereof_o it_o come_v that_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n be_v void_a except_o we_o be_v as_o pure_a as_o angel_n this_o may_v easy_o be_v answer_v âª_o for_o see_v christ_n speak_v hear_v of_o a_o desire_n to_o lead_v a_o holy_a and_o godly_a life_n he_o do_v not_o exclude_v that_o which_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n in_o his_o doctrine_n namely_o the_o free_a imputation_n of_o righteousness_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o by_o acceptation_n and_o grace_n our_o work_n which_o be_v of_o themselves_o lame_a &_o impure_a deserve_v to_o be_v reject_v be_v pleasant_a unto_o god_n therefore_o the_o faithful_a be_v say_v to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n when_o they_o apply_v their_o wheal_n study_n and_o mind_n to_o keep_v they_o although_o they_o come_v nothing_o near_o the_o mark_n because_o they_o be_v loose_v from_o that_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n â_o deu_fw-la 27._o â6_n gala._n 3_o â_o where_o it_o be_v say_v curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n to_o fulfil_v they_o m._n for_o whatsoever_o imperfection_n come_v by_o the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v free_o forgeven_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o mediation_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o i_o have_v keep_v my_o father_n commandemennt_n c._n as_o we_o be_v elect_v in_o christ_n evenso_fw-la in_o he_o be_v express_v at_o the_o full_a the_o image_n of_o our_o call_n good_a cause_n therefore_o he_o have_v to_o set_v himself_o hear_v before_o his_o disciple_n for_o a_o example_n to_o be_v follow_v to_o the_o imitation_n whereof_o all_o the_o godly_a will_v frame_v themselves_o in_o i_o say_v he_o you_o may_v behold_v the_o very_a same_o which_o he_o require_v of_o you_o for_o you_o see_v how_o true_o i_o be_o addict_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o my_o father_n and_o in_o the_o same_o i_o will_v continue_v he_z in_o like_a manner_n have_v not_o love_v i_o for_o a_o little_a or_o short_a time_n but_o his_o love_n towards_o i_o abide_v for_o ever_o this_o conformity_n of_o the_o head_n and_o the_o member_n must_v we_o have_v always_o before_o our_o eye_n not_o only_o to_o the_o end_n the_o faithful_a may_v seek_v to_o conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o that_o they_o may_v trust_v to_o be_v better_o reform_v daily_o by_o his_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v walk_v in_o newenesse_n of_o life_n to_o the_o end_n r._n therefore_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a example_n of_o life_n the_o which_o every_o one_o must_v follow_v if_o so_o be_v he_o desy_a to_o live_v a_o christian_a man_n life_n the_o godly_a also_o may_v be_v example_n of_o life_n but_o no_o otherwaye_n than_o in_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o follow_v christ_n whereupon_o paul_n set_v himself_o before_o other_o to_o be_v follow_v say_v i_o i_o cor._n 4._o i6_n i_o cor_n xi_o i_o therefore_o i_o exhort_v you_o that_o you_o be_v follower_n of_o i_o and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o expound_v himself_o sa_v be_v you_o follower_n of_o i_o even_o as_o i_o follow_v christ_n for_o such_o a_o example_n whereby_o our_o life_n must_v be_v frame_v must_v be_v perfect_v in_o every_o point_n but_o we_o can_v have_v a_o more_o perfect_v example_n of_o life_n than_o in_o christ_n for_o he_o do_v not_o only_o go_v before_o we_o &_o teach_v we_o with_o his_o voice_n but_o also_o by_o his_o virtue_n in_o we_o through_o faith_n he_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o may_v follow_v his_o example_n otherwise_o we_o be_v most_o weak_a and_o unapte_v to_o do_v the_o least_o good_a work_n 11._o these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v unto_o you_o that_o my_o joy_n may_v remain_v in_o you_o and_o that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a a._n as_o christ_n a_o little_a before_o leave_v his_o peace_n with_o his_o disciple_n put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o same_o worldly_a peace_n evenso_fw-la now_o he_o offer_v unto_o they_o the_o true_a and_o perfect_v joy_n far_o more_o excelente_v than_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o world_n bu_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o that_o joy_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v in_o himself_o but_o of_o that_o which_o we_o conceive_v of_o he_o by_o faith_n the_o same_o spring_v from_o the_o faith_n which_o all_o they_o that_o be_v justify_v by_o grace_n have_v with_o god_n therefore_o so_o often_o as_o we_o hear_v of_o his_o fatherly_a love_n toward_o we_o let_v we_o know_v that_o we_o have_v great_a occasion_n of_o joy_n insomuch_o that_o with_o quiet_a conscience_n we_o may_v be_v assure_v of_o our_o salvation_n a._n this_o joy_n the_o apostle_n wish_v that_o that_o we_o may_v feel_v
judgement_n of_o the_o spirit_n do_v begin_v at_o the_o demonstration_n of_o sin_n for_o this_o be_v the_o begininge_n of_o spiritual_a doctrine_n that_o man_n be_v bear_v in_o sin_n that_o they_o have_v nothing_o in_o themselves_o but_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o spirit_n when_o he_o come_v shall_v show_v and_o convince_v that_o sin_n reign_v in_o the_o world_n without_o i_o wherefore_o infidelytie_n be_v here_o name_v because_o it_o do_v separate_v we_o from_o christ_n and_o so_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o leave_v in_o we_o but_o sin_n to_o be_v short_a in_o these_o word_n be_v condemn_v the_o corruption_n of_o humane_a nature_n lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o we_o have_v any_o drop_n of_o perfection_n in_o we_o without_o christ_n m._n therefore_o we_o see_v here_o that_o it_o be_v express_v by_o a_o manifest_a sentence_n that_o not_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v sin_n for_o it_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o his_o son_n 10._o of_o righteousenes_n be_v cause_n i_o go_v to_o my_o father_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o no_o more_o c._n we_o must_v note_n here_o the_o order_n of_o degree_n which_o christ_n utter_v now_o he_o say_v that_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v rebuke_v of_o ãâã_d righteousness_n for_o man_n do_v not_o hoongar_n and_o thirst_n after_o righteousness_n nay_o they_o disdainful_o reject_v what_o so_o ever_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o same_o except_o they_o be_v touch_v with_o the_o feel_v of_o sin_n special_o we_o must_v thus_o judge_v of_o the_o faithful_a that_o they_o can_v profit_v in_o the_o gospel_n except_o they_o be_v first_o humble_v the_o which_o can_v be_v without_o the_o know_n of_o their_o sin_n it_o be_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o law_n to_o call_v man_n conscience_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o to_o wound_n they_o with_o fear_n but_o the_o gospel_n can_v be_v right_o preach_v but_o it_o must_v bring_v from_o sin_n to_o righteousenes_n and_o from_o death_n to_o life_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o it_o borrow_v from_o the_o law_n this_o first_o part_n of_o the_o which_o christ_n speak_v here_o moreover_o by_o righteousenesse_n in_o this_o place_n christ_n understand_v that_o righteousness_n which_o be_v give_v to_o we_o by_o his_o grace_n christ_n say_v that_o he_o geve_v not_o this_o without_o his_o father_n consent_n &_o that_o not_o without_o cause_n for_o as_o he_o rise_v again_o for_o our_o justification_n so_o now_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n that_o he_o may_v use_v that_o power_n which_o be_v give_v to_o he_o and_o may_v so_o fulfil_v all_o thing_n in_o fine_a he_o never_o send_v from_o his_o heavenly_a glory_n the_o odour_n of_o his_o righteousenesse_n unto_o the_o world_n but_o the_o spirit_n pronounce_v by_o the_o gospel_n that_o this_o be_v one_o way_n by_o which_o we_o be_v count_v just_a therefore_o this_o second_o degree_n of_o the_o conjunction_n of_o sin_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v plain_o prove_v and_o show_v unto_o the_o world_n what_o true_a righteousenesse_n be_v namely_o that_o christ_n by_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n have_v appoint_v the_o kingdom_n of_o life_n and_o now_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n that_o he_o may_v establish_v true_a righteousness_n a._n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o obtain_v true_a righteousness_n than_o to_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n with_o true_a faith_n for_o he_o which_o trulye_o beléeve_v be_v trulye_o justify_v 11._o of_o judgement_n because_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n be_v judge_v already_o c._n judgement_n in_o this_o place_n signify_v right_a and_o equity_n as_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n also_o and_o it_o be_v the_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o be_v disorder_v disperse_a &_o confound_v this_o therefore_o be_v the_o sense_n that_o satan_n so_o long_o as_o he_o have_v rule_v do_v mix_v disorder_n and_o trouble_v all_o thing_n that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o foul_a and_o deform_a order_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n but_o when_o he_o be_v put_v from_o his_o tyranny_n by_o christ_n that_o then_o the_o world_n be_v repair_v and_o good_a order_n begin_v to_o appear_v thus_o the_o spirit_n rebuke_v and_o convince_v the_o world_n of_o judgement_n that_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n have_v overcome_v the_o prince_n of_o iniquity_n restore_v into_o good_a order_n those_o thing_n which_o before_o be_v confound_v and_o out_o of_o frame_n m._n satan_n therefore_o be_v overcome_v by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o soon_o of_o god_n as_o by_o the_o more_o mighty_a but_o that_o be_v then_o know_v when_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n shine_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o mortal_a man_n a._n concern_v the_o which_o read_v in_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n go_v before_o and_o the_o xxxi_o verse_n 12._o i_o have_v yet_o many_o thing_n to_o say_v unto_o you_o but_o you_o can_v bear_v they_o away_o now_o 13._o howbeit_o when_o he_o be_v come_v which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n he_o will_v lead_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n he_o shall_v not_o speak_v of_o himself_o but_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v hear_v that_o he_o shall_v speak_v and_o he_o will_v show_v you_o thing_n to_o come_v m._n it_o appear_v that_o the_o lord_n among_o all_o other_o consolation_n propose_v this_o before_o his_o disciple_n as_o chief_a and_o that_o he_o afterward_o double_v the_o same_o because_o they_o shall_v receyve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v their_o teacher_n comforter_n and_o advocate_n by_o who_o they_o shall_v be_v lead_v and_o govern_v in_o all_o thing_n by_o this_o promise_n he_o incourage_v they_o to_o reveal_v the_o sorrow_n and_o heaviness_n of_o their_o hart_n by_o which_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o can_v not_o well_o understande_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v c._n and_o because_o there_o be_v no_o other_o stay_n but_o doctrine_n upon_o which_o they_o may_v rest_n he_o geve_v they_o to_o understande_v that_o he_o have_v temper_v the_o same_o according_a to_o their_o capasitie_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o that_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o establish_v and_o stay_v you_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o stay_v a_o while_n for_o hereafter_o you_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o spirit_n shall_v want_v nothing_o he_o shall_v profit_v and_o finish_v that_o in_o you_o which_o be_v as_o yet_o but_o new_o begin_v m._n here_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n have_v a_o example_n to_o follow_v namely_o that_o they_o themselves_o may_v have_v a_o consideration_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o other_o who_o they_o take_v in_o hand_n to_o instruct_v either_o in_o doctrine_n or_o in_o dissiplyne_n and_o to_o burden_n they_o with_o no_o more_o than_o they_o caâ_n present_o bear_v for_o there_o be_v sertayne_v increment_n and_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a insomuch_o the_o all_o man_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o all_o thing_n if_o so_o be_v you_o shall_v by_o and_o by_o at_o the_o first_o chopexpounde_v unto_o a_o jew_n new_o instruct_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n according_a to_o the_o fullness_n of_o our_o faith_n neither_o his_o understanding_n can_v conceive_v it_o nor_o his_o memory_n carry_v it_o away_o c._n now_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v what_o thing_n those_o be_v which_o the_o apostel_n as_o yet_o be_v not_o apt_a to_o learn_v the_o papist_n to_o thrust_v in_o their_o own_o invention_n in_o stead_n of_o divine_a oracle_n do_v wicked_o abuse_v this_o place_n christ_n say_v they_o promise_v new_a revelation_n unto_o his_o apostle_n therefore_o we_o must_v not_o content_v ourselves_o with_o the_o scripture_n only_o above_o the_o which_o christ_n call_v his_o disciple_n but_o see_v christ_n hould_v his_o peace_n which_o of_o we_o can_v say_v either_o those_o be_v they_o or_o those_o be_v they_o or_o if_o he_o dare_v presume_v to_o say_v so_o how_o will_v he_o prove_v it_o who_o be_v so_o vain_a or_o rash_a who_o although_o he_o speak_v these_o thing_n which_o be_v true_a will_v afirme_v without_o any_o divine_a testymony_n that_o they_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o they_o speak_v c._n moreover_o the_o spirit_n be_v call_v the_o perfect_v scolmaster_n of_o truth_n which_o christ_n promise_v unto_o his_o apostle_n but_o to_o what_o end_n promise_v he_o the_o same_o but_o only_o that_o they_o may_v delivere_a the_o same_o wisdom_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o he_o that_o spirit_n be_v give_v the_o which_o be_v their_o guide_n and_o director_n they_o discharge_v the_o office_n commit_v unto_o they_o the_o same_o spirit_n have_v lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n when_o
glorification_n of_o other_o of_o the_o godly_a and_o of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n signifi_v that_o he_o do_v not_o ask_v of_o god_n a_o general_a glorification_n of_o the_o godly_a but_o a_o special_a glorify_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o thy_o son_n may_v glorify_v thou_o he_o mean_v that_o there_o be_v a_o mutual_a glorify_v of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n for_o to_o what_o end_n appear_v christ_n but_o only_o to_o bring_v we_o unto_o the_o father_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o what_o soever_o honour_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o father_n the_o same_o be_v bring_v unto_o christ_n and_o contraryewyse_o a._n and_o he_o which_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n honour_v not_o the_o father_n which_o send_v he_o whereupon_o in_o another_o place_n he_o join_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n together_o as_o when_o he_o say_v 11.4_o john_n 11.4_o this_o infirmity_n be_v not_o unto_o death_n but_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 5.23_o john_n 5.23_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v thereby_o m._n so_o that_o here_o we_o see_v the_o disposition_n of_o the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n he_o say_v not_o that_o thy_o son_n may_v be_v gloriouse_a in_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o that_o thy_o son_n may_v glorify_v thou_o so_o that_o whereas_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v glorify_v it_o be_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o fathers_n glory_n therefore_o not_o only_o the_o son_n but_o the_o father_n also_o himself_o be_v so_o unknown_a and_o obscure_a in_o this_o world_n and_o that_o not_o amoung_a the_o gentile_n only_o but_o also_o amounge_a the_o jew_n that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v glorify_v but_o by_o his_o son_n c._n final_o we_o must_v always_o remember_v what_o person_n christ_n in_o this_o sustain_v for_o we_o must_v not_o consider_v his_o eternal_a divinitye_n alone_o because_o he_o speak_v as_o he_o be_v god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o according_a to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n b._n moreover_o the_o son_n glorify_v the_o father_n when_o he_o manifest_v his_o power_n and_o goodness_n and_o the_o father_n glorifi_v the_o son_n in_o that_o he_o have_v exalt_v he_o set_v he_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o saviour_n of_o all_o and_o have_v make_v he_o to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o thing_n the_o lord_n plain_o enough_o declare_v when_o he_o say_v as_o follow_v as_o thou_o have_v give_v he_o power_n over_o all_o flesh_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v eternal_a life_n to_o as_o many_o as_o thou_o have_v give_v he_o r._n this_o be_v that_o glory_n with_o the_o which_o the_o father_n glorify_v the_o son_n namely_o that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o author_n of_o everlasting_a life_n to_o all_o man_n which_o believe_v in_o he_o which_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o word_n flesh_n for_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n that_o every_o one_o which_o see_v the_o son_n 46_o john_n 6_o 46_o and_o beléeve_v in_o he_o shall_v have_v eternal_a life_n but_o to_o be_v a_o medtator_n to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o everlasting_a life_n be_v not_o great_a honour_n and_o glory_n c._n the_o power_n over_o all_o flesh_n signify_v the_o rule_n and_o dominion_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o christ_n when_o the_o father_n appoint_v he_o to_o be_v the_o king_n and_o head_n but_o we_o must_v note_n the_o end_n namely_o that_o he_o may_v gyve_v eternal_a life_n to_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v christ_n therefore_o take_v upon_o he_o rule_v and_o power_n not_o so_o much_o for_o himself_o as_o for_o our_o salvation_n so_o that_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o we_o willing_o submit_v ourselves_o unto_o christ_n not_o only_o to_o obey_v god_n but_o also_o because_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o amiable_a than_o that_o subjection_n sing_v it_o be_v unto_o we_o the_o cause_n of_o everlasting_a life_n m._n but_o as_o touch_v this_o present_a place_n we_o see_v that_o eternal_a life_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o the_o reward_n of_o our_o merit_n secondlye_o that_o this_o gift_n be_v stay_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o god_n give_v to_o the_o son_n three_o god_n life_n eternal_a be_v the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n that_o everlasting_a life_n be_v not_o give_v to_o everye_o one_o but_o only_o to_o the_o elect_v who_o the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o the_o son_n c_o for_n christ_n say_v not_o that_o he_o have_v rule_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o give_v life_n unto_o all_o man_n âª_o without_o exception_n but_o he_o restrain_v this_o grace_n to_o those_o only_o which_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o but_o how_o be_v they_o give_v for_o the_o father_n have_v also_o make_v the_o reprobate_a subject_n unto_o he_o answer_v only_o the_o elect_v be_v of_o the_o peculiar_a flock_n of_o christ_n the_o custody_n and_o charge_n whereof_o he_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o shepherd_n therefore_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v extend_v to_o all_o man_n but_o it_o bring_v save_v health_n to_o the_o elect_a only_o who_o glad_o and_o willying_o follow_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n for_o other_o he_o constrain_v violent_o to_o obey_v he_o untyll_o at_o the_o last_o he_o break_v they_o in_o piece_n with_o a_o iron_n maul_v a._n therefore_o this_o place_n agree_v very_o well_o with_o that_o which_o we_o read_v before_o where_o it_o be_v say_v whatsoever_o the_o father_n gyve_v i_o shall_v come_v unto_o i_o also_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o send_v i_o 6.37_o joh._n 6.37_o that_o of_o all_o which_o he_o have_v give_v i_o i_o shall_v not_o loose_v one_o but_o raise_v it_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n this_o be_v life_n eternal_a that_o they_o may_v know_v thou_o the_o true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v c._n now_o he_o define_v the_o way_n how_o to_o geve_v life_n name_o when_o he_o illumine_v and_o bring_v the_o elect_v into_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n for_o he_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o the_o fruition_n of_o life_n which_o we_o hope_v for_o but_o only_o show_v how_o man_n shall_v come_v unto_o life_n and_o to_o the_o end_n this_o sentence_n may_v be_v well_o understand_v we_o must_v first_o of_o all_o note_n that_o we_o be_v all_o in_o death_n untyll_o such_o time_n as_o god_n do_v shine_v who_o alone_a be_v lyff_fw-mi and_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v shine_v because_o we_o possess_v he_o by_o faith_n we_o enter_v therewithal_o into_o the_o possession_n of_o life_n hereupon_o it_o come_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o be_v right_o say_v to_o bring_v save_v health_n m._n but_o this_o knowledge_n be_v not_o get_v by_o our_o own_o industrye_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o son_n pray_v the_o father_n to_o gloryfye_v he_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o also_o may_v glorifye_v he_o again_o and_o that_o so_o the_o elect_a have_v receyve_v the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o boath_n may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a life_n no_o man_n therefore_o can_v know_v god_n but_o by_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n r._n for_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n which_o have_v reveal_v he_o for_o he_o be_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n 1.18_o john_n 1.18_o and_o the_o light_n be_v know_v in_o brightness_n and_o glory_n 1.3_o hebr._n 1.3_o c._n wherefore_o god_n be_v not_o know_v but_o in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v his_o lively_a and_o express_a image_n 15._o colos_n 1_z 15._o in_o that_o therefore_o that_o the_o father_n be_v set_v in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o be_v not_o refer_v to_o the_o order_n of_o faith_n as_o though_o our_o mind_n know_v god_n shall_v afterward_o descend_v unto_o christ_n but_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n be_v that_o god_n be_v know_v by_o a_o mediator_n set_v between_o he_o and_o us._n m._n and_o to_o know_v god_n the_o father_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o he_o have_v send_v be_v not_o simp_o to_o know_v that_o god_n be_v god_n and_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v boath_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o be_v to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o cross_n &_o of_o the_o receyve_v dispensation_n &_o to_o redeem_v mankind_n from_o sin_n and_o death_n originallye_o come_v from_o adam_n eternal_a the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v life_n eternal_a as_o that_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n christ_n and_o that_o he_o send_v he_o for_o man_n salvation_n into_o the_o world_n by_o who_o blood_n salvation_n belong_v to_o all_o man_n as_o well_o to_o the_o jew_n
he_o have_v receive_v of_o his_o father_n hand_n notwithstanding_o this_o may_v seem_v very_o absurd_a for_o there_o can_v be_v a_o better_a rule_n of_o prayer_n devise_v then_o if_o we_o follow_v christ_n our_o captain_n and_o master_n 4_z math._n 5_o 4_z but_o we_o be_v command_v to_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n yea_o even_o for_o our_o enemy_n 1_z i_o tim_n 2_o 1_z also_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v that_o before_o all_o thing_n prayer_n supplication_n intercession_n and_o thanks_n geve_v be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n 34_o luk._n 23_o 34_o c._n furthermore_o christ_n himself_o pray_v after_o this_o indifferent_o for_o all_o man_n say_v father_n forgeve_v they_o for_o they_o wot_v not_o what_o they_o do_v m._n moreover_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o mediatoure_n not_o only_o to_o pray_v but_o also_o to_o offer_v and_o he_o offer_v himself_o upon_o the_o cross_n for_o all_o man_n 15_z 2_z cor._n 5_o 15_z for_o as_o say_v paul_n christ_n die_v for_o all_o man_n final_o saint_n john_n say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whoal_n world_n 2_z i_o john_n 2_o 2_z how_o then_o say_v he_o that_o he_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n see_v he_o die_v for_o all_o man_n question_v and_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whoale_n world_n c._n this_o may_v be_v bréef_o answer_v that_o these_o prayer_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n be_v notwithstanding_o restrain_v to_o the_o elect_v of_o god_n answer_v answer_v we_o ought_v to_o wish_v this_o and_o that_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o so_o to_o comprehend_v all_o mankind_n because_o as_o yet_o we_o can_v distinguish_v the_o elect_a from_o the_o reprobate_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o pray_v therewithal_o for_o the_o come_n of_o god_n kingdom_n wish_v that_o he_o will_v destroy_v his_o enemy_n this_o be_v even_o as_o much_o as_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n who_o we_o know_v to_o be_v create_v after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o which_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n that_o we_o be_v of_o and_o do_v leave_v their_o destruction_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v reprobate_n there_o be_v another_o sertayne_v special_a cause_n of_o this_o prayer_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v draw_v into_o example_n for_o christ_n prayer_n proceed_v not_o only_o from_o the_o bare_a scence_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n but_o also_o from_o the_o feel_v of_o his_o father_n secret_a judgemente_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o walk_v through_o faith_n m._n therefore_o because_o we_o know_v not_o who_o they_o be_v which_o so_o appertain_v unto_o the_o world_n that_o they_o can_v never_o be_v draw_v away_o from_o the_o same_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o we_o wish_v well_o unto_o all_o man_n and_o to_o declare_v our_o good_a will_n by_o prayer_n c._n furthermore_o by_o these_o word_n we_o gather_v that_o they_o who_o it_o please_v god_n to_o love_v out_o of_o this_o world_n shall_v be_v heir_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o this_o difference_n depend_v not_o upon_o man_n merit_n but_o upon_o the_o mere_a good_a will_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o the_o which_o place_n the_o cause_n of_o election_n in_o man_n must_v first_o begin_v with_o faith_n christ_n plain_o pronounce_v that_o they_o be_v the_o father_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o and_o it_o be_v sertayne_v that_o they_o be_v therefore_o give_v that_o they_o may_v believe_v and_o that_o faith_n come_v of_o this_o donation_n if_o so_o be_v this_o donation_n be_v the_o original_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o election_n go_v before_o the_o same_o what_o else_o can_v follow_v but_o that_o we_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v free_o choose_v who_o god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v save_v from_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n now_o see_v christ_n pray_v only_o for_o the_o elect_a the_o faith_n of_o election_n be_v necessary_a for_o we_o if_o so_o be_v we_o will_v have_v our_o salvation_n commend_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n therefore_o they_o do_v great_a injury_n to_o the_o faithful_a which_o seek_v to_o race_n out_o of_o their_o mind_n the_o knoweledg_n of_o their_o election_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v deprive_v they_o of_o the_o help_n of_o christ_n they_z also_o be_v here_o reproove_v which_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o their_o election_n geve_v themselves_o to_o all_o licentiousenesse_n of_o life_n and_o to_o negligence_n and_o slew_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n whenas_o the_o same_o ought_v rather_o to_o move_v they_o to_o all_o godliness_n evenas_a christ_n teach_v by_o his_o example_n furthermore_o whereas_o christ_n pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n but_o only_o for_o the_o elect_v it_o bring_v great_a horror_n and_o fear_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o world_n run_v headlong_o to_o all_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n to_o death_n to_o hell_n and_o into_o everlasting_a condemnation_n for_o only_o the_o unbeléevinge_v for_o who_o christ_n pray_v overcome_v in_o christ_n through_o prayer_n all_o the_o evelles_fw-la of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o the_o devil_n but_o the_o world_n by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n be_v give_v over_o into_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n and_o be_v leave_v unto_o his_o own_o will_n and_o pleasure_n wherefore_o as_o it_o live_v wicked_o so_o by_o the_o horrible_a judgement_n of_o god_n it_o be_v condemn_v m._n here_o also_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o love_v these_o hearty_o who_o we_o know_v to_o belong_v unto_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o father_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n to_o make_v our_o earnest_a prayer_n unto_o god_n for_o they_o 10._o and_o all_o mine_n be_v thou_o and_o thou_o be_v i_o and_o i_o be_o glorify_v in_o they_o r._n this_o be_v a_o confyrmation_n of_o christ_n prayer_n for_o christ_n obtain_v that_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o father_n which_o he_o pray_v for_o because_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o father_n be_v he_o the_o which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v the_o son_n equal_a with_o the_o father_n m._n to_o the_o father_n béelonge_v the_o sempiternal_a divinity_n wisdom_n power_n goodness_n all_o honour_n and_o glory_n heaven_n earth_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o they_o angel_n man_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o therefore_o all_o these_o thing_n also_o belong_v unto_o christ_n who_o the_o father_n have_v make_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n c._n christ_n therefore_o speak_v this_o to_o show_v that_o he_o shall_v sertain_o be_v hear_v of_o the_o father_n 2._o hebr._n i_o 2._o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o commend_v no_o other_o unto_o thou_o than_o those_o who_o thou_o know_v to_o be_v thy_o own_o because_o i_o have_v nothing_o which_o thou_o haste_v not_o therefore_o i_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v r._n notwithstanding_o he_o seem_v hear_v to_o speak_v spetial_o of_o the_o elect_v these_o thing_n be_v so_o common_a unto_o the_o father_n and_o to_o christ_n that_o christ_n take_v none_o to_o be_v save_v but_o those_o who_o the_o father_n have_v elect_v for_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o all_o those_o who_o god_n have_v elect_v those_o christ_n take_v into_o his_o charge_n and_o save_v when_o he_o add_v and_o i_o be_o glorify_v in_o they_o he_o show_v that_o he_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o have_v care_n for_o the_o elect_v and_o to_o seek_v their_o salvation_n see_v they_o seek_v whole_o to_o set_v forth_o his_o glory_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o be_o now_o go_v out_o of_o the_o world_n these_o shall_v abide_v in_o the_o world_n and_o shall_v glorify_v i_o that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o shall_v preach_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n my_o victory_n and_o triumph_n over_o sin_n death_n and_o hell_n c._n and_o this_o be_v a_o notable_a confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o christ_n will_v neaver_o cease_v to_o have_v care_n for_o our_o salvation_n if_o so_o be_v he_o be_v gloryfy_v and_o to_o glorify_v christ_n be_v first_o of_o all_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o as_o in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n second_o for_o his_o sake_n to_o do_v and_o suffer_v all_o thing_n three_o to_o seek_v diligent_o to_o bring_v all_o man_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o to_o profess_v his_o name_n and_o to_o embrace_v his_o truth_n and_o fourthly_a to_o express_v his_o spirit_n in_o all_o thing_n by_o the_o exercise_n of_o true_a godliness_n all_o which_o thing_n be_v look_v for_o at_o their_o hand_n which_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n of_o the_o father_n 11._o and_o now_o be_o i_o not_o in_o the_o world_n and_o they_o be_v in_o the_o woorlde_n and_o i_o come_v too_o thou_o holy_a father_n keep_v through_o thy_o own_o name_n they_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o that_o they_o may_v also_o be_v one_o as_o we_o be_v c._n now_o
a_o familiar_a apostle_n of_o chryste_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v by_o this_o place_n a_o man_n shall_v gather_v amiss_o that_o the_o fall_n of_o judas_n shall_v rather_o be_v impute_v to_o god_n than_o to_o himself_o because_o of_o the_o necessity_n which_o be_v lay_v upon_o he_o by_o the_o prophecy_n for_o the_o success_n and_o sequel_n of_o matter_n ought_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o prophecy_n because_o the_o same_o be_v there_o foreshow_v neither_o do_v the_o prophet_n prophesy_v any_o other_o thing_n than_o the_o very_a same_o which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v though_o they_o hold_v their_o peace_n therefore_o we_o must_v not_o think_v the_o cause_n of_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v in_o they_o most_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o nothing_o happen_v but_o by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n but_o the_o question_n be_v now_o only_o concern_v the_o scripture_n whether_o their_o prediction_n and_o prophecy_n bring_v any_o necessity_n with_o they_o to_o man_n or_o no_o the_o which_o we_o have_v show_v already_o to_o be_v false_a neither_o be_v it_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n to_o impute_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o judas_n unto_o the_o scripture_n but_o only_o to_o take_v away_o the_o occasion_n of_o offence_n which_o may_v trouble_v weak_a mind_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o offence_n may_v be_v take_v away_o be_v because_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v before_o testify_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v so_o come_v to_o pass_v for_o common_o at_o new_a and_o unwonted_a thing_n we_o be_v much_o afraid_a this_o be_v a_o very_a necessary_a admonition_n for_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v at_o this_o day_n that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o man_n so_o easy_o fall_v at_o every_o stumble_a block_n but_o because_o they_o remember_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n a._n but_o of_o what_o scripture_n be_v this_o that_o christ_n speak_v for_o he_o express_v not_o the_o place_n no_o more_o than_o he_o dydde_v in_o the_o eyghtéenth_fw-mi verse_n of_o the_o thirteenth_o chapter_n before_o b._n we_o must_v note_v that_o as_o what_o soever_o be_v write_v of_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o same_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o lord_n the_o head_n of_o the_o saint_n yea_o and_o be_v fulfil_v in_o he_o even_o so_o it_o follow_v that_o what_o soever_o be_v write_v of_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o only_o agree_v but_o also_o be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n héereuppon_o the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v let_v his_o habitation_n be_v desert_n and_o no_o man_n be_v dwell_v therein_o 1.20_o act._n 1.20_o and_o his_o bishopric_n let_v another_o take_v 69.26_o psal_n 69.26_o the_o which_o place_n he_o allege_v as_o speak_v of_o judas_n the_o which_o psalm_n and_o the_o hundred_o and_o nine_o also_o do_v special_o entreat_v of_o the_o lord_n punishment_n and_o of_o his_o enemy_n notwithstanding_o the_o content_n of_o they_o be_v first_o fulfil_v in_o david_n as_o in_o the_o figure_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o his_o enemy_n which_o be_v type_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n but_o yet_o figurative_o and_o true_o fulfil_v at_o the_o last_o in_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o his_o enemy_n héereuppon_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o lord_n speak_v in_o this_o present_a place_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o sixty_o nine_o psal_n concern_v his_o enemy_n by_o this_o place_n also_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n can_v not_o be_v frustrate_a even_o as_o christ_n teach_v in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n goo_v before_o and_o therefore_o those_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o same_o whether_o they_o appertain_v to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o godly_a or_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o reprobate_n be_v so_o certain_o to_o be_v believe_v that_o we_o need_v nothing_o to_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v to_o who_o the_o same_o promise_v salvation_n and_o those_o destroy_v to_o who_o soever_o the_o same_o threaten_v destruction_n 13._o now_o come_v i_o to_o thou_o &_o these_o word_n speak_v i_o in_o the_o world_n that_o they_o may_v have_v my_o joy_n fullfil_v in_o themselves_o c._n here_o christ_n show_v that_o he_o do_v not_o therefore_o so_o earnest_o pray_v unto_o the_o father_n for_o his_o disciple_n as_o though_o he_o be_v careful_a for_o their_o state_n to_o come_v but_o rather_o to_o ease_v they_o of_o their_o care_n and_o sorrow_n m._n he_o speak_v these_o thing_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o his_o disciple_n not_o because_o of_o himself_o or_o his_o father_n but_o for_o their_o sake_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v hitherto_o have_v i_o keep_v they_o in_o the_o world_n but_o now_o i_o come_v unto_o thou_o wherefore_o i_o now_o commend_v they_o unto_o thy_o providence_n and_o i_o speak_v these_o thing_n that_o they_o may_v rejoice_v in_o my_o name_n know_v in_o what_o favour_n i_o be_o with_o thou_o c._n he_o call_v it_o his_o joy_n because_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o author_n cause_n and_o pledge_v of_o the_o same_o for_o in_o we_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o terror_n fear_n unquietnes_n and_o sorrow_n and_o in_o christ_n alone_o peace_n and_o joy._n a._n and_o this_o verse_n agree_v with_o that_o where_o christ_n speak_v unto_o his_o disciple_n after_o this_o manner_n these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v unto_o you_o that_o my_o joy_n may_v remain_v in_o you_o 15.11_o john_n 15.11_o and_o that_o your_o joy_n may_v befull_a compare_v the_o exposition_n of_o both_o place_n together_o and_o thou_o shall_v have_v the_o true_a mean_v of_o christ_n 14._o i_o have_v give_v they_o thy_o word_n and_o the_o world_n have_v hate_v they_o because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n even_o as_o i_o also_o be_o not_o of_o the_o world_n c._n for_o another_o cause_n he_o commend_v the_o disciple_n unto_o the_o father_n because_o for_o the_o hatred_n of_o the_o world_n sake_n they_o have_v need_n of_o his_o help_n and_o with_o all_o he_o show_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o hatred_n namely_o for_o that_o they_o embrace_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o the_o world_n can_v not_o abide_v r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o have_v preach_v unto_o they_o the_o gospel_n which_o they_o in_o like_a manner_n shall_v set_v forth_o hereafter_o too_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o for_o the_o same_o shall_v suffer_v persecution_n of_o the_o world_n for_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o teach_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o world_n for_o they_o preach_v impiety_n to_o be_v there_o where_o the_o world_n place_v righteousness_n and_o that_o they_o make_v sin_n which_o the_o world_n count_v innocensy_n beside_o all_o this_o they_o fashion_v not_o themselves_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o this_o world_n for_o they_o allow_v of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o dislike_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o please_v the_o world_n c._n now_o we_o must_v note_v that_o &_o call_v it_o to_o mind_n which_o we_o hear_v even_o now_o that_o the_o end_n of_o this_o prayer_n be_v that_o the_o joy_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v fullfil_v in_o us._n therefore_o so_o often_o as_o the_o fury_n and_o rage_n of_o this_o world_n be_v so_o kendle_v in_o against_o we_o that_o we_o seem_v to_o be_v never_o unto_o destruction_n let_v we_o hold_v before_o we_o this_o target_n that_o god_n never_o forsake_v they_o which_o labour_n for_o the_o gospel_n he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n because_o all_o they_o be_v separate_v from_o they_o which_o be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n god_n therefore_o will_v not_o suffer_v his_o sheep_n to_o wander_v among_o wolf_n but_o he_o will_v show_v himself_o a_o sheepehard_v unto_o they_o a._n but_o concern_v these_o thing_n we_o have_v speak_v more_o in_o the_o .15_o chapter_n go_v before_o and_o in_o the_o .9_o verse_n of_o the_o same_o in_o like_o manner_n in_o what_o sense_n christ_n be_v say_v not_o to_o be_v of_o this_o world_n read_v the_o .23_o verse_n of_o the_o .8_o chapter_n go_v before_o 15._o i_o pray_v not_o that_o thou_o shall_v take_v they_o out_o of_o this_o world_n but_o that_o thou_o keep_v they_o from_o evil_a christ_n do_v not_o teach_v his_o father_n what_o he_o shall_v do_v unto_o the_o apostle_n âª_o and_o what_o not_o he_o speak_v these_o thing_n because_o of_o the_o disciple_n which_o stand_v by_o for_o who_o he_o pray_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v know_v that_o this_o be_v the_o divine_a custody_n that_o they_o may_v be_v preserve_v and_o keep_v in_o this_o evil_a and_o wicked_a world_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v circumvent_v with_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o same_o c._n therefore_o christ_n provide_v for_o their_o infirmity_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v temper_v
sentence_n but_o because_o by_o their_o prudence_n they_o may_v deliver_v the_o oppress_v to_o the_o judge_n as_o the_o matter_n concern_v he_o be_v sufficient_o examine_v and_o know_v m._n they_o make_v haste_n to_o finish_v their_o purpose_n least_o the_o wicked_a act_n may_v be_v prevent_v or_o let_v by_o any_o tumult_n or_o trouble_n c._n the_o roman_n call_v as_o well_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lieftenante_n as_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n where_o judgement_n be_v common_o give_v the_o judgement_n haule_fw-mi it_o be_v in_o the_o morning_n a._n read_v the_o exposition_n of_o this_o in_o the_o 27._o of_o matthew_n in_o the_o .11_o verse_n also_o concern_v the_o rest_n of_o this_o chapter_n read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o say_a 27._o chap._n begin_v at_o the_o say_a verse_n â§_o the_o .19_o chapter_n then_o pilate_n take_v jesus_n therefore_o and_o scurge_v he_o m._n it_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v wherefore_o pilate_n cause_v the_o lord_n to_o be_v scourge_v r._n he_o see_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v so_o envious_a against_o christ_n that_o no_o persuasion_n nor_o fair_a speech_n can_v stay_v they_o from_o murder_v he_o wherefore_o to_o avoid_v a_o great_a mischief_n which_o be_v the_o kill_n of_o a_o innocent_a he_o choose_v a_o less_o punishment_n c._o hope_v that_o the_o jew_n by_o this_o mean_a punishment_n will_v be_v content_v when_o christ_n be_v scourge_v m._n but_o this_o purpose_n of_o pilate_n though_o it_o be_v direct_v to_o avoid_v the_o necessity_n of_o kill_a christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o can_v not_o be_v defend_v as_o well_o do_v for_o he_o shall_v free_o have_v deliver_v the_o innocent_a and_o have_v deliver_v he_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o not_o to_o have_v scourge_v he_o c._n and_o whereas_o he_o labour_v so_o earnest_o and_o profyte_v nothing_o we_o must_v therein_o consider_v god_n decree_n by_o which_o christ_n be_v appoint_v to_o death_n yet_o notwithstanding_o his_o innocency_n be_v often_o time_n maintain_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o judge_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o he_o be_v free_a in_o all_o thing_n from_o sin_n be_v make_v guilty_a for_o other_o and_o sustain_v the_o punishment_n due_a for_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o r._n moreover_o the_o lord_n declare_v in_o his_o only_a beget_v son_n how_o he_o will_v have_v his_o elect_n and_o adopt_a son_n to_o be_v handle_v in_o this_o world_n for_o if_o he_o suffer_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n to_o be_v scourge_v how_o much_o more_o will_v he_o suffer_v his_o adopt_a son_n too_o be_v whip_v and_o scourge_v 3.19_o pro._n 3.12_o apoc._n 3.19_o who_o the_o lord_n love_v say_v solomon_n he_o correct_v and_o he_o scourge_v every_o son_n who_o he_o receive_v 2._o and_o the_o soldier_n wound_n a_o crown_n of_o thorn_n and_o put_v it_o on_o his_o head_n and_o they_o do_v on_o he_o a_o purple_a garment_n this_o no_o doubt_n be_v do_v at_o the_o commandment_n of_o pilate_n to_o set_v some_o note_n of_o offence_n upon_o the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o he_o make_v himself_o a_o king_n and_o this_o he_o do_v to_o fulfil_v the_o madness_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v persuade_v that_o christ_n be_v right_o accuse_v of_o they_o notwithstanding_o the_o soldier_n go_v beyond_o their_o commission_n and_o delte_v more_o cruel_o with_o christ_n than_o they_o be_v command_v even_o as_o all_o the_o wicked_a be_v go_v to_o do_v who_o when_o any_o occasion_n of_o evil_n do_v be_v offer_v unto_o they_o gréede_o take_v the_o same_o r._n for_o the_o soldier_n with_o contempt_n crown_n christ_n put_v on_o he_o purple_a and_o give_v he_o a_o reed_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n for_o they_o hear_v that_o he_o desire_v a_o kingdom_n but_o while_o the_o wicked_a deride_v and_o contemn_v he_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n have_v his_o effect_n for_o by_o these_o ceremony_n christ_n be_v set_v in_o his_o kingdom_n and_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v glorious_a in_o the_o flesh_n adorn_v with_o pomp_n &_o mighty_a in_o external_a power_n but_o a_o thorney_n and_o purple_a kingdom_n that_o be_v subject_n to_o affliction_n and_o passion_n 4._o pilate_n go_v forth_o again_o and_o say_v unto_o they_o behold_v i_o bring_v he_o forth_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o i_o find_v no_o fault_n in_o he_o m._n pilate_n testify_v again_o of_o the_o innocency_n of_o jesu_n a_o and_o therefore_o he_o pronounce_v sentence_n against_o himself_o for_o if_o so_o be_v christ_n be_v subject_a to_o no_o fault_n why_o be_v he_o wip_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o judge_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n the_o tyrant_n at_o this_o day_n which_o cruel_o vex_v and_o torment_v the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n pronounce_v many_o thing_n against_o themselves_o whereby_o they_o shall_v one_o day_n be_v judge_v for_o they_o say_v wonder_v be_v the_o condition_n of_o these_o heretic_n they_o have_v nothing_o in_o their_o mouth_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o talk_v always_o of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n and_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o contemn_v human_a tradition_n as_o superfluous_a many_o such_o like_a thing_n they_o speak_v by_o which_o they_o pronounce_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o godly_a to_o be_v most_o just_a and_o themselves_o most_o wicked_a wretch_n r._n as_o touch_v the_o civil_a law_n christ_n of_o right_a shall_v have_v be_v set_v at_o liberty_n see_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n be_v satisfy_v and_o the_o civil_a law_n can_v geve_v to_o one_o cause_n but_o one_o punishment_n but_o this_o be_v the_o lot_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o gospel_n in_o this_o world_n to_o have_v wrong_a and_o injustice_n in_o this_o world_n offer_v he_o for_o as_o at_o another_o time_n christ_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o phariseis_n his_o cause_n not_o hear_v and_o the_o gospel_n contemn_v before_o it_o be_v know_v even_o so_o at_o this_o time_n christ_n though_o he_o be_v clear_a and_o quit_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n yet_o notwithstanding_o impiety_n will_v have_v her_o pleasure_n 5._o then_o come_v jesus_n forth_o wear_v a_o crown_n of_o thorn_n and_o a_o robe_n of_o purple_a and_o pilate_n say_v unto_o they_o behold_v the_o man_n m._n to_o the_o end_n pilate_n may_v somewhat_o pacify_v the_o jew_n and_o may_v bring_v they_o to_o human_a compassion_n and_o pity_n he_o first_o pronounce_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o innocent_a second_o he_o will_v they_o to_o behold_v with_o more_o pitiful_a eye_n the_o man_n myserable_o handle_v and_o entreat_v and_o to_o lay_v aside_o their_o fury_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o you_o be_v man_n have_v pity_n upon_o this_o poor_a man_n miserable_o entreat_v if_o he_o be_v just_a discharge_n the_o innocent_a r._n but_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v satisfy_v and_o appease_v that_o they_o wax_v more_o outerageous_a than_o they_o be_v before_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n crucyfie_v he_o crucify_v he_o with_o the_o like_a voice_n the_o mad_a ethnix_n cry_v out_o against_o the_o christian_n say_v to_o the_o beast_n to_o the_o beast_n away_o with_o the_o church_n robber_n away_o with_o they_o a._n so_o the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n cry_v out_o against_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o fire_n to_o the_o fire_n to_o who_o we_o may_v more_o modest_o answer_v to_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n but_o these_o miserable_a man_n hear_v not_o this_o voice_n c._n wonderful_a very_o be_v the_o madness_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o their_o cruelty_n no_o less_o who_o mind_n can_v not_o be_v move_v to_o pity_n and_o mercy_n by_o so_o sorrowful_a a_o sight_n but_o god_n be_v the_o moderator_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o he_o may_v reconcile_v the_o world_n to_o himself_o by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n a._n concern_v the_o verse_n follow_v read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o .27_o of_o matthew_n begin_v at_o the_o .23_o verse_n 31._o the_o jew_n therefore_o because_o it_o be_v the_o prepartion_n of_o the_o sabbath_n that_o the_o body_n shall_v not_o remain_v on_o the_o cross_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n for_o that_o sabbath_n day_n be_v a_o high_a day_n beseech_v pilate_n that_o their_o leg_n may_v be_v break_v and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v take_v down_o m._n thus_o far_o come_v the_o history_n of_o the_o passion_n and_o crucify_a of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o evangelist_n go_v forward_o with_o that_o which_o happen_v after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n c._n therefore_o that_o which_o he_o tell_v concern_v the_o jew_n
how_o they_o beseech_v pilate_n that_o the_o body_n may_v be_v take_v down_o it_o serve_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n first_o because_o it_o show_v that_o the_o same_o be_v fullfil_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v foreshow_v in_o the_o scrpture_n second_o because_o it_o contain_v a_o mystery_n of_o no_o small_a weight_n a._n in_o the_o mean_a time_n notwithstanding_o the_o jew_n bewray_v their_o hypocrisy_n when_o they_o require_v that_o the_o body_n may_v be_v take_v down_o from_o the_o cross_n 21.23_o deu._n 21.23_o m._n the_o law_n of_o moses_n command_v that_o the_o body_n hang_v upon_o the_o tree_n shall_v the_o same_o day_n that_o it_o be_v hang_v be_v take_v down_o &_o bury_v r._n the_o jew_n very_o diligent_o observe_v this_o law_n be_v make_v only_o for_o civility_n and_o humanity_n sake_n whereas_o otherwise_o they_o transgress_v the_o whole_a law_n who_o will_v not_o have_v judge_v these_o to_o be_v holy_a man_n who_o will_v have_v suspect_v that_o they_o will_v have_v kill_v christ_n against_o the_o law_n see_v they_o such_o diligent_a observer_n of_o the_o law_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v religious_o observe_v their_o sabbath_n they_o be_v very_o careful_a for_o the_o outward_a pollution_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n not_o consider_v how_o wicked_a a_o deed_n it_o be_v to_o kill_v a_o innosent_a man_n so_o a_o little_a before_o we_o see_v that_o they_o enter_v not_o into_o the_o judgement_n haule_n lest_o they_o shall_v defile_v themselves_o when_o as_o their_o impiety_n defile_v and_o pollute_v the_o whole_a country_n 22._o then_o come_v the_o soldier_n &_o break_v the_o leg_n of_o the_o first_o and_o of_o the_o other_o which_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o 23._o but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o jesus_n &_o see_v that_o he_o be_v dead_a already_o they_o break_v not_o his_o leg_n g._n whereas_o when_o they_o have_v break_v the_o leg_n of_o the_o two_o thief_n they_o find_v christ_n dead_a and_o therefore_o touch_v not_o his_o body_n we_o may_v therein_o behold_v a_o extraordinary_a work_n of_o god_n providence_n heathen_a and_o profane_a man_n will_v say_v that_o it_o come_v natural_o to_o pass_v that_o one_o man_n die_v soon_o than_o another_o but_o he_o that_o shall_v weigh_v and_o consider_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o the_o history_n shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o secret_a purpose_n of_o god_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o the_o speedy_a death_n of_o christ_n stay_v they_o from_o break_v his_o leg_n 34._o but_o one_o of_o the_o soldier_n with_o a_o spear_n thrust_v he_o into_o the_o side_n &_o forthwith_o come_v there_o out_o blood_n and_o water_n in_o that_o his_o side_n be_v pierce_v with_o a_o spear_n by_o the_o soldier_n it_o be_v do_v to_o approve_v his_o death_n but_o god_n have_v a_o further_a respect_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o but_o very_o childish_a be_v the_o imagination_n of_o the_o papist_n which_o have_v make_v of_o this_o spear_n man_n a_o longius_fw-la feign_v the_o proper_a name_n of_o a_o man_n &_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n more_o fabulous_a they_o say_v that_o this_o soldier_n be_v before_o blind_a and_o receive_v his_o sight_n be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n and_o therefore_o they_o have_v canonize_v he_o a_o saint_n if_o such_o saint_n be_v their_o patroness_n when_o they_o pray_v unto_o god_n what_o i_o pray_v you_o shall_v they_o attain_v at_o any_o time_n but_o they_o be_v worthy_a which_o leave_v christ_n seek_v after_o dead_a man_n to_o be_v deceyve_v and_o blind_v by_o the_o devil_n and_o forthwith_o come_v therout_a blood_n &_o water_n c._n some_o be_v deceive_v feign_v here_o a_o miracle_n for_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a thing_n for_o blood_n when_o it_o be_v congeal_v and_o have_v lose_v his_o readiness_n to_o be_v like_o water_n therefore_o this_o be_v no_o miraculous_a thing_n that_o water_n gush_v out_o of_o his_o side_n with_o blood_n he_o be_v dead_a and_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o evangelist_n be_v to_o declare_v that_o his_o narration_n be_v confirm_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n which_o he_o afterward_o add_v and_o special_o that_o he_o may_v put_v the_o faithful_a in_o mind_n of_o that_o which_o he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n 5.6_o 1._o ihon._n 5.6_o name_o that_o christ_n come_v by_o water_n and_o blood_n by_o which_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o christ_n bring_v with_o he_o the_o true_a satisfaction_n and_o the_o lively_a fountain_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n righteousness_n and_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v fygure_v in_o the_o law_n by_o these_o two_o sign_n namely_o by_o sacrifice_n and_o washinge_n in_o sacrifice_n blood_n satisfy_v for_o sin_n and_o be_v the_o price_n to_o satisfy_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n wash_n be_v testimony_n of_o true_a purity_n and_o remedy_n to_o pourge_v away_o uncleanness_n and_o to_o wash_v away_o the_o spot_v of_o the_o flesh_n but_o least_o faith_n shall_v stay_v any_o more_o upon_o these_o element_n s._n john_n testify_v in_o his_o epistle_n that_o the_o fulfil_n and_o fullness_n of_o both_o grace_n be_v in_o christ_n and_o here_o he_o give_v we_o a_o visible_a sign_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n to_o the_o same_o end_n pertain_v those_o sacrament_n which_o christ_n have_v leave_v unto_o his_o church_n for_o in_o baptism_n the_o purgation_n and_o purity_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o appear_v by_o newness_n of_o life_n be_v declare_v and_o the_o supper_n be_v a_o pledge_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n make_v but_o they_o differ_v far_o from_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o old_a law_n because_o they_o offer_v christ_n as_o if_o he_o be_v present_a who_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o law_n show_v a_o far_o off_o wherefore_o we_o may_v affirm_v that_o our_o sacrament_n flow_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o christ_n side_n sacrament_n flow_v out_o of_o christ_n side_n for_o they_o we_o be_v true_o wash_v away_o from_o our_o spot_v and_o be_v renew_a into_o a_o holy_a life_n then_o we_o be_v redeem_v from_o death_n and_o do_v live_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n when_o baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v lead_v we_o unto_o christ_n side_n that_o from_o thence_o we_o may_v draw_v that_o as_o from_o a_o lively_a spring_n by_o faith_n which_o they_o do_v figure_n and_o signify_v 35._o and_o he_o that_o see_v it_o bare_a record_n and_o his_o record_n be_v true_a and_o he_o know_v that_o he_o say_v true_a that_o you_o may_v believe_v also_o m._n this_o s._n john_n add_v for_o the_o more_o certainty_n of_o the_o matter_n show_v that_o in_o a_o cause_n of_o christian_a faith_n we_o must_v lean_v to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v certain_a and_o true_a to_o the_o same_o effect_n pertain_v these_o word_n and_o we_o see_v his_o glory_n 1.14_o john_n 1.14_o as_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o the_o father_n and_o again_o 2.24_o john_n 3.11_o 1._o john_n 1.1_o 2._o pet._n 1.16_o ephe._n 4.14_o 1._o joh._n 2.24_o that_o which_o we_o know_v we_o speak_v and_o we_o testify_v that_o which_o we_o have_v see_v m._n furthermore_o in_o that_o he_o bring_v god_n for_o a_o witness_n of_o those_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a which_o he_o write_v say_v and_o he_o know_v that_o he_o say_v true_a we_o have_v a_o example_n of_o a_o christian_a teacher_n he_z which_o speak_v or_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o only_o to_o speak_v but_o also_o to_o testify_v and_o that_o of_o such_o true_a and_o manifest_a thing_n as_o he_o himself_o nothing_o doubt_v of_o so_o that_o he_o himself_o may_v say_v i_o know_v that_o i_o speak_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v true_a a_o man_n shall_v find_v diverse_a which_o teach_v the_o truth_n notwithstanding_o they_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o they_o speak_v truth_n or_o no_o because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o true_a and_o undoubted_a meaning_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o speak_v but_o the_o letter_n only_o furthermore_o we_o see_v to_o what_o end_n the_o evangelist_n have_v write_v namely_o to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v because_o in_o he_o the_o scripture_n be_v fulfil_v he_o be_v not_o content_a with_o his_o own_o faith_n but_o seek_v also_o to_o bring_v other_o unto_o the_o same_o 36._o for_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v you_o shall_v not_o break_v a_o bone_n of_o he_o m._n the_o soldier_n break_v the_o bone_n of_o the_o théeve_n which_o be_v crucify_v with_o christ_n but_o they_o leave_v the_o bone_n of_o christ_n untouched_a because_o both_o god_n have_v so_o appoint_v and_o it_o be_v also_o prefigure_v in_o the_o passover_n c._n for_o this_o testimony_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la where_o moses_n intreat_v of_o the_o pascall_n
lamb_n and_o s._n john_n take_v this_o as_o grant_v unto_o he_o that_o the_o same_o lamb_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a and_o only_o sacrifice_v by_o which_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v redeem_v neither_o make_v it_o any_o matter_n that_o the_o same_o be_v offer_v for_o a_o remembrance_n of_o the_o redemption_n already_o make_v for_o so_o god_n will_v have_v that_o benefit_n celebrate_v that_o it_o may_v promise_v spiritual_a deliveraunce_n unto_o the_o church_n in_o time_n to_o come_v wherefore_o without_o all_o controversy_n the_o apostle_n paul_n appli_v that_o form_n of_o eat_v the_o pascal_n lamb_n which_o moses_n prescribe_v unto_o christ_n by_o this_o analogy_n and_o similitude_n faith_n gather_v no_o small_a fruit_n because_o the_o same_o shall_v behold_v salvation_n offer_v in_o christ_n in_o all_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n 37._o and_o again_o another_o scripture_n say_v they_o shall_v look_v on_o he_o who_o they_o pierce_v this_o place_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n of_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o zacharie_n b._n 32.35_o deut._n 32.35_o and_o it_o agree_v with_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o deutronomie_n where_o it_o be_v say_v vengeance_n be_v i_o and_o i_o will_v repay_v by_o which_o place_n see_v the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v defer_v for_o a_o long_a time_n to_o come_v the_o spirit_n signifi_v that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v prevail_v and_o have_v the_o upper_a hand_n in_o this_o world_n but_o yet_o so_o that_o they_o shall_v slay_v themselves_o with_o their_o own_o sword_n for_o the_o more_o they_o prosper_v in_o their_o evil_a doing_n the_o more_o just_a their_o cause_n be_v think_v of_o they_o to_o be_v therefore_o be_v blind_v they_o run_v headlong_o into_o the_o grievous_a judgement_n of_o god_n therefore_o they_o which_o go_v about_o too_o expound_v this_o place_n concern_v christ_n according_a to_o the_o letter_n do_v too_o violent_o rack_v the_o same_o for_o the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o allege_v the_o same_o to_o that_o end_n but_o rather_o to_o show_v that_o christ_n be_v that_o god_n which_o long_o ago_o complain_v by_o zachary_n that_o the_o jew_n have_v pierce_a he_o to_o the_o heart_n for_o there_o god_n speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n signify_v that_o he_o be_v wound_v with_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o people_n but_o special_o with_o the_o wicked_a contempt_n of_o his_o word_n even_o as_o that_o man_n be_v wound_v to_o death_n who_o heart_n be_v pierce_a now_o because_o christ_n jesus_n be_v god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n 6.10_o esay_n 6.10_o saint_n john_n say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v open_o fulfyl_v in_o his_o visible_a flesh_n which_o his_o divine_a majesty_n according_a to_o that_o manner_n which_o it_o may_v suffer_v suffer_v of_o the_o jew_n not_o that_o god_n be_v subject_n to_o the_o injury_n of_o man_n or_o that_o the_o reproach_n and_o slander_n of_o mortal_a man_n can_v reach_v from_o the_o earth_n unto_o he_o but_o because_o he_o will_v express_v by_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n of_o how_o great_a sacrilege_n the_o impiety_n of_o man_n be_v guilty_a when_o proud_o and_o presumptuous_o it_o extend_v itself_o to_o heaven_n and_o right_o s._n john_n ascribe_v that_o to_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o roman_a soldier_n even_o as_o in_o another_o place_n they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v crucify_v the_o son_n of_o god_n although_o they_o touch_v not_o his_o body_n with_o their_o fynger_n they_o shall_v see_v he_o m._n as_o touch_v this_o see_v some_o thereby_o understand_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n 3.15_o act._n 2.3.9_o act._n 3.15_o of_o the_o which_o we_o have_v a_o example_n in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n r._n for_o then_o they_o begin_v to_o have_v respect_n unto_o he_o who_o they_o pierce_v in_o mourning_n and_o repentance_n othersome_a interpret_v the_o same_o of_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a to_o come_v as_o we_o say_v before_o both_o which_o be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o place_n if_o we_o well_o consider_v of_o the_o same_o namely_o that_o a_o remnante_n shall_v be_v gather_v by_o god_n from_o among_o this_o lose_v nation_n &_o shall_v also_o show_v his_o horrible_a punishment_n and_o vengeance_n upon_o all_o the_o contemner_n of_o his_o grace_n for_o we_o know_v that_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o scorn_v the_o prophet_n no_o less_o than_o if_o they_o have_v tell_v a_o tale_n without_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n this_o say_v the_o lord_n shall_v not_o escape_v unpunished_a because_o he_o will_v himself_o defend_v his_o own_o cause_n concern_v the_o rest_n of_o this_o chap._n read_v the_o .27_o of_o mat._n 56._o vers_fw-la the_o twentieth_o chapter_n 1._o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o sabbath_n come_v mary_n magdalene_n early_o when_o it_o be_v yet_o dark_a unto_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o see_v the_o stone_n take_v away_o from_o the_o grave_n hitherto_o we_o behold_v nothing_o in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n &_o outward_o in_o christ_n 1.4_o rom._n 1.4_o than_o a_o very_a abject_a man_n &_o forsake_v of_o god_n but_o now_o by_o the_o resurrection_n it_o be_v manifest_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o first_o of_o all_o we_o must_v have_v a_o consideration_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n by_o the_o resurrection_n for_o as_o god_n begin_v the_o resurrection_n in_o christ_n by_o a_o clean_a contrary_a work_n that_o be_v say_v life_n death_n the_o beginning_n of_o life_n by_o deiect_v &_o cast_v down_o into_o the_o extreme_a pit_n of_o hell_n even_o so_o he_o begin_v joy_n with_o sorrow_n glory_n with_o ignominy_n &_o shame_n and_o life_n with_o death_n c._n but_o because_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o principal_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n without_o which_o the_o hope_v of_o everlasting_a life_n lie_v dead_a therefore_o the_o evangelist_n do_v stand_v the_o more_o upon_o âhe_n probation_n of_o the_o same_o 15.3_o rom._n 4.25_o roma_fw-it 6.4_o 1._o cor._n 15.3_o even_o as_o this_o our_o evangelist_n gather_v many_o testimony_n by_o which_o we_o may_v be_v certify_v that_o christ_n rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a a._n the_o virtue_n of_o who_o resurrection_n the_o apostle_n paul_n in_o diverse_a place_n show_v at_o large_a but_o special_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n c._n but_o it_o may_v seem_v very_o absurd_a that_o s._n john_n do_v not_o bring_v more_o approve_v and_o credible_a witness_n for_o he_o begin_v with_o a_o woman_n but_o thus_o this_o say_n be_v fulfil_v 1.7_o 1._o cor._n 1.7_o that_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o weak_a foolish_a and_o contemptible_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o flesh_n a._n and_o in_o that_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v some_o variety_n between_o this_o our_o evangelist_n and_o the_o other_o three_o read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o .28_o of_o matth._n the_o first_o verse_n and_o there_o you_o shall_v see_v a_o plain_a reconciliation_n of_o those_o place_n which_o seem_v to_o vary_v 2._o then_o she_o run_v and_o come_v to_o simon_n peter_n and_o to_o the_o other_o disciple_n who_o jesus_n love_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o they_o have_v take_v away_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o the_o grave_n &_o we_o can_v not_o tell_v where_o they_o have_v lay_v he_o r._n although_o this_o woman_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o endue_v with_o a_o perfect_a faith_n yet_o notwithstanding_o she_o right_o endeavour_v herself_o to_o manifest_a the_o glory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n m._n marry_o therefore_o run_v with_o speed_n to_o peter_n and_o john_n either_o for_o that_o they_o be_v best_a know_v unto_o she_o or_o else_o because_o they_o be_v gather_v into_o one_o company_n she_o make_v haste_n by_o run_v be_v fervent_o affect_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o because_o she_o find_v the_o grave_n empty_a contrary_a to_o her_o expectation_n forget_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n she_o conceyve_v a_o wrong_a suspicion_n in_o her_o mind_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v translate_v into_o some_o other_o more_o seemly_a &_o decent_a sepulchre_n the_o other_o be_v but_o rude_a and_o inconvenient_a though_o peradventure_o fit_v for_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v near_o unto_o mount_v caluerie_n where_o he_o be_v crucify_v or_o else_o she_o judge_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v remove_v for_o some_o other_o cause_n which_o she_o know_v not_o of_o r._n therefore_o weep_v and_o cry_v she_o come_v to_o peter_n and_o john_n say_v they_o have_v take_v away_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o the_o grave_n she_o speak_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o she_o call_v he_o her_o lord_n though_o he_o be_v bury_v so_o she_o be_v affect_v toward_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o this_o woman_n rather_o suspect_v
that_o which_o be_v false_a than_o that_o which_o be_v true_a and_o foreshow_v by_o the_o lord_n himself_o in_o plain_n word_n she_o suspect_v that_o he_o be_v remove_v to_o some_o other_o sepulchre_n when_o as_o he_o be_v neither_o in_o that_o nor_o in_o any_o other_o but_o be_v rise_v again_o so_o in_o doubtful_a matter_n we_o rather_o fall_v into_o suspicion_n of_o that_o which_o be_v false_a than_o of_o that_o which_o be_v true_a bu_n notwithstanding_o by_o this_o complaint_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o occasion_n be_v give_v to_o the_o disciple_n more_o diligent_o to_o search_v out_o the_o truth_n for_o therefore_o marry_o magdalene_n tell_v that_o unto_o peter_n and_o john_n which_o she_o understand_v that_o they_o may_v more_o narrow_o discuss_v the_o whole_a matter_n the_o which_o they_o also_o do_v as_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v 3._o peter_n therefore_o go_v forth_o and_o that_o other_o disciple_n and_o come_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n m._n when_o peter_n &_o john_n understand_v that_o mary_n have_v find_v the_o sepulchre_n without_o the_o lord_n &_o carry_v from_o thence_o to_o another_o place_n they_o go_v also_o together_o out_o of_o the_o city_n because_o they_o will_v know_v the_o truth_n &_o come_v at_o last_o to_o the_o sepulchre_n c._n but_o it_o be_v marvel_v see_v there_o be_v so_o little_a faith_n &_o almost_o none_o at_o all_o aswell_o in_o the_o disciple_n as_o in_o the_o woman_n that_o there_o be_v notwithstanding_o so_o great_a a_o zeal_n &_o fervent_a a_o desire_n and_o in_o deed_n it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o that_o piety_n drive_v they_o to_o seek_v christ_n therefore_o there_o remain_v some_o seed_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o heart_n but_o choke_v as_o it_o be_v for_o a_o time_n insomuch_o that_o they_o know_v not_o that_o they_o have_v that_o which_o they_o have_v so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v oftentimes_o in_o the_o elect_n after_o a_o secret_a manner_n wherefore_o we_o must_v be_v persuade_v that_o there_o be_v some_o secret_a root_n from_o the_o which_o we_o see_v fruit_n to_o spring_v m._n for_o as_o touch_v peter_n we_o see_v that_o although_o he_o be_v great_o fall_v in_o deny_v the_o lord_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o retain_v his_o accustom_a mind_n &_o affection_n toward_o he_o whereupon_o here_o also_o though_o the_o disciple_n be_v in_o fear_n yet_o nevertheless_o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o go_v forth_o to_o the_o lord_n sepulchre_n he_o say_v not_o what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v to_o go_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o our_o dead_a lord_n who_o most_o filthy_o i_o deny_v when_o he_o be_v alive_a and_o in_o peril_n he_o think_v of_o none_o of_o this_o but_o join_v himself_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n again_o and_o retain_v a_o sincere_a mind_n towards_o christ_n such_o be_v their_o disposition_n which_o fall_v not_o so_o much_o of_o malicious_a wickedness_n as_o of_o infirmity_n of_o the_o flesh_n 4._o they_o run_v both_o together_o &_o the_o other_o disciple_n do_v outrun_v peter_n and_o come_v first_o to_o the_o sepulchre_n bu_n we_o have_v a_o notable_a example_n leave_v unto_o we_o in_o these_o two_o disciple_n for_o they_o run_v with_o a_o fervent_a desire_n and_o very_o careful_o &_o diligent_o they_o search_v out_o all_o thing_n m._n they_o run_v i_o say_v both_o together_o but_o the_o one_o be_v more_o swift_a on_o foot_n than_o the_o other_o and_o come_v first_o to_o the_o goal_n hereby_o we_o be_v teach_v not_o to_o look_v that_o they_o which_o be_v chief_a and_o excel_v other_o in_o singular_a gift_n shall_v run_v all_o alike_o in_o the_o race_n of_o christ_n lest_o one_o shall_v contemn_v another_o 5._o and_o when_o he_o have_v stoop_v down_o he_o see_v the_o linen_n clothes_n lie_v yet_o go_v he_o not_o in_o m._n the_o lord_n sepulchre_n be_v so_o make_v that_o none_o stand_v uprighte_a but_o stoop_v down_o can_v see_v into_o the_o same_o even_o so_o such_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o burial_n &_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o can_v neither_o be_v see_v know_v nor_o consider_v but_o of_o those_o which_o have_v a_o humble_a and_o lowly_a mind_n they_o will_v not_o be_v see_v of_o such_o as_o be_v proud_a and_o high_a mind_v yea_o though_o they_o be_v call_v apostle_n bishop_n priest_n and_o doctor_n 6._o then_o come_v simon_n peter_n follow_v he_o and_o go_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o see_v the_o linen_n clothes_n lie_v 7._o and_o the_o napkin_n that_o be_v about_o his_o head_n not_o lie_v with_o the_o linen_n clothes_n but_o wrap_v together_o in_o a_o place_n by_o itself_o r._n although_o john_n come_v first_o to_o the_o sepulchre_n when_o he_o see_v the_o linen_n clothes_n lie_v aside_o he_o go_v not_o in_o peradventure_o stay_v with_o fear_n or_o else_o to_o tell_v peter_n news_n who_o come_v more_o slow_o after_o he_o and_o in_o civil_a matter_n too_o much_o haste_n be_v reprove_v by_o this_o proverb_n a_o soft_a fire_n make_v sweet_a malt_n that_o be_v to_o say_v thou_o must_v not_o be_v too_o rash_a nor_o too_o slow_a but_o make_v haste_n not_o with_o rashness_n but_o with_o consultation_n not_o with_o heat_n but_o with_o prudence_n not_o with_o lust_n but_o with_o deliberation_n c._n therefore_o in_o the_o peter_n who_o make_v less_o haste_n enter_v notwithstanding_o first_o into_o the_o sepulchre_n we_o thereby_o learn_v that_o there_o be_v more_o give_v to_o many_o in_o retire_v than_o aper_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n and_o sometime_o we_o see_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o many_o which_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v very_o hot_a do_v wax_n cay_v cold_a &_o that_o many_o which_o brag_v most_o at_o the_o first_o when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o conflict_n turn_v their_o back_n &_o run_v away_o and_o contrariwise_o that_o they_o which_o be_v think_v to_o be_v cold_a &_o slow_a when_o peril_n come_v be_v most_o forward_o &_o courageous_a and_o he_o see_v the_o linen_n clothes_n c._n these_o linen_n clothes_n be_v as_o it_o be_v relic_n to_o confirm_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o the_o body_n be_v stripte_v to_o be_v carry_v to_o another_o place_n for_o neither_o enemy_n nor_o friend_n will_v have_v do_v such_o a_o deed_n and_o the_o napkin_n that_o be_v about_o his_o head_n m._n the_o evangelist_n be_v wonderful_a diligent_a in_o note_v and_o describe_v all_o thing_n so_o exact_o for_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o the_o napkin_n which_o be_v about_o his_o head_n be_v lay_v from_o the_o linen_n clothes_n in_o a_o several_a place_n by_o itself_o for_o hereby_o the_o beholder_n of_o the_o same_o may_v quick_o see_v that_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n be_v want_v in_o the_o which_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v wrap_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o perfect_a testimony_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o that_o all_o suspicion_n of_o remove_v his_o hody_n may_v be_v take_v away_o the_o lord_n leave_v his_o apparel_n which_o he_o use_v in_o this_o life_n with_o the_o soldier_n before_o he_o be_v execute_v upon_o the_o cross_n but_o he_o leave_v the_o linen_n clothes_n and_o the_o napkin_n which_o be_v about_o his_o head_n with_o the_o which_o he_o be_v dead_a be_v enfold_v and_o bury_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n when_o he_o rise_v again_o from_o death_n for_o he_o be_v raise_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o immortality_n mind_v to_o come_v no_o more_o into_o this_o miserable_a life_n therefore_o he_o have_v no_o more_o any_o need_n of_o those_o garment_n and_o linen_n clothes_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n we_o must_v dye_v with_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v whole_o forsake_v this_o new_a life_n and_o we_o must_v so_o rise_v from_o death_n that_o we_o must_v leave_v the_o relic_n of_o sin_n in_o baptism_n as_o in_o the_o grave_n a._n concern_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o eight_o and_o nine_o verse_n follow_v read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o .28_o of_o math._n 10._o then_o the_o disciple_n go_v away_o again_o to_o their_o own_o house_n r._n it_o be_v like_o that_o the_o disciple_n return_v home_o again_o with_o suspend_v and_o doubtful_a mind_n for_o although_o s._n john_n say_v that_o he_o believe_v yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o faith_n be_v not_o firm_a but_o have_v only_o a_o certain_a small_a taste_n of_o the_o miracle_n until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o be_v afterward_o better_o confirm_v and_o in_o deed_n a_o sound_n faith_n can_v not_o be_v conceyve_v by_o a_o bare_a sight_n only_o moreover_o christ_n do_v not_o show_v himself_o unto_o they_o until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v better_o awake_v from_o their_o carnal_a blindness_n they_o have_v show_v a_o notable_a token_n of_o their_o zeal_n in_o run_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n notwithstanding_o christ_n be_v hide_v from_o
they_o because_o they_o seek_v he_o too_o superstitious_o let_v we_o learn_v also_o by_o this_o example_n to_o keep_v we_o within_o our_o bound_n in_o sorrowful_a and_o obscure_a matter_n until_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n better_a thing_n come_v to_o light_n 11._o marry_o stand_v without_o at_o the_o sepulchre_n weep_v so_o as_o she_o weep_v she_o bow_v herself_o into_o the_o sepulchre_n 12._o and_o see_v two_o angel_n clothe_v in_o whit_n sit_v the_o one_o at_o the_o head_n &_o the_o other_o at_o the_o foot_n where_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n be_v lay_v c._n now_o the_o evangelist_n begin_v to_o show_v how_o christ_n appear_v to_o testify_v his_o resurrection_n confirm_v resurrection_n of_o christ_n confirm_v aswell_o to_o the_o woman_n as_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o although_o there_o be_v mention_v but_o of_o one_o mary_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o there_o be_v mo_z woman_n with_o she_o for_o whereas_o other_o think_v that_o they_o be_v go_v for_o fear_n it_o be_v against_o reason_n they_o seek_v to_o avoid_v repugnancy_n where_o there_o be_v none_o now_o whereas_o the_o woman_n abide_v by_o the_o sepulchre_n the_o disciple_n be_v go_v into_o the_o city_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v great_o commend_v for_o the_o same_o more_o than_o the_o other_z for_o the_o other_o go_v away_o with_o joy_n and_o consolation_n and_o these_o tarry_v and_o occupy_v themselves_o with_o vain_a and_o superfluous_a weep_v to_o be_v short_a they_o stay_v at_o the_o sepulchre_n superstitious_o and_o with_o carnal_a affection_n and_o see_v two_o angel_n bu_n it_o seem_v that_o mary_n the_o disciple_n be_v return_v home_o come_v again_o to_o the_o sepulchre_n for_o as_o she_o stand_v without_o at_o the_o door_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o weep_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o woman_n the_o presence_n of_o angel_n which_o be_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o stoop_v down_o she_o may_v see_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n where_o she_o see_v two_o angel_n with_o a_o joyful_a and_o glorious_a countenance_n keep_v that_o place_n where_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v lay_v c._n wonderful_a be_v the_o sufferance_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o forgive_v mary_n and_o her_o fellow_n so_o many_o vice_n for_o he_o do_v they_o no_o small_a honour_n in_o send_v his_o angel_n and_o in_o manifest_v himself_o unto_o they_o the_o which_o be_v not_o grant_v unto_o the_o apostle_n for_o although_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o woman_n be_v all_o in_o one_o fault_n yet_o notwithstanding_o their_o blindness_n be_v less_o excusable_a who_o be_v so_o plain_o teach_v have_v profit_v so_o little_a christ_n choose_v the_o woman_n that_o he_o may_v first_o reveal_v himself_o unto_o they_o not_o with_o shame_n to_o the_o apostle_n m._n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o mary_n know_v they_o to_o be_v angel_n yea_o or_o no_o or_o whether_o she_o think_v they_o to_o be_v man_n most_o think_v that_o she_o take_v they_o for_o man_n but_o so_o often_o as_o we_o read_v that_o angel_n appear_v in_o the_o usible_a show_n of_o man_n and_o clothe_v in_o man_n apparel_n it_o be_v because_o of_o the_o gross_a rudeness_n of_o man_n also_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o have_v sometime_o true_a body_n give_v unto_o they_o but_o whether_o these_o two_o angel_n have_v only_o the_o form_n of_o body_n or_o no_o it_o be_v superfluous_a to_o inquire_v it_o suffice_v we_o that_o the_o lord_n give_v unto_o they_o a_o human_a form_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o woman_n can_v both_o see_v and_o hear_v they_o but_o they_o be_v beautify_v so_o strange_o that_o they_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v come_v from_o heaven_n than_o from_o among_o man_n bu_n and_o certain_o god_n at_o this_o time_n have_v ordain_v these_o angel_n to_o testify_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o son_n the_o one_o at_o the_o head_n &_o the_o other_o at_o the_o foot_n whereas_o in_o matthew_n we_o have_v mention_v make_v only_o of_o one_o angel_n it_o differ_v nothing_o from_o the_o narration_n of_o john_n for_o both_o speak_v not_o at_o once_o to_o mary_n but_o one_o of_o they_o to_o who_o the_o message_n be_v commit_v c._n and_o in_o that_o the_o angel_n keep_v and_o watch_v this_o place_n we_o have_v to_o note_v that_o christ_n thus_o begin_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o in_o that_o the_o angel_n honour_v his_o sepulchre_n the_o ignominy_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v not_o only_o thereby_o take_v away_o but_o the_o majesty_n of_o christ_n also_o shine_v 13._o they_o say_v unto_o she_o woman_n why_o wepe_v thou_o she_o say_v unto_o they_o for_o they_o have_v take_v away_o my_o lord_n &_o i_o wot_v not_o where_o they_o have_v lay_v he_o m._n the_o angel_n know_v wherefore_o mary_n weep_v but_o they_o keep_v the_o same_o secret_a awhile_o until_o christ_n make_v they_o joyful_a by_o appear_v unto_o they_o c._n but_o by_o the_o other_o evangelist_n we_o may_v gather_v that_o the_o angel_n speak_v more_o but_o s._n john_n only_o note_v the_o same_o brief_o because_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o testify_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n this_o speech_n contain_v both_o reprehension_n and_o consolation_n the_o angel_n reprehend_v the_o untimely_a weep_v of_o mary_n notwithstanding_o withal_o they_o mix_v joy_n in_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o cause_n to_o weep_v for_o that_o christ_n be_v rise_v she_o say_v unto_o they_o because_o they_o have_v take_v marry_o be_v exceed_o sorrowful_a weigh_v not_o what_o these_o two_o man_n appear_v in_o white_a apparel_n and_o sit_v in_o the_o empty_a sepulchre_n may_v mean_v a._n and_o therefore_o simple_o she_o complain_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesu_n be_v take_v away_o even_o as_o a_o little_a before_o she_o complain_v to_o the_o disciple_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o woman_n 14._o when_o she_o have_v thus_o say_v she_o turn_v herself_o back_o and_o see_v jesus_n stand_v and_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v jesus_n c._n but_o how_o be_v mary_n thus_o blind_v and_o deceyve_v that_o she_o know_v not_o jesus_n who_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v familiar_o acquaint_v with_o he_o some_o think_v that_o he_o appear_v in_o another_o form_n but_o it_o be_v more_o likely_a that_o the_o fault_n be_v in_o the_o woman_n sight_n even_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o two_o disciple_n in_o the_o .24_o of_o luke_n therefore_o let_v we_o not_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v alter_v and_o change_v his_o face_n as_o the_o poet_n fain_o of_o proteus_n who_o transform_v himself_o into_o diverse_a shape_n but_o rather_o let_v we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o pleasure_n and_o power_n of_o god_n which_o have_v give_v eye_n unto_o man_n to_o dasel_n they_o when_o it_o shall_v seem_v good_a unto_o he_o that_o in_o see_v they_o may_v not_o see_v and_o in_o mary_n we_o have_v a_o common_a example_n of_o the_o error_n of_o man_n mind_n for_o although_o christ_n offer_v himself_o to_o be_v see_v yet_o nethelesse_o we_o imagine_v that_o he_o have_v diverse_a form_z in_z so_o much_o that_o our_o sense_n and_o reason_n conceyve_v any_o thing_n soon_o than_o true_a christ_n for_o see_v the_o sight_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v of_o itself_o deceytfull_a it_o be_v also_o blind_v and_o bewitch_v by_o satan_n and_o the_o world_n that_o it_o may_v discern_v no_o truth_n 15._o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o woman_n why_o wepe_v thou_o who_o seek_v thou_o she_o suppose_v that_o he_o have_v be_v a_o gardener_n say_v unto_o he_o sir_n if_o thou_o have_v bear_v he_o hence_o tell_v i_o where_o thou_o have_v lay_v he_o &_o i_o will_v fetch_v he_o m._n the_o lord_n himself_o speak_v unto_o she_o as_o a_o stranger_n &_o demand_v the_o cause_n of_o her_o weep_a as_o move_v with_o compassion_n syr._n c._n she_o call_v he_o sir_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o her_o country_n for_o the_o jew_n salute_v husbandman_n and_o other_o base_a personage_n by_o the_o name_n of_o syr._n if_o thou_o have_v bear_v he_o hence_o m._n because_o she_o think_v that_o he_o have_v hard_o she_o speak_v those_o thing_n which_o she_o have_v answer_v to_o the_o two_o man_n sit_v upon_o the_o sepulchre_n she_o say_v not_o i_o seek_v my_o lord_n but_o simple_o if_o thou_o have_v bear_v he_o hence_o tell_v i_o where_o thou_o have_v lay_v he_o that_o i_o may_v go_v and_o fetch_v he_o and_o bury_v he_o in_o a_o condign_a place_n c._n here_o we_o see_v that_o mary_n savore_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v from_o the_o earth_n she_o only_o desire_v to_o have_v the_o dead_a carcase_n of_o christ_n that_o she_o may_v keep_v the_o same_o in_o a_o sepulchre_n but_o she_o think_v not_o upon_o the_o divine_a
power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n which_o be_v most_o principal_a wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o such_o gross_a affection_n put_v a_o veil_n before_o her_o eyas_n 16._o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o mary_n she_o turn_v herself_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o rabbony_n which_o be_v to_o say_v master_n c._n in_o that_o christ_n suffer_v mary_n to_o err_v for_o a_o short_a time_n it_o be_v profitable_a for_o we_o to_o confirm_v our_o faith_n but_o now_o with_o one_o word_n he_o revoke_v she_o from_o error_n m._n he_o say_v not_o i_o be_o he_o who_o thou_o seek_v for_o who_o sake_n thou_o wepe_v so_o much_o but_o he_o call_v she_o by_o her_o proper_a name_n as_o one_o familiar_a friend_n speak_v to_o another_o and_o that_o with_o such_o a_o voice_n as_o be_v best_a know_v unto_o the_o woman_n c._n at_o the_o first_o he_o speak_v unto_o she_o as_o a_o stranger_n but_o now_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o person_n of_o a_o master_n he_o speak_v unto_o she_o as_o to_o a_o disciple_n even_o as_o we_o hear_v before_o that_o a_o good_a shepherd_n call_v all_o the_o sheep_n of_o his_o flock_n by_o name_n 10.3_o john_n 10.3_o the_o voice_n therefore_o of_o this_o shepherd_n pierce_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o mary_n open_v her_o eye_n move_v all_o her_o sense_n &_o affect_v she_o forthwith_o to_o geve_v herself_o unto_o christ_n for_o she_o turn_v herself_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o rabboni_n m._n the_o evangelist_n in_o say_v that_o marie_n turn_v herself_o about_o again_o mean_v that_o she_o turn_v her_o face_n again_o to_o the_o sepulchre_n whither_o peradventure_o her_o heart_n be_v bend_v a._n for_o she_o have_v a_o fervent_a &_o unspeakable_a desire_n to_o find_v the_o lord_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o she_o hear_v and_o understand_v the_o voice_n of_o her_o shepeheard_n she_o biandby_o cry_v with_o great_a joy_n and_o admiration_n rabboni_n c._n thus_o in_o mary_n we_o have_v depaint_v to_o we_o the_o image_n of_o our_o call_n for_o this_o be_v our_o only_a entrance_n into_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n if_o so_o be_v he_o know_v we_o first_o and_o do_v familiarlye_o call_v we_o unto_o he_o not_o with_o that_o common_a voice_n which_o general_o sound_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o all_o man_n but_o by_o which_o he_o do_v special_o call_v those_o sheep_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o of_o the_o father_n hereupon_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v 4.9_o gal._n 4.9_o after_o that_o you_o know_v god_n yea_o rather_o be_v know_v of_o god_n and_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o word_n appear_v hereby_o that_o mary_n give_v biandby_o unto_o christ_n that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o for_o the_o name_n of_o rabboni_n be_v not_o only_o honourable_a but_o contain_v also_o the_o profession_n of_o obedience_n therefore_o marye_n declare_v herself_o to_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o submit_v herself_o unto_o he_o as_o to_o a_o master_n this_o be_v a_o wonderful_a and_o secret_a conversion_n of_o man_n mind_n when_o god_n illuminate_v the_o same_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n make_v the_o same_o of_o blind_a sudden_o to_o see_v perfect_o the_o like_a example_n we_o have_v almost_o in_o the_o two_o disciple_n which_o be_v go_v to_o emaus_n a._n for_o when_o as_o at_o the_o first_o their_o eye_n be_v hold_v that_o they_o know_v not_o christ_n 24.30_o luk._n 24.30_o at_o the_o length_n when_o he_o take_v bread_n and_o bless_v and_o break_v the_o same_o their_o eye_n be_v open_v and_o they_o know_v he_o who_o before_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v a_o stranger_n c._n furthermore_o the_o example_n of_o marye_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o exhortation_n unto_o we_o that_o so_o many_o as_o christ_n call_v unto_o he_o do_v answer_v he_o present_o again_o without_o delay_n 17._o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o touch_v i_o not_o for_o i_o be_o not_o yet_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n but_o go_v to_o my_o brethren_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o i_o ascend_v unto_o my_o father_n &_o your_o father_n and_o to_o my_o god_n &_o your_o god_n b._n marry_o will_v have_v embrace_v christ_n for_o the_o exceed_v love_n &_o joy_n which_o she_o have_v because_o she_o see_v christ_n present_v again_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o when_o the_o lord_n see_v that_o she_o wonder_v at_o his_o carnal_a presence_n more_o than_o be_v mete_v seek_v to_o lift_v up_o her_o mind_n to_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o to_o the_o embracing_n of_o faith_n forbid_v she_o to_o touch_v he_o say_v touch_v i_o not_o c._n notwithstanding_o this_o seem_v not_o to_o agree_v with_o the_o narration_n of_o matthew_n 28.9_o mat._n 28.9_o for_o he_o plain_o write_v that_o the_o woman_n embrace_v the_o foot_n of_o christ_n and_o see_v afterward_o he_o will_v have_v his_o disciple_n to_o handle_v and_o to_o feel_v he_o what_o cause_n be_v there_o why_o he_o shall_v forbid_v mary_n to_o touch_v he_o objection_n m._n for_o he_o say_v unto_o thomas_n bring_v hither_o thy_o finger_n and_o see_v my_o hand_n and_o put_v thy_o finger_n into_o my_o side_n and_o be_v not_o faithless_a but_o beleve_v c._n the_o solution_n hereof_o be_v very_o easy_a if_o so_o be_v we_o consider_v that_o the_o woman_n be_v not_o prohibit_v the_o touch_v of_o christ_n before_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v too_o busy_a and_o desirous_a to_o touch_v he_o answer_v for_o no_o doubt_n he_o do_v not_o forbid_v they_o to_o touch_v he_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o take_v away_o all_o doubt_n but_o when_o he_o see_v that_o they_o be_v to_o busy_a in_o imprace_v his_o foot_n he_o moderate_v and_o correct_v that_o rash_a zeal_n for_o they_o depend_v upon_o his_o corporal_a presence_n neither_o do_v they_o know_v any_o other_o way_n to_o enjoy_v he_o than_o if_o he_o dwell_v among_o they_o upon_o the_o earth_n m._n moreover_o because_o his_o disciple_n doubt_v whether_o he_o be_v true_o rise_v again_o or_o no_o and_o because_o the_o same_o which_o appear_v unto_o they_o be_v judge_v of_o they_o to_o be_v but_o a_o vision_n 24.37_o luk._n 24.37_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v believe_v the_o resurrection_n he_o say_v feel_v and_o see_v for_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v also_o thomas_n have_v say_v except_o i_o see_v the_o print_n of_o his_o nail_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o put_v my_o finger_n into_o the_o print_n of_o the_o nail_n and_o my_o hand_n into_o his_o side_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v therefore_o christ_n do_v very_o well_o in_o offer_v himself_o to_o be_v feel_v of_o he_o a._n but_o in_o marye_n there_o be_v no_o such_o doubt_v that_o there_o shall_v need_v any_o further_a feeling_n but_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o she_o shall_v come_v to_o a_o further_a faith_n and_o to_o more_o plain_a understanding_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n lest_o she_o shall_v abase_v he_o in_o cogitation_n more_o than_o there_o be_v cause_n c._n we_o must_v also_o note_v the_o reason_n which_o christ_n add_v for_o i_o be_o not_o yet_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n for_o by_o these_o word_n he_o command_v the_o woman_n to_o suspend_v their_o affection_n until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o be_v ascend_v into_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n furthermore_o he_o show_v the_o faith_n of_o his_o resurrection_n not_o such_o a_o faith_n as_o they_o imagine_v to_o themselves_o as_o that_o when_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o he_o shall_v reign_v &_o triumph_n in_o the_o world_n but_o rather_o that_o by_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n he_o shall_v take_v possession_n of_o that_o kingdom_n which_o be_v promise_v unto_o he_o and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n may_v govern_v the_o church_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n therefore_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o his_o word_n be_v that_o the_o state_n of_o his_o resurrection_n be_v not_o full_a and_o perfect_v until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v b._n think_v not_o because_o you_o see_v i_o present_v in_o the_o flesh_n that_o you_o have_v obtain_v the_o fruition_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n i_o say_v before_o unto_o my_o disciple_n that_o it_o be_v good_a for_o they_o that_o i_o shall_v go_v unto_o my_o father_n to_o who_o when_o i_o have_v ascend_v i_o will_v send_v my_o spirit_n the_o comforter_n and_o bring_v all_o thing_n to_o pass_v for_o they_o these_o thing_n you_o ought_v to_o look_v for_o and_o not_o to_o make_v such_o account_n of_o my_o corporal_a presence_n abstain_v therefore_o from_o this_o earnest_n touch_v lest_o you_o be_v to_o much_o addict_v to_o my_o carnal_a presence_n you_o ought_v hereafter_o to_o embrace_v i_o by_o faith_n reign_v in_o heaven_n c._n but_o this_o
same_o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v 5.20_o 2._o cor._n 5.20_o we_o be_v messenger_n in_o the_o room_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o though_o god_n do_v beseech_v you_o through_o we_o so_o pray_v we_o you_o in_o christ_n steed_n that_o you_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n and_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o esteem_v of_o this_o unspeakable_a treasure_n any_o whit_n the_o less_o because_o it_o be_v offer_v to_o we_o in_o earthen_a vessel_n but_o we_o have_v rather_o cause_n to_o give_v thank_n unto_o god_n which_o have_v give_v such_o honour_n unto_o man_n that_o they_o may_v represent_v his_o own_o person_n and_o the_o person_n of_o his_o son_n in_o pronounce_v remission_n of_o sin_n moreover_o hereby_o appear_v the_o madness_n and_o blindness_n of_o the_o papist_n papist_n absolution_n of_o the_o papist_n which_o wrest_v and_o abuse_v this_o place_n to_o their_o magical_a absolution_n but_o christ_n do_v not_o here_o appoint_v his_o apostle_n to_o be_v auricular_a confessor_n but_o public_a preacher_n of_o his_o gospel_n wherefore_o we_o must_v consider_v the_o manner_n of_o remit_v of_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v know_v what_o power_n this_o be_v which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o whosoever_v sin_n you_o retain_v christ_n add_v this_o second_o part_n to_o terrify_v the_o contemner_n of_o his_o gospel_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v know_v that_o their_o pride_n shall_v not_o escape_v unpunished_a therefore_o as_o the_o ambassage_n of_o salvation_n and_o eternal_a life_n be_v enjoin_v the_o apostle_n so_o also_o they_o have_v vengeance_n commit_v unto_o they_o to_o use_v against_o all_o those_o wicked_a one_o which_o shall_v reject_v the_o salvation_n offer_v unto_o they_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v bu_n so_o that_o the_o apostle_n forgive_v man_n their_o sin_n when_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o teach_v that_o the_o faithful_a have_v their_o sin_n forgive_v they_o sin_n retain_v sin_n and_o that_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o life_n by_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o they_o retain_v sin_n when_o they_o pronounce_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n to_o rest_v upon_o all_o unbelever_n it_o be_v proper_a unto_o the_o gospel_n that_o we_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n 10.6_o 2._o cor._n 10.6_o but_o it_o be_v accidental_a that_o the_o unbelieve_a be_v addict_v unto_o death_n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v note_v that_o whosoever_o hear_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o do_v not_o embrace_v remission_n of_o sin_n there_o offer_v be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n 2.16_o 2._o cor._n 2.16_o for_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n to_o they_o that_o believe_v so_o also_o he_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n to_o the_o infidel_n a._n concern_v the_o large_a exposition_n of_o this_o place_n read_v our_o commentary_n upon_o the_o .16_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n and_o begin_v at_o the_o nine_o verse_n also_o at_o the_o .18_o verse_n of_o the_o .18_o chapter_n 24._o but_o thomas_n one_o of_o the_o twelve_o which_o be_v call_v didimus_n be_v not_o with_o they_o when_o jesus_n come_v r._n as_o the_o fall_n of_o peter_n be_v before_o describe_v at_o large_a not_o to_o the_o reproach_n of_o peter_n fall_n but_o that_o the_o scripture_n may_v set_v before_o we_o the_o vain_a presumption_n of_o flesh_n even_o so_o in_o this_o place_n s._n john_n describe_v the_o unbelefe_n of_o thomas_n not_o to_o discredit_v he_o by_o rip_v up_o his_o sin_n but_o to_o set_v forth_o in_o thomas_n the_o nature_n of_o flesh_n bu_n for_o thomas_n represent_v all_o those_o who_o judge_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n to_o be_v impossible_a and_o therefore_o do_v make_v a_o scorn_n at_o the_o same_o and_o the_o unbelief_n of_o this_o apostle_n be_v therefore_o set_v down_o that_o the_o faithful_a may_v thereby_o be_v the_o better_a confirm_v and_o strengthen_v he_o be_v not_o only_o slow_a and_o hard_a to_o believe_v but_o also_o his_o obstinacy_n make_v he_o desire_n to_o feel_v and_o handle_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o content_v with_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o same_o r._n furthermore_o in_o this_o history_n we_o acknowledge_v the_o wonder_a judgemente_n of_o god_n for_o as_o god_n wynck_v at_o the_o brethren_n of_o joseph_n and_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o envy_n against_o joseph_n at_o the_o first_o second_o to_o sell_v he_o and_o last_o to_o lie_v unto_o their_o father_n but_o to_o this_o end_n that_o be_v fall_v the_o deep_a when_o they_o be_v deliver_v they_o may_v the_o more_o manifest_o see_v and_o acknowledge_v the_o hand_n and_o power_n of_o the_o lord_n even_o so_o christ_n wynk_v at_o the_o unbeléefe_n of_o thomas_n but_o with_o this_o judgement_n unbelief_n the_o judgement_n of_o god_n in_o thomas_n his_o unbelief_n that_o not_o so_o much_o his_o faith_n as_o we_o may_v be_v the_o more_o confirm_v for_o by_o the_o unbeléefe_n of_o thomas_n our_o belief_n be_v further_v m._n in_o that_o thomas_n be_v not_o with_o the_o rest_n some_o think_v the_o cause_n to_o be_v this_o because_o he_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o return_v from_o the_o flight_n which_o he_o take_v for_o fear_n 25._o the_o other_o disciple_n say_v unto_o he_o we_o have_v see_v the_o lord_n but_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o except_o i_o see_v in_o his_o hand_n the_o print_n of_o the_o nail_n and_o thrust_v my_o hand_n into_o his_o side_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v c._n here_o be_v note_v the_o original_n and_o welsyre_v of_o the_o fault_n because_o every_o man_n will_v be_v wise_a in_o his_o own_o conceit_n and_o flatter_v himself_o too_o much_o bu_n thomas_n do_v not_o desire_v simple_o to_o see_v the_o lord_n but_o rather_o seek_v for_o the_o print_n of_o the_o nail_n and_o mark_n in_o the_o flesh_n for_o so_o he_o say_v he_o will_v believe_v that_o christ_n be_v true_o rise_v again_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v you_o be_v disceyve_v no_o doubt_n by_o some_o fantasy_n or_o spirit_n i_o therefore_o will_v not_o believe_v except_o i_o see_v his_o body_n yea_o and_o lest_o my_o sight_n be_v deceyve_v except_o i_o put_v these_o my_o hand_n into_o the_o print_n of_o the_o nail_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o my_o finger_n into_o the_o wound_n of_o his_o side_n these_o word_n contain_v nothing_o sound_v to_o faith_n but_o only_o a_o sensual_a judgement_n the_o like_a happen_v to_o all_o those_o which_o be_v so_o addict_v unto_o themselves_o that_o they_o give_v no_o heed_n or_o credit_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 26._o and_o after_o eight_o day_n again_o his_o disciple_n be_v with_o he_o and_o thomas_n with_o they_o then_o come_v jesus_n etc._n etc._n m._n this_o be_v the_o eight_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n which_o we_o may_v name_v the_o sunday_n the_o same_o day_n the_o disciple_n be_v gather_v together_o again_o in_o who_o we_o may_v note_v the_o nature_n of_o sincere_a love_n there_o be_v a_o common_a proverb_n like_o will_n to_o like_v they_o be_v all_o like_a affect_v toward_o christ_n therefore_o they_o desire_v to_o be_v in_o one_o assembly_n and_o they_o do_v patient_o bear_v the_o unbelief_n of_o thomas_n until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o shall_v be_v cure_v by_o christ_n himself_o they_o do_v not_o excommunicate_v he_o but_o admit_v he_o into_o their_o fellowship_n without_o grudge_v and_o thomas_n also_o himself_o although_o he_o believe_v not_o those_o who_o tell_v he_o of_o the_o lord_n resurrection_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o can_v not_o keep_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o company_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n hereby_o we_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n to_o foster_v and_o maintain_v mutual_a love_n and_o not_o to_o forsake_v the_o bond_n of_o christian_a charity_n for_o some_o light_n contention_n c._o concern_v the_o come_n in_o of_o christ_n and_o the_o salutation_n which_o he_o use_v read_v the_o .19_o verse_n go_v before_o 27._o after_o that_o say_v he_o to_o thomas_n bring_v thy_o finger_n hither_o and_o see_v my_o hand_n and_o reach_v hither_o thy_o hand_n &_o thrust_v it_o into_o my_o side_n and_o be_v not_o faithless_a but_o believe_v m._n the_o lord_n do_v not_o tarry_v until_o thomas_n prevent_v he_o but_o eâââeth_v he_o that_o thing_n first_o without_o the_o which_o he_o have_v say_v he_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o thereby_o he_o may_v not_o only_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n but_o may_v also_o be_v pierce_v in_o conscience_n and_o that_o he_o may_v know_v that_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v unto_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n tell_v he_o of_o the_o resurrection_n c._n hereby_o also_o we_o gather_v what_o care_v he_o have_v to_o provide_v both_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o
seem_v to_o be_v so_o order_v by_o god_n disposition_n and_o appointment_n c._n for_o god_n have_v suffer_v they_o to_o labour_n &_o weary_v themselves_o in_o vain_a all_o the_o night_n to_o make_v the_o miracle_z more_o manifest_a for_o if_o they_o have_v take_v any_o thing_n the_o power_n of_o christ_n will_v not_o so_o quick_o and_o so_o evidentlye_o have_v appear_v but_o labour_v all_o the_o night_n in_o vain_a &_o then_o sudden_o enclose_v a_o great_a multitude_n of_o fish_n they_o have_v just_a occasion_n give_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o lord_n bu_n by_o this_o place_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o all_o man_n labour_n be_v in_o vain_a except_o the_o lord_n prosper_v &_o bless_v his_o endeavour_n r._n for_o so_o long_o as_o we_o labour_n wtout_fw-fr christ_n we_o labour_v in_o vain_a and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o which_o oftentimes_o take_v most_o pain_n be_v most_o poor_a for_o they_o see_v not_o god_n in_o their_o labour_n god_n be_v not_o see_v but_o by_o the_o word_n the_o father_n be_v not_o see_v but_o by_o the_o son_n what_o then_o say_v the_o son_n the_o father_n clothe_v thou_o the_o father_n nourish_v thou_o therefore_o if_o by_o faith_n thou_o begin_v to_o labour_v in_o this_o word_n of_o the_o son_n thou_o shall_v true_o see_v god_n in_o thy_o labour_n who_o will_v thorough_o bless_v thou_o &_o whatsoever_o thou_o take_v in_o hand_n it_o shall_v prosper_v c._n also_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o exercise_v the_o faithful_a even_o as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o apostle_n to_o commend_v unto_o they_o his_o blessing_n if_o so_o be_v always_o all_o thing_n which_o they_o take_v in_o hand_n shall_v have_v good_a success_n no_o man_n almost_o will_v impute_v the_o fruit_n &_o gain_v of_o his_o labour_n to_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n every_o one_o will_v boast_v of_o his_o own_o labour_n &_o kiss_v his_o own_o hand_n but_o when_o sometime_o they_o weary_a themselves_o wtout_fw-fr profit_n if_o so_o be_v afterward_o any_o better_a fruit_n chance_n to_o come_v they_o be_v constrain_v to_o acknowledge_v somewhat_o that_o be_v extraordinary_a thus_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o begin_v to_o attribute_v the_o praise_n of_o prosperous_a success_n unto_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 4_o but_o when_o the_o morning_n be_v come_v jesus_n stand_v on_o the_o shore_n nevertheless_o the_o disciple_n know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v jesus_n jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o child_n have_v you_o any_o meat_n etc._n etc._n bu_n the_o disciple_n know_v not_o christ_n either_o that_o they_o be_v far_o from_o the_o shore_n or_o else_o because_o their_o eye_n be_v hold_v as_o be_v the_o eye_n of_o those_o disciple_n which_o be_v go_v to_o emaus_n m._n but_o christ_n most_o friendly_a call_v unto_o they_o say_v child_n have_v you_o any_o meat_n by_o this_o voice_n be_v set_v forth_o that_o fatherly_a affection_n which_o christ_n bear_v towards_o all_o those_o which_o will_v be_v his_o disciple_n m._n christ_n demand_v this_o question_n as_o a_o merchant_n come_v thither_o to_o buy_v fish_n and_o when_o he_o ask_v they_o if_o they_o have_v any_o meat_n he_o mean_v fish_n but_o the_o disciple_n suppose_v that_o he_o have_v be_v some_o other_o man_n which_o come_v to_o the_o lake_n to_o buy_v fish_n answer_v he_o that_o they_o have_v nothing_o 6._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o cast_v out_o the_o net_n on_o the_o right_a side_n of_o the_o ship_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v etc._n etc._n c._n christ_n command_v not_o as_o by_o the_o right_a and_o authority_n of_o a_o master_n but_o geve_v friendly_a advice_n as_o one_o of_o the_o people_n m._n and_o by_o this_o admonition_n he_o prepare_v away_o for_o the_o miracle_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v this_o watch_n word_n before_o that_o they_o may_v afterward_o know_v whereunto_o they_o may_v refer_v this_o sudden_a and_o unloke_v for_o multitude_n of_o fish_n and_o whereas_o christ_n do_v not_o make_v the_o fish_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n to_o leap_v into_o the_o disciple_n ship_n but_o be_v rather_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v take_v by_o the_o inclosier_n of_o their_o net_n by_o this_o image_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v needful_a to_o be_v preach_v even_o among_o the_o elect_a by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v c._n the_o disciple_n not_o know_v what_o to_o do_v and_o be_v without_o hope_n of_o fruit_n easy_o yield_v to_o the_o counsel_n of_o he_o who_o they_o take_v to_o be_v a_o stranger_n if_o so_o be_v any_o man_n have_v give_v they_o such_o counsel_n at_o the_o first_o pitch_n they_o will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o ready_a to_o obey_v the_o which_o be_v therefore_o speak_v lest_o any_o man_n shall_v marvel_n that_o they_o be_v so_o obedient_a see_v they_o be_v so_o far_o spend_v with_o labour_n therefore_o because_o they_o have_v take_v nothing_o they_o obey_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n though_o unknown_a unto_o they_o if_o peradventure_o they_o may_v at_o the_o last_o take_v some_o fish_n to_o carry_v home_o with_o they_o c._n howbeit_o this_o be_v not_o come_v example_n of_o sufferance_n and_o patience_n that_o they_o continue_v their_o labour_n after_o the_o day_n light_n which_o they_o have_v spend_v without_o profit_n all_o that_o may_v and_o very_o if_o so_o be_v we_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o the_o blessing_n of_o he_o we_o must_v patient_o wait_v for_o the_o same_o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o unméete_a than_o by_o andby_n to_o pull_v back_o our_o hand_n from_o our_o labour_n if_o it_o appear_v not_o profitable_a the_o nakedness_n of_o peter_n testify_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v labour_v very_o sore_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o let_v not_o to_o cast_v in_o their_o net_n a_o fresh_a that_o they_o may_v omit_v no_o occasion_n notwithstanding_o in_o that_o they_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n it_o can_v be_v ascribe_v unto_o faith_n for_o they_o hear_v he_o as_o a_o stranger_n now_o if_o so_o be_v at_o any_o time_n our_o vocation_n seem_v irksome_a because_o our_o labour_n and_o travail_n be_v without_o fruit_n yet_o notwithstanding_o when_o the_o lord_n exhort_v we_o to_o go_v forewarde_n let_v we_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n we_o shall_v have_v at_o the_o last_o good_a success_n in_o due_a tyme._n 7._o then_o say_v the_o disciple_n who_o jesus_n love_v it_o be_v the_o lord_n when_o simon_n peter_n hear_v that_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n he_o gird_v his_o coat_n unto_o he_o for_o he_o be_v naked_a and_o spring_v into_o the_o sea_n m._n this_o disciple_n belove_v of_o jesus_n be_v john_n who_o write_v these_o thing_n he_o be_v the_o first_o which_o know_v the_o lord_n by_o the_o enclose_v of_o the_o wonderful_a company_n of_o fish_n of_o who_o he_o inform_v peter_n also_o r._n therefore_o it_o appear_v for_o what_o cause_n they_o have_v take_v nothing_o all_o the_o night_n long_o and_o afterward_o draw_v a_o great_a multitude_n of_o fish_n into_o the_o ship_n namely_o for_o no_o other_o cause_n than_o that_o they_o may_v thereby_o the_o more_o plain_o know_v the_o lord_n even_o as_o oftentimes_o our_o prayer_n seem_v to_o be_v vain_a if_o so_o be_v any_o thing_n contrary_a unto_o our_o desire_n happen_v and_o with_o this_o purpose_n the_o lord_n do_v work_v contrary_a to_o our_o prayer_n that_o he_o may_v afterward_o more_o full_o grant_v we_o the_o petition_n of_o our_o heart_n &_o may_v be_v more_o large_o glorify_v in_o us._n moreover_o the_o evangelist_n by_o his_o example_n teach_v that_o when_o we_o have_v good_a success_n contrary_a to_o our_o expectation_n we_o must_v lift_v up_o our_o mind_n unto_o the_o lord_n because_o we_o ought_v biandby_o to_o remember_v that_o this_o benefit_n proceed_v from_o his_o grace_n which_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o goodness_n this_o godly_a knowledge_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n which_o john_n have_v in_o his_o mind_n bring_v he_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n also_o for_o he_o know_v not_o christ_n with_o his_o bodily_a eye_n but_o because_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o this_o abundance_n of_o fish_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o of_o god_n he_o gather_v that_o it_o be_v christ_n which_o direct_v their_o hand_n and_o spring_v into_o the_o sea_n as_o faith_n be_v first_o in_o john_n so_o peter_n biandby_o excel_v he_o in_o fervency_n of_o the_o spirit_n when_o set_v all_o fear_n of_o peril_n aside_o he_o cast_v himself_o into_o the_o lake_n r._n for_o christ_n be_v know_v no_o danger_n be_v fear_v c._n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o he_o do_v walk_v upon_o the_o sea_n or_o swim_v to_o the_o shore_n let_v it_o suffice_v we_o to_o know_v this_o that_o he_o leave_v the_o ship_n take_v his_o way_n not_o rashlye_a
you_o have_v dishonour_v i_o c._n see_v the_o two_o opprobry_n with_o the_o which_o christ_n be_v sclaunder_v tend_v to_o one_o end_n christ_n refall_v they_o under_o one_o when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o seek_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o father_n for_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o must_v also_o be_v the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n which_o do_v true_o and_o sincerelye_o honour_v he_o m._n let_v we_o here_o note_n the_o most_o honest_a modesty_n best_o beséeme_v a_o man_n that_o be_v grave_a and_o innocent_a the_o lord_n jesus_n can_v not_o more_o modestlye_o and_o simp_o defend_v his_o doctrine_n than_o by_o this_o simple_a plain_a and_o manifest_a denial_n but_o they_o which_o will_v use_v this_o simplicity_n of_o deny_v in_o put_v away_o such_o crime_n as_o be_v lay_v to_o their_o charge_n must_v win_v first_o and_o get_v credit_n to_o themselves_o by_o the_o innocensie_n of_o their_o life_n otherwise_o they_o shall_v be_v far_a from_o this_o example_n of_o christ_n in_o time_n past_o honest_a and_o grave_a man_n have_v be_v beléeve_v without_o a_o oath_n but_o now_o our_o innocensie_n shall_v hard_o win_v credit_n by_o many_o oath_n b._n christ_n therefore_o hold_v himself_o simp_o content_a that_o he_o have_v withstand_v the_o slander_v save_v that_o with_o all_o he_o put_v they_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o judgement_n which_o hang_v over_o their_o headde_n when_o he_o say_v but_o i_o honour_v my_o father_n and_o you_o have_v dishonour_v i_o c._n by_o which_o word_n he_o join_v he_o and_o his_o father_n glory_n together_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o arrogate_v nothing_o to_o myself_o that_o shall_v not_o turn_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o my_o father_n for_o in_o i_o his_o majesty_n shine_v who_o power_n and_o rule_v i_o have_v see_v therefore_o i_o be_o so_o evell_a entreat_v of_o you_o you_o be_v contumeliouslye_o against_o god_n himself_o m._n we_o be_v teach_v here_o to_o look_v for_o nothing_o but_o ignominye_a and_o shame_n at_o their_o hand_n who_o glory_n and_o hypocrisy_n we_o overthrow_v through_o the_o zeal_n of_o maintain_v the_o word_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n we_o know_v well_o enough_o this_o say_n of_o christ_n 25_o math_n i0_n 25_o if_o so_o be_v they_o have_v call_v the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n belzebub_n how_o much_o more_o will_v call_v the_o servant_n so_o whosoever_o therefore_o be_v not_o prepare_v to_o bear_v and_o suffer_v all_o manner_n of_o reproach_n shall_v manifestlye_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v not_o lead_v by_o the_o spyrite_n of_o god_n child_n 50._o i_o seek_v not_o my_o own_o praise_n there_o be_v one_o that_o seek_v and_o judge_v m._n for_o they_o may_v have_v object_v unto_o he_o ambition_n say_v c._n this_o gréeve_v thou_o that_o thou_o be_v not_o honourablye_o entreat_v of_o we_o and_o therefore_o thou_o do_v so_o vehement_o inveye_v against_o us._n thou_o seek_v praise_n in_o this_o world_n thou_o will_v be_v count_v great_a &_o yet_o thou_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o careful_a séeker_fw-mi of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n they_o may_v i_o say_v have_v object_v these_o thing_n except_o he_o have_v protest_v that_o he_o be_v not_o lead_v by_o the_o private_a affection_n of_o his_o flesh_n to_o seek_v his_o own_o honour_n but_o rather_o the_o honour_n and_o praise_n of_o god_n there_o be_v one_o that_o seek_v and_o judge_v m._n this_o clause_n contain_v a_o commination_n lest_o they_o shall_v think_v that_o this_o their_o slander_v shall_v escape_v unpunished_a r._n for_o he_o affirm_v that_o god_n will_v take_v vengeance_n of_o this_o injury_n c._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v you_o slander_v my_o doctrine_n as_o if_o the_o same_o proceed_v and_o come_v from_o the_o devil_n think_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v escape_v unpunished_a for_o this_o for_o see_v my_o doctrine_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n you_o do_v not_o only_o slander_v i_o but_o god_n my_o father_n also_o wherefore_o he_o shall_v defend_v his_o own_o glory_n which_o you_o slander_v and_o seek_v to_o discredit_v ay_o as_o i_o do_v not_o seek_v my_o own_o praise_n so_o i_o be_o not_o a_o revenger_n of_o my_o own_o reproach_n b._n therefore_o i_o will_v not_o present_o take_v vengeance_n on_o the_o same_o a._n but_o notwithstanding_o my_o father_n will_v not_o suffer_v the_o contumely_n of_o his_o doctrine_n to_o escape_v unpunished_a i9_n deut._n i8_n i9_n r._n even_o as_o also_o he_o himself_o have_v promise_v c._n moreover_o though_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o we_o and_o christ_n let_v notwithstanding_o everye_o one_o know_v for_o a_o surety_n that_o if_o he_o seek_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n with_o his_o whole_a heart_n he_o shall_v receyve_v great_a praise_n of_o god_n for_o we_o shall_v always_o find_v this_o sentence_n most_o true_a he_o which_o honour_v i_o will_v i_o advance_v to_o honour_v if_o he_o be_v not_o only_o contemn_v among_o man_n but_o also_o sclaunder_v and_o reproach_v let_v he_o patientlye_o wait_v for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n m._n furthermore_o adversity_n patience_n in_o adversity_n so_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o behave_v themselves_o in_o bear_v injury_n do_v unto_o they_o that_o thereby_o they_o may_v put_v the_o reprobate_n in_o mind_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o also_o declare_v their_o innocencye_n 24.13_o 1._o kin._n 24.13_o thus_o we_o read_v that_o david_n do_v let_v the_o lord_n say_v he_o be_v a_o judge_n to_o judge_v between_o thou_o and_o i_o and_o so_o christ_n in_o like_a manner_n in_o this_o place_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n peter_n have_v write_v of_o he_o 2.23_o 1._o pet._n 2.23_o which_o when_o he_o be_v revile_v revile_v not_o again_o when_o he_o suffer_v he_o threaten_v not_o but_o commit_v the_o vengeance_n to_o he_o that_o judge_v righteouslye_o 51._o verilye_o verilye_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o if_o a_o man_n keep_v my_o say_n he_o shall_v never_o see_v death_n very_o very_o i_o say_v bu_n the_o contention_n be_v end_v at_o the_o last_o the_o lord_n return_v to_o that_o again_o from_o whence_o he_o be_v digress_v repeat_v again_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o our_o salvation_n the_o which_o hitherto_o he_o have_v so_o often_o time_n inculcate_v in_o that_o his_o disputation_n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o know_v some_o to_o be_v curable_a in_o that_o multitude_n and_o also_o that_o othersome_a be_v not_o enemy_n to_o his_o doctrine_n therefore_o his_o purpose_n be_v so_o to_o terrifye_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o notwithstanding_o he_o may_v leave_v matter_n of_o consolation_n to_o the_o godly_a or_o that_o he_o may_v allure_v those_o unto_o he_o which_o as_o yet_o be_v not_o lose_v wherefore_o although_o the_o great_a part_n do_v forsake_v the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o a_o godly_a teacher_n ought_v never_o to_o be_v so_o much_o occupy_v in_o reprove_v the_o wicked_a but_o that_o he_o may_v also_o dispense_v to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n and_o may_v seek_v also_o to_o bring_v such_o as_o be_v not_o altogether_o uncurable_a to_o a_o good_a and_o godly_a mind_n m._n so_o that_o because_o he_o have_v begin_v to_o commend_v his_o word_n he_o return_v to_o the_o same_o commendation_n of_o his_o word_n bu_n and_o he_o begin_v with_o a_o oath_n that_o our_o faith_n may_v be_v the_o more_o confirm_v and_o that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o occasion_n of_o doubt_v m._n so_o far_o be_v the_o lord_n from_o repent_v he_o of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v most_o trulye_o speak_v that_o he_o repeat_v and_o affirm_v the_o same_o again_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v although_o you_o make_v account_n of_o i_o as_o of_o a_o samaritane_n and_o a_o demoniake_n although_o you_o attribute_v my_o say_n to_o the_o devyll_n yet_o notwithstanding_o i_o be_o the_o very_a same_o who_o word_n be_v the_o word_n of_o life_n insomuch_o that_o i_o dare_v bold_o affirm_v that_o he_o shall_v never_o see_v death_n which_o keep_v my_o word_n i_o say_v which_o keep_v it_o and_o not_o which_o only_a read_v it_o hear_v it_o or_o know_v it_o and_o he_o keep_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o receyve_v the_o same_o by_o faith_n and_o lay_v up_o the_o same_o in_o his_o heart_n out_o of_o the_o which_o he_o express_v boath_n word_n and_o deed_n c._n for_o christ_n require_v such_o disciple_n as_o not_o only_o hear_v his_o word_n or_o profess_v with_o the_o mouth_n that_o they_o like_v of_o his_o doctrine_n but_o such_o as_o keep_v and_o lie_v up_o the_o same_o as_o a_o most_o precious_a treasure_n m._n to_o be_v short_a to_o keep_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v even_o the_o same_o which_o he_o say_v before_o name_o